#they are honestly one of my new favorite pairings
Explore tagged Tumblr posts
Text
About You â The Series.
âDo you think I have forgotten about you?â
âŚpairing: ÂĄlsu joe burrow! x ÂĄex situashionship reader!
âŚsummary: second change trope, college relationships, slow burn love, right person wrong time.
âŚdescription: you and joe had a thing months before, but the things ended in a bad way. now, you see yourself stuck in something that requires you to be close to him every single day.
âŚplaylist: About You, Love Me Like You Do, Like Real People Do, I Bet You Think About Me, Called You Again, Tolerate It, ImGonnaGetYouBack, Clean
PART ONE: CLEAN.
There are certain moments in life that seem impossible to forget. The second I walked onto LSUâs campus, I knew my life was about to change. But not just because of the classes, the social scene, or the crazy football culture.
When I started in LSU, it was supposed to be a clean slate. A chance to focus on my career path and prove to myself that I could thrive in a bigger pond, surrounded by people just as driven as me. Advertising and Public Relations wasnât just a degreeâit was a strategy. A way to blend my creative instincts with a business-minded edge.
What I didnât expect was LSUâs football program to be the centerpiece of everything.
LSU football wasnât just a sport. It was culture, identity, and religion rolled into one. By my second semester, I was interning with the athletic department, brainstorming marketing campaigns and filming promos for the team. I was good at what I didâso good that I convinced myself it didnât bother me when my work bled into my personal life.
Everything started to go wrong when I met him. Tall, blond, American aesthetic, and so, but so kind. That was Joe Burrow, the youngest transferred from Ohio State to the south. New just like me.
Joe was Joe âcalm, collected, and infuriatingly charming. He wasnât flashy like some of the other players, but the air shifted when he walked into a room. Everyone noticed him. And the first time we crossed paths, I did too.
We met my junior year at a party, back when he was just Joeâa talented quarterback with a quiet intensity and a way of looking at you like he could see straight through every mask youâd ever worn. I hadnât planned on noticing him, but it was impossible not to.
And since then, I'm haunted by his face, his smile, his smell, his body. Every little thing that made him Joe, it was inside my head like a bad song that you canât stop singing. I didnât want that, not in the beginning.
And now, I'm running from him like the plague. Every place he might be, I'm not going. Every little encounter or party, or dinner, or what else, I wasnât going.
It was a party I didnât want to go to. Maddie had been bothering me for weeks to go to this party, and honestly, I didn't feel like going. Simply no desire.
"I'm serious, Y/N. You work too hard," Maddie, my best friend at LSU, said to me. We had just left one of our classes together, and were walking around the campus, heading towards Maddie's car. "You're missing the entire college experience."
I sighed, pinching the bridge of my nose. âIâm here to build my career, not get drunk at frat houses.â
âEven BeyoncĂŠ has to relax,â she shot back. âIâm picking you up at eight, tomorro, no excuses. But now, weâre going to Maloneâs.â
[âŚ]
I didnât want to be here.
Maloneâs was Maddieâs favorite spot, a college-town bar where everyone gathered on weekends to drink, laugh, and pretend their responsibilities didnât exist. It was the kind of place where the sticky floors were part of the charm, and you couldnât walk two feet without bumping into someone you knew. Normally, Iâd avoid it like the plagueâespecially on a night like tonight, when Maddieâs sole mission was to convince me to go to that stupid party tomorrow.
âYouâre being dramatic,â Maddie said as I slid into the booth across from her, the sound of the barâs chatter and faint music drowning out half her words. âItâs just one party. Whatâs the worst that could happen?â
I rolled my eyes, pulling my coat tighter around me despite the warmth of the bar. âYou say that like you donât know me. I donât do frat parties, Maddie. I donât want to spend my Saturday night elbow-to-elbow with drunk people I barely know.â
âThatâs the fun of it,â she countered, her grin far too smug for my liking.
âYouâre impossible,â I muttered, reaching for the drink sheâd already ordered for me.
âIâm persistent,â she corrected. âAnd donât think I didn't notice that you didnât actually say no.â
I groaned, leaning back in the booth. Maddie had been trying to drag me to this party for days, claiming it was some canât-miss event that would somehow make my life infinitely better. I wasnât convinced, but Iâd stopped arguing because, frankly, I didnât have the energy.
I was checking on the bar from above my shoulders when It happened.
Joe Burrow.
The last person I ever expected to see here, especially tonight.
My chest tightened the moment I spotted him standing by the dartboard, his tall frame impossible to miss, his blond hair was slightly disheveled, and the faint scruff on his jaw made him look older than he had when weâd last spoken. Joe was dressed casually, jeans and a hoodie, looking like he didnât have a care in the world, and was laughing at something one of his friends said, the sound cutting through the low hum of the bar like a knife.It wasnât just the way he carried himself or the fact that he was Joe BurrowâLSUâs star quarterbackâbut the way my body reacted, as if it had its own memory of him.
I hadnât seen him in monthsânot since weâd ended things without really ending them. And now, seeing him here, so casually present in my space, felt like a slap to the face. Work Out from J Cole was playing, and everything felt like a movie scene.
It wasnât like we had history. At least not in the way most people assumed. We barely knew each other. But there had been that one night at a party a while back, and another one after a game, and another one at our friends house, and another one⌠and the tension between us had never fully died down. I could still remember the way his eyes had felt on me, like he was measuring me in some silent way I didnât know how to interpret.
âY/N.â Maddieâs voice snapped me out of my daze. She followed my line of sight and groaned. âOh no.â
I shook my head, panic setting in. âI canât do this.â
âYou donât even know if he saw you.â
âIâm not sticking around to find out,â I said, already sliding out of the booth.
âY/Nââ
But I was gone, weaving through the crowd toward the back hallway where the bathrooms were. I needed to breathe, to get away from the overwhelming weight of his presence.
The bathroom at Maloneâs was about as glamorous as youâd expectâa narrow space with flickering fluorescent lights and graffiti scrawled across the stalls. I locked myself in one of the stalls, leaning back against the door as I tried to steady my breathing.
Of all the places to run into Joe, it had to be here.
It wasnât like I hadnât thought about him. I hadâmore than I cared to admit. But thinking about him was one thing. Seeing him, knowing he was just a few feet away, was something else entirely.
I couldnât face him. Not now, not here.
The bathroom was quiet, the kind of eerie stillness that felt out of place in the chaos of Maloneâs. I leaned against the sink, staring at my reflection in the smudged mirror.
âGet it together,â I whispered to myself, taking a deep breath.
I didnât even know why I was reacting like this. It wasnât like we were still together. We werenât anything anymore. And yet, the sight of him had thrown me completely off balance, dredging up feelings I thought Iâd buried a long time ago.
But I couldnât stay in the bathroom forever, either.
I opened the bathroom door and nearly walked straight into him.
Joe was leaning against the wall opposite the bathroom, his arms crossed over his chest and his gaze fixed squarely on me.
I froze, my heart hammering in my chest.
âY/N,â he said, his voice low and steady, a hint of amusement curling at the edges.
Nope.
Without a second thought, I ducked back into the bathroom, slamming the door shut behind me. My cheeks burned with embarrassment, and I bit my lip to keep from screaming. What the hell was I supposed to do now?
I paced the small space, my mind racing. Heâd seen me, which meant he was waiting for me. I couldnât hide in here forever, but the thought of facing him felt impossible.
Eventually, I forced myself to take a deep breath and opened the door again.
Joe was gone.
Relief flooded through me as I stepped out into the hallway, my eyes scanning the crowd for any sign of him. But instead of Joe, my attention was drawn to a small slip of paper pinned to the corkboard on the wall next to the bathroom.
It wasnât there before.
Curious, I stepped closer and pulled it free. The handwriting was unmistakableâslanted and bold, with a certain sharpness to the letters that felt uniquely him.
âGo to the party tomorrow. Please.â
I stared at the note, my heart pounding for an entirely different reason now.
My fingers tightened around the paper as Maddie appeared at the end of the hallway, her eyes wide with curiosity.
âWhatâs that?â she asked, gesturing to the note.
âNothing,â I said quickly, shoving it into my pocket.
She raised an eyebrow but didnât push. âReady to head back? I donât think Joeâs here anymore.â
I nodded, though my mind was miles away.
Maybe tomorrow. Maybe I would go. Maybe I wouldnât.
But one thing was for sure: Joe Burrow had just made sure I wouldnât forget this night.
ââââââââââââââ
hey guys! this is the beginning of my Love Tropes Series. The first part, About You, itâs going to be launched in four parts! stay tuned :)
#joe burrow#cincinnati bengals#joe burrow fan fic#joeburrow#joe burrow imagine#joe burrow fluff#joe burrow x reader#bengals#joe burrow angst#joeburrowtiktok#joe shiesty
93 notes
¡
View notes
Text
The Black Orchid Project
Pairing: billionaire CEO!Jeon Jungkook x Secretory!Reader Genre: Dark Romance, Mystery, Thriller Word Count: 19k Trigger warning: This chapter contains morally grey characters, toxic characters, dark romance, trauma, violence, mentions of murder, death, and conspiracy. Reader discretion is advised. Summary: Jungkook is the enigmatic CEO of a major conglomerate with a haunting secretâhe can hear everyoneâs thoughts. But when Y/N becomes his new personal secretary, sheâs the only person whose thoughts remain silent to him. Intrigued and unsettled, Jungkook is drawn to the mystery she presents, not realizing that their connection will unravel secrets neither of them are prepared to face. a/n: This story is entirely a work of fiction and is the sole property of @kookiewithluv. The characters, events, and scenarios depicted are products of the imagination and are not intended to represent or reflect real-life situations, nor do I wish for anything portrayed here to occur in reality. I kindly ask that my work not be copied, translated, or reposted as your own on this or any other platform, including YouTube. Please respect the effort and originality behind this piece. Thank you for your understanding and support. a/n: So, I finally posted. Yeah, I know, shock of the century, right? You were probably out here cursing my name like, 'Where the heck have you been?' Well, I guess I just decided not to post this time. Donât ask me why, I donât even know. But hey, Iâm sorry for that. I know, I say sorry a lot, itâs like my default setting at this point. But I swear, Iâm really going to try and post more. I promise. Maybe. Also, a super huge shoutout and a massive thank you to my absolute favorite person @closer-to-jungkook. She beta-read this mess for me, and gave me so many amazing insights, but guess what? I didnât do a single thing with them because, you know, Iâm a failure like that. So, yeah, basically I let her down as my beta reader. Sorry, girl. But next time, I swear, Iâll actually listen and make you proud... unless I forget, again, in which case... whoops. Anyway, love you guys, and Iâll try not to disappear again... maybe.
PROLOGUE MASTERLIST 02
The meeting dragged on. Time seemed to crawl as if the clock itself was protesting against the sheer monotony of the discussion. It hadnât been long since it started, but to you, it already felt like youâd been trapped in this room for days. You lost count of the times his gazeâno, his glareâscorched into you. Each glance filled with condescension that felt like a slap across the face.
You shifted uncomfortably in your chair, your hands gripping the edges of the table, knuckles white as you tried to appear composed. But your patience was wearing thin. He was overreacting, making a mountain out of nothing. Sure, youâd made a mistakeâwho hadnât?âbut this? This was ridiculous. What was his deal with the roomâs capacity? Why on earth was he so bothered about having more than four people in a room? Seriously, what kind of control freak rule was that? You chewed on the inside of your cheek, trying to suppress the urge to roll your eyes. Was he scared of crowds or something? Honestly, with his attitude, he should be. If he kept ticking people off like this, one day, someone might snapâand if there were enough people, theyâd form a mob. The thought almost made you snort, but you swallowed it down, biting your cheek. It was a silly theory, but it was better than trying to untangle the nonsense of his rules.
He glared at you again. His soft, doe-like eyes narrowed, dark and piercing, with a keenness that made you shrink back slightly. His jaw tightened, the muscle jumping under his skin as he ground his teeth. You flinched instinctively, your body betraying you with a subtle jerk, as if bracing for impact, suddenly aware of how small you felt under his scrutiny. Your hands clenched in your lap, fingers feeling like they might snap, as you tried to focus anywhere else.
You quickly averted your gaze, your eyes darting around the room, desperate for an escape. Your eyes landed on Taehyung. He leaned back casually in his chair, one arm draped casually over the backrest, his long fingers drumming against the table in a slow, lazy rhythm. As soon as he felt your gaze, his lips curled into a subtle smirk. He raised his brows and blinked at youâonce, deliberately.
You felt your face heat, and not from embarrassment, but frustration. God, all these men are insane. You clenched your fists tighter, nails digging into your palms to calm yourself. You swore they all had some kind of mental dysfunction. Jungkook with his silent rage, Taehyung with his infuriating charmâmaybe Jimin was the only sane one in this room besides you.
You sighed, shifting in your seat again, your foot tapping nervously against the floor. Mental health courses exist for a reason, you thought bitterly, your gaze flickering between Jungkookâs scowl and Taehyungâs irritating grin. Maybe they should sign up for all of them.
 As your thoughts spiralled, you dared a glance at him⌠again. Only to catch the faintest twitch of his browâprecise, calculated. It wasnât just anger in his expression; it was something darker, something⌠personal? And it scared you, even if youâd never admit it.
The moment you had been dreading finally came. The meeting was over.
Chairs screeched against the floor as everyone pushed back from the table. The sound grated on your nerves, but you rose from your seat anyway, hands trembling, legs wobbling as though they might give out beneath you.
 Your breath hitched, shallow and fast, a knot tightening in the pit of your stomach. Your heart pounded against your ribs, a viscous thud that made your chest ache.  Was this fear? Anxiety? You couldnât tell anymore, but it clawed at you, gnawing at your insides like a predator circling its prey. You clenched your fists at your sides, trying to calm yourself, but the uneasy tremor in your chest refused to fade.
You risked another glance at him, keeping your gaze low, peeking through your lashes, a fleeting, nervous look that you immediately regretted. His gaze locked onto you, soft yet paradoxically so sharp and firm, as if he could see right through you. The weight of his stare felt like a physical force pressing against your temple. You quickly looked away but it was too late.
 Your throat tightening as your heart slammed against your ribs. But it didnât matterâhis eyes stayed on you, burning holes into the side of your head like he could feel every breath you took.
There was something in the way he looked at youâa mix of curiosity and disdain that made your skin crawl, like you were an unsolved puzzle he hated having to deal with. It was as though he were studying you, dissecting you piece by piece. He looked at you like he couldnât stand the thought of breathing the same air as you, as if being in the same room as you was a personal insult he couldnât forgive. The corner of his mouth twitched, but not in kindness. A cold, predatory smirk curled his lips, one that made your blood run cold.
His soft brown boba eyes never left you.
And then he smiled. Cold, shrill, and entirely without warmth. A smile that dripped with obnoxiousness and delight, as though he was basking in your unease, feeding off it like it gave him some twisted satisfaction.
 You werenât sure what scared you moreâthe venom in his gaze or the fact that you couldnât look away, no matter how much you wanted to.
"Jungkook," Seokjinâs voice cut through the fragile silence like a gentle breeze, calm and soothing.
Jungkookâs head snapped toward Seokjin, and in an instant, everything about him changed.
 His shoulders, tense and rigid moments ago, relaxed, and his piercing glare melted away, replaced by something softâgentle, even. His lips curved into a smile, one so sweet and genuine it left you completely dumfounded. You blinked, your mouth falling open in shock.
What the hell?
Your eyes widened, as you stared at him, disbelief etched across your face. How... how is this possible? This was the same man who had spent the entire meeting glaring daggers at you, exuding nothing but cold enmity. How could someone so rude, heartless, and obnoxiously infuriating smile like that? It didnât make sense. It felt like a trick, some cruel joke the universe was playing on you. But there it wasâhis smile, warm and dazzling, as if he hadnât spent the past hour glaring at you like you were dirt beneath his shoe. And now? Now he looked like a painting come to lifeâa vision of warmth and beauty that shouldnât belong to someone so cruel.
Your heart skipped a beat as you noticed the faint crinkle at the corners of his eyes, the way his smile softened his entire face. For a brief, fleeting moment, you found yourself mesmerized. A small, traitorous voice whispered in the back of your mind, Heâs stunning. Beautiful. Perfect. And he was. That smile made him look like something out of a dream, his dark orbs soft and almost shy under the fluorescent light. He was cute too, you realized, in that infuriating way that made you want to scream. And hot? God, no one could dare bring up the concept of hotness without mentioning him.
How can someone so horrible look this⌠beautiful? The whisper in the back of your mind grew louder. This man is the definition of beauty.
Your cheeks flushed at the thought, and you shook your head quickly, breaking free from whatever spell heâd cast. No. Absolutely not. Donât go there. You shook your head slightly, muttering a quiet mantra in your head. No, no, no. Heâs an idiot. A rude, wicked bastard. Stop it. This is the same guy whoâs made your day a living hell. Remember that. But it was hard to ignore the way your heart raced, or the strange flutter in your chest.
Jungkook didnât respond to Jin right away. Instead, he moved. His long strides carried him around the table, each step smooth and deliberate, like he had all the time in the world. He stopped beside Jin, his posture instantly relaxed as Seokjin patted his shoulder in a way that felt natural, familiar.
Jin began to speak again, his lips parting as if to offer some kind of reassurance, but Jungkook cut him off before he could finish.
âHyung! Letâs go to my office,â Jungkook said, his voice low and soft, almost tender. âWeâll talk there?â His voice was softer than youâd heard it, polite and calm. It was so different from the cold, harsh tone he had threw your way.
You blinked, staring at the two of them as your jaw threatened to hit the floor again. This canât be real. Him? Soft? It was like watching a lion purrâa sight so contradictory it didnât feel real. His tone was polite, his demeanour respectfulâwords you would never have associated with the man five minutes ago
Your eyes darted back and forth between the two of them, struggling to make sense of what you were seeing. Jungkook, the same man who had made your day a living hell, now stood before Seokjin like an obedient younger brother. It was unsettling, to say the least.
He wasnât just politeâhe was soft. Gentle, even.
You couldnât stop staring. The way he tilted his head slightly when he spoke to Jin, the way his hands relaxed at his sides, no longer tense or clenched. It was so different from the version of him you knew, it almost felt like you were looking at a completely different person.
Your fingers twitched at your side, itching to pinch yourself. Maybe you were dreaming. Or hallucinating. Because the Jungkook you knew? He didnât do soft. And yet, here he was, proving you wrong with every breath. The man who had made it his mission to make you feel two inches tall was suddenly soft and sweet with Seokjin? It didnât make sense.
But the warmth in his expression lingered, and for reasons you couldnât explain, it made your chest tighten. He was more than what youâd seen so far⌠wasnât he?
Jinâs face lit up with a bright smile as he nodded at Jungkook. Turning away, he gave Namjoon and Taehyung a light nudge to follow him.
Namjoon responded with a quick nod, a broad grin spreading across his face as he moved to join them.
Taehyung, however, didnât move. Instead, he slumped further into his chair, crossing his arms loosely and leaning back with a loud, exaggerated sigh. His lips pressed into a pout as he stared at the ceiling like the very idea of moving was a personal offense. It was no secret that Jeon Enterprises and Kim Enterprises were very close; both companies worked hand in hand. Even Jungkook, Jimin, and Taehyung went to the same school and college together. Their entire childhood and teenage years were spent together, and they were still together. All three of them were always in the news, and always together too. Jungkook knew Taehyung like the back of his hand along with his antics.
Namjoon glanced over, eyebrows furrowing in that âhere we go againâ way of his as he caught sight of Taehyungâs antics. âSeriously?â he asked, his tone half amused, half exasperated. His hands found their way to his hips, as he watched Taehyung flap his arms against the chairâs armrests.
Taehyung raised his hand in the air, palm out, as if announcing something grand. âNo!â he exclaimed, dragging the word out as he slowly pushed himself up from his seat, slowly, deliberately, making it as dramatic as possible before turning to Seokjin. âI wonât, hyung. I refuse.â
Seokjin didnât react right away. He merely tilted his head, his eyes narrowing ever so slightly, making it clear he wasnât impressed. His lips pressed into a thin line as he let out a quiet sigh, shaking his head. The slight twitch at the corner of his mouth suggested he was trying very hard not to roll his eyes. His gaze shifted to Namjoon, wordlessly asking, Is this brat for real?
Namjoon only shrugged, an almost conspiratorial grin spreading across his face, as if he found the whole thing more entertaining than annoying. . They both turned their attention back to Taehyung, who didnât careâif anything, their reactions only fueled his theatrics. "NO," Taehyung declared, his voice firm, though his lips twitched with the hint of a smile.
âWhat now?â Seokjin asked finally, his voice calm, dangerously calm, but the words that tumbled out were tight. It wasnât loud, but it didnât need to beâit was the kind of calm that warned you not to push your luck. His piercing eyes bored into Taehyung, sharp and calculating, a reminder that behind the soft features was a mind you didnât want to cross. The sharp edge to it made you flinch, even though the question wasnât directed at you.
The tension in the room shifted as even Taehyung hesitated for a second, his hand dropping to his side as he shifted under Jinâs obdurate stare. But within minutes he was back to his usual self.
You stood in the corner, half-forgotten, watching the scene unfold as if you were invisible. For a moment, it felt like you were intruding on a private family argument. They were so lost in their little world that none of them seemed to notice you lingering. The ridiculousness of the scene was almost enough to make you forget the tension lingering in the air. Almost.
Seokjinâs calm demeanour held stable as he waited for Taehyungâs next move, the silence stretching just long enough to make even you hold your breath.
But Taehyung, being Taehyung, jabbed his finger in Jungkook's direction without even sparing him a glance. âHe didnât invite me! Just you, hyung. Just you,â he said, voice laced with mock hurt. Namjoon sighed deeply, running a hand through his hair as he shook his head, but a soft smile tugged at his lips. How could he stay mad? Taehyung was his little brother, and no matter how ridiculous the stunt, even when they bordered on absurd, he couldnât help but find it endearing.
Taehyungâs arms crossed over his chest, his pout deepening as he stuck his bottom lip out, eyes narrowing as he watched Seokjin expectantly.
âAn invitation? Really? You want an invitation?â Seokjin asked, his voice flat and deadpan, like he couldnât believe he was even entertaining this ridiculous request. âWhat is this, a wedding? You want calligraphy and wax seals?â
Taehyungâs pout deepened, his gaze shifting dramatically to the side as he huffed. "Please would do," His voice a mix of childish demand and mock offense, his eyes flicking to Seokjin for any sign of approval.
 âA proper invite,â he huffed. âWith manners. A simple please.â
Jimin couldnât hold back his laugh, it came out bright and loud, like heâd just heard the funniest joke. "What?!" he snorted, stepping forward with an amused glint in his eyes.
 His laughter only grew as he straightened, wiping a fake tear from his eye before stepping toward Taehyung. âFrom Jungkook? Oh, Tae, youâre delusional.â he said, his voice a mockingly sweet coo.
Taehyungâs brow twitched, and he shoved Jimin away, glaring at him. âDonât call me delusional,â he snapped. âAnd stop laughing. Itâs not that funny.â
Jimin, still laughing, straightened up and threw an arm around Taehyungâs shoulders. âOh, but it is, Tae-Tae,â he teased, dragging out the nickname with enough sugar to cause cavities.
Taehyung immediately shoved him off. âDonât call me that!â he barked, though his glare wavered when Jimin stumbled backward, his laughter echoing in the room.
âLetâs be real,â Jimin said, wiping a fake tear from his eye. âJungkook saying please? Youâve got better odds of him baking us cupcakes with love letters on top.â
Seokjin watched the entire scene unfold with a quiet sigh, his arms falling to his sides as he shook his head. âBloody idiots,â he muttered under his breath, though his eyes betrayed the fondness he felt for them all.
Jungkook, who had been leaning against the wall with the air of someone far too cool to care, quirked an eyebrow. He didnât say anythingâhe didnât need to. The faint smirk on his lips said it all: âNot happening.â
âSee?â Jimin said, gesturing toward Jungkook with a wide grin, as if the smirk was proof enough of what heâd been saying.
Taehyung huffed, rolling his eyes as he glared at Jungkook. "Heâs insufferable." he muttered, his voice flat but dripping with monotony. He threw the words out with the kind of disinterest that only Taehyung could manage, as though even arguing was beneath him.
âAlways has been,â Jimin agreed cheerfully, giving Taehyung a playful pat on the shoulder.
âYou want an invite?â Seokjin deadpanned, cutting through the noise like a knife. âFine. Jungkook, invite him.â
Jungkook didnât even look up. âNo.â
The room fell silent for a beat before Jimin broke into another fit of laughter. âI told you!â he howled, practically doubling over again. âThat guy would rather eat his shoe than say the p-word.â
âDonât encourage him,â Taehyung muttered, though the corner of his mouth twitched.
Jimin grinned, his eyes sparkling mischievously. âWhatâs the matter, Tae? Expecting something special from him? Maybe a song, a serenade, flowersââ
âShut up,â Taehyung snapped, his face turning red as he swatted at Jimin His glare faltering just enough to reveal a flicker of amusement behind his annoyed facade.
Namjoon, trying to keep it together, clamped a hand over his mouth, his shoulders shaking slightly with suppressed laughter. Seokjin did the same, clearing his throat to hide the grin threatening to break free. You couldnât hold back either, a soft laugh slipping from your lips. The sound of it made everyone snap their heads in your direction, and you immediately went still.
âOh, for the love ofââ Taehyung groaned, standing up abruptly, the chair scraping loudly as he shoved it back. âThis is ridiculous. Forget it. Iâm not playing this game.â
âYouâre still mad, arenât you?â Jimin pressed, a laugh already escaping as he took a step back, clearly enjoying pushing Taehyungâs buttons.
âLike I care!â Taehyung shot back, his hands gesturing wildly before he turned on his heel. He glared at Jungkook one last time. âWhoâd want to spend time with a jerk like him anyway?â
You couldnât help but agree, nodding your head. It was truly, genuinely, sincerely, honestly the most truthful statement you'd heard all day. Even Jungkook chuckled at Taehyung's behaviour, and your gaze snapped back to Jungkook. You stared at him in disbelief; you never thought you'd see this man smiling. Yet here he was, standing in all his glory, proving you wrong. Jungkook? Laughing? Relaxed? It was like spotting a unicorn in the wild. For the first time, he didnât look like the insufferable boss you were growing to despise. He looked...earth-shatteringly handsome. You cursed under your breath, clenching your fists to keep from staring too long.
It made you feel like your brain was short-circuiting. Here was this asshole of a man, acting like he was above it all, and yet⌠he was smiling. It made him look almost⌠normal.
Why was he so ridiculously handsome? He was a jerk, a complete ass, yet... there was something about him. He was perfect boyfriend material, especially with those tattoos. You'd seen them in magazines, but you wouldn't mind seeing them in real life.
He was a jerk, but otherwise, he was perfect boyfriend material, especially with those tattoos. You'd seen them in magazines, but you wouldn't mind seeing them in real life.
You shook your head abruptly, as if physically trying to dislodge the thought. Nope. Absolutely not. Stop it.
Why were you thinking all this nonsense?
Because no matter how annoyingly perfect he looked in that momentârelaxed, smirking, and effortlessly magneticâyou knew better. He wasnât your type. Not even close. You were way too smart to fall for someone as much of a piece of shit as he was.
As soon as your eyes met Jungkookâs, your heart dropped into your stomach. Your legs wobbled, the ground beneath you suddenly felt unstable. You felt like the world had stopped. The only thing keeping you upright was the edge of the table you leaned against, gripping it so tightly your knuckles turned white. It was like he had forgotten you were even there, but now that he remembered... you were in trouble.
Your thoughts were a mess, a rush of panic flooding your veins. Please, don't fire me. Please don't fire me, you repeated over and over in your mind. His stare made you feel like a sheep waiting to be devoured by a wolfâhelpless and small.
Jungkook opened his mouth to speak, but before he could, Jiminâs voice cut through, loud but tensed. "Why are you still standing here?" he asked, his eyes darting nervously between you and Jungkook. "I'm sure you have work to do."
You nodded quickly, too quickly, your head bobbing furiously in agreement.
âWhat work, Jimin?â Jungkook snapped, his voice low and brimming with frustration. âSheâs fired,â he declared, sending a shiver down your spine. His words felt like a physical blow, the weight of them crushing your chest. You could barely hear the rest of his sentence as panic drowned out everything elseâI've had enough of herâŚ
What to do now?
Cry, a voice whispered in the back of your head.
Jimin, however, wasnât having any of it. âEnough, Jungkook!â he shot back, his voice hard and commanding. The sharpness in Jiminâs words was like a shield between you and Jungkookâs anger. You could see the way Jungkookâs expression shiftedâhe was still seething, but Jimin left no room for argument.
âShe isnât fired, and itâs final,â Jimin said. You could see the muscles in his jaw twitching as he tried to control his temper.
Jungkook opened his mouth to retort, but Jimin cut him off with a simple wave of his hand, motioning for you to leave. You didnât need to be told twice. You bolted from the conference room, not even daring to look back. You werenât sure whether to be more terrified of Jungkook or grateful to Jimin. You knew youâd messed upâit was your faultâbut Jimin had chosen to take your side, and you couldnât understand why.
You sprinted down the hall toward the elevator. Your hands trembled as you jabbedâno, bangedâthe elevator button for the 26th floor. The wait felt agonizingly long.
When the elevator finally dinged open, you stumbled out, half-running to your desk. Collapsing into your chair, you let out a shaky breath and buried your face in your arms on the desk. Your head fell onto your desk with a loud thud.
What had just happened?
God, your first day almost became your last.
You took a deep, steadying breath and pushed yourself upright, gripping the edge of your desk to ground yourself. This isnât the time to wallow, you thought, brushing your hair back from your face with trembling fingers. You couldnât afford to crumble now.
You canât mess up again, you reminded yourself, wiping a hand over your face. Jimin mightâve saved you today, but luck wonât always be there neither⌠he. Luck was fleeting. It wasnât something you trusted. Not with your history. You let out a dry laugh under your breathâluck and you were like oil and water. You were the ultimate symbol of bad luck, and that delightfully beautiful director of Jeon Enterprises had simply taken pity on you. Yes, it wasnât luck. It was Jiminâs mercy, and you couldnât count on it happening twice. Especially not when your bossâthe arrogant bastard himselfâwas likely already sharpening his knives for round two.
The thought of Jungkookâhis dark, piercing gazeâstill lingered in your mind, but you forced yourself to focus. He was a devil, no doubt, and you... you were just the unlucky fool who happened to cross his path.
You couldn't afford to mess up again. Play it safe, you told yourself. Do your job right and keep your head down. You couldnât give him another reason to unleash his wrath.
Your eyes fell to the stack of files in front of you, and a sinking feeling hit you hard in the stomach. The pile seemed to grow taller with each breath you took. The next meeting was only thirty minutes away
You glanced at the files scattered across your desk. Focus, you reminded yourself, slapping your cheeks lightly to snap out of it. The next meeting was in thirty minutes, and you didnât have the luxury of time to curse your misfortune or that insufferable man.
Your eyes darted over the papers, frustration bubbling up as you began sifting through them. The previous secretaryâwhoever they wereâhad left behind a tangled mess. A spectacularly awful mess.
 How was this even possible?
You could almost feel your blood pressure rise as you examined the glaring errors. The deadlines were completely out of sync with the clientâs expectations, the budget allocations were so far off it was laughable, and one section even referenced an entirely different project altogether. If this wasnât fixed in time for the meeting, it would be a complete disaster, and you were the one whoâd have to face the consequences.
âThis is a joke,â you muttered. You grabbed a pen, tapping it furiously against the table as your brain raced to come up with a plan.
Half an hour. Thatâs all you had to fix this disaster before you had to present it to a room full of people, including him.
"Fuck you! Whoever you are." you muttered under your breath, pushing your sleeves up, ignoring the beads of sweat forming on your forehead. Get it together, you scolded yourself. âThis isnât rocket science.â Your voice cracked slightly as you muttered the words aloud, as if hearing them would calm the storm raging inside you.
You grabbed the laptop, pulling up emails and client notes to cross-check the project details. The keyboard clacked furiously under your hands. Your brows furrowed in concentration, your lips pressed into a tight line. You clicked open the soft copy of the file, eyes scanning the screen quickly.
You stole a glance at the clock, and your heart nearly stopped. Twenty minutes left. Fuck.
The dull throb behind your temples was growing each passing minute, but you didnât have the luxury to slow down. Tears? Not an option. You didnât have time for that. Not when your whole career was teetering on the edge of disaster.
Get through the day without Jungkook turning you into his next verbal target.
 The mistakes were too obvious to miss, too dangerous to ignore. If the client saw these errors, it wasnât just your job on the lineâit was Jeon Enterprises' reputation. And that would mean your boss, Jungkook, would tear you apart, slowly and painfully.
 what have you done to deserve this.
Your fingers slammed against the keyboard as you raced through the sections. The section referencing the wrong project? Gone, replaced with the right one. The mismatched deadlines? Adjusted. The budget allocations that didnât even make sense? Rewritten, recalculated, and double-checked.
You needed to print the corrected version. Your hands trembled as you stared at the screen, unsure of where to even begin this process. This wasnât just a small mistake anymoreâit felt like the whole day was falling apart in real time. You stared at the screen with mounting dread. Print. Where?
You slapped the print button, watching as the computer confirmed that it was printing, but your brain was far from settled. Printer? Whereâs the damn printer? Your heart pounded as you stood, snatching up your blazer and dashing out of your office.
The hallway felt endless as you looked down the corridor. You felt a wave of frustration, the kind youâd never experienced before. You could have screamed, a sound that would shake the walls, but you couldnât. Instead, you forced a deep breath through your nose and tried to calm yourself.
Finally, you spotted the printer at the end of the hallâright by the breakroom, its small glowing light blinking. It should have been a simple solution, but when you saw the machine, all you felt was pure, hot rage. Why is it always this difficult?
Why did it feel like everything was against you today?
Because of course, it jammed halfway through. Your fingers gripped the edge of the counter as you leaned down, yanking at the paper slot with all your might. The printer groaned, then jammed, and you let out an angry sound that came out as a strangled groan.
âCome on, you stupid thingâwork!â you hissed, muttering curses that seemed to make you feel worse. Stupid thing!
You slammed the print button again, your fingers stabbing at the machine. Finally, the printer whirred, clicked, and then began its slow, steady rhythm. You let out a shaky breath, pressing your hand against your forehead to steady the dizziness threatening the edges of your focus.
Finally, the documents started coming out. You grabbed them. You ran your hands over the pages, smoothing them down compulsively as though that would make them more trustworthy. You clutched it like it was your lifeline. Not perfect, but it'll have to do. Once back in your cabin, you shoved the papers into a folder, your chest still tight.
The clock on the wall caught your attention.
Ten minutes left.
 You could barely breathe as you walked out of your office, your feet moving almost on autopilot. In no time, you found yourself standing in front of Jungkookâs office.
You knocked. Once. Twice. And then⌠you waited.
 You closed your eyes briefly, took a steadying breath. You bit your lip, and raised your hand to knock thrice.
"Come in!" Jungkookâs voice rang out, gruff and loud, cutting through the air. You hesitated for a second before pushing the door open, and every head in the room snapped toward you. You stepped inside, your heart racing as you greeted them with a polite but fake smile, trying your best to keep it together. Only Jimin smiled back. The others... they just stared, like you were some strange creature. Jin and Namjoon looked shockedâwhy? What was going on? And then there was Taehyung, his eyes wide with what could only be described as disbelief.
Jimin spoke first, his voice light and effortless, and you couldn't help but thank your lucky starsâor maybe it was just Jimin being Jimin. âYou need something?â
You gave a short nod and turned to face Jungkook. His eyes narrowed, his arms crossing over his chest, his whole posture screaming annoyance. His jaw was clenched so tight it seemed like he might snap any second. You swallowed hard, trying not to show how much his stare rattled you.
"Yeah. I was merely here to remind Mr. Jeon that the meeting starts in⌠like tenâno, seven minutes now," you managed to say, your voice wavering just a little as you spoke. Your hands were clenched at your sides, and you forced yourself not to fidget.
You stole a quick glance around the room. Jin and Namjoon had gone back to their own conversations, but Taehyung was still staring at you, mouth slightly open like he couldn't believe you were standing there. Jungkook still hadnât said anything, his eyes still boring into you.
"Thank you," Jimin said, his smile soft and genuine. "Heâll be there."
You nodded once, trying not to let your relief show too much. You gave a quick, polite bow of your head, then turned, making your way to the door, your steps hurried but controlled. As you left the room, you couldnât help but thinkâJimin was an angel, working for a devil. You werenât sure what you wouldâve done without him today.
As you walked out of his cabin, you caught the faintest sound of Taehyungâs voice drifting behind you.
âDamn, dude! Sheâs something. She must be⌠to get you this worked up. Wow! I loved it.â
You didnât linger to hear the rest, though. It was like your feet were moving faster than your brain, the urgency propelling you back to your cabin. You sprinted to your desk, your hands shaking as you skimmed through the pages one final time. You stapled them together. You had to present this with confidence, one mistake and Jungkook would tear you apart.
Five minutes left.
âYouâve got this. Just fake it. Fake it all the way.â
Your heels clicked sharply against the marble floors as you made your way to the conference room. Your grip on the file tightened, your knuckles white. When you reached the door. With a firm push, you stepped inside.
Walking to the table, you laid down the stack of updated project files, replacing the older copies. Once every seat had the corrected file, you finally slid into your chair. The leather seat creaked softly as you sank into it, and you folded your hands tightly in your lap to steady them. You darted a glance at the door, waiting for everyone's but specially Jungkookâs inevitable arrival. You flipped through the files for what felt like the hundredth time. The numbers blurred slightly before your eyes, but you forced yourself to focus.
The sharp sound of the door opening made your head snap up. Jungkook walked in with the same air of authority that always seemed to announce his presence before he even spoke. His eyes locked onto you, narrowing instantly, and his jaw clenched so tight you swore you heard his teeth grind.
You stifled a sigh, biting the inside of your cheek to keep your face neutral. What now? You wondered bitterly, resisting the urge to roll your eyes. Jungkook didnât just dislike youâhe hated youâlike, deep, unrelenting hatred. For what reason? Who knew. And frankly, you didnât care. If you could, you wouldâve told him to take his reasons, his anger, and his goddamn temper tantrums and shove them up his perfectly tailored ass, but you knew that wouldnât help you keep your job.
He moved around the room with precision, as he made his way to his seat. His attention was fixed on you, like you were some annoying fly he wanted to swat. You straightened in your chair. He dropped into his chair with an air of casual authority and grace of someone far too confident for their own good.
For a moment, your traitorous thoughts drifted. He was handsomeâannoyingly so. Sharp jawline, paradoxically piercing boba eyes, and a frame that looked like it was carved by a sculptor. But his attitude? That was enough to ruin the whole package. If only his personality matched his looks. If only he wasnât such a pompous, insufferable jerk. Instead of charm, he had an ego the size of the goddamn building. If he had even an ounce of kindness or respect to him, he wouldâve been perfect. But no, instead he walked with the kind of arrogance that could suffocate a room, his back rigid and his posture as stiff as the stick lodged firmly up his ass.
You shook the thought from your head. He wasnât worth your time.
The door opened again, and this time it was the clients. Jungkook stood, but just barely.
He simply stood halfway and gave a curt nod that was so half-hearted you wondered if it hurt his pride to be polite. God forbid Mr. Perfect lower himself to basic manners. His expression didnât changeâstoic and unbotheredâwhile yours shifted into a polite mask. Maybe you were expecting too much. Maybe you were the problem. You slid your chair closer to the table and sat down next to him. You offered the clients a small smile, hoping to compensate for Jungkookâs complete lack of warmth.
But his eyes. God, his eyes. They didnât stray far from you.
You placed the documents in front of him. You kept your gaze fixed on the table, careful not to meet his boba eyes. âHere! Mr. Jeon,â you whispered, your voice as even and professional as you could manage. The last thing you wanted was to give him even an inch to criticize you.
Before you could pull your hand back, his fingers closed around the file. His hand was warmâtoo warmâand for just a moment, your cold, dainty fingers brushed against his. The warmth of his hand lingered on yours, and you couldnât bring yourself to pull away. Your body felt paralyzed, shocked, maybe even mesmerized by the sensation. You couldnât pull awayânot because you didnât want to, but because you physically couldnât.
Jungkookâs hand retreated first, leaving your fingers tingling. You leaned back in your chair, clearing your throat as heat crept up your neck. You turned your attention to the clients, offering a polite smile. They exchanged a few glances, their expressions unreadable.
Why are they looking at me like that?
Before you could figure it out, Jungkookâs voice cut through the silence, quiet and low. "Why are you making that face?"
You turned toward him, startled. âHuh?â
He didnât look at you, his gaze fixed on the papers in front of him as he leaned back in his seat. His voice was soft, like a whisper, but it hit you like a punch to the gut.
âYou look like youâre constipating,â he said, his tone casual, smooth, utterly calmâand utterly cruel and casual, as though commenting on the weather.
Your face fell. What did he just say? Your mouth fell open slightly in horror, heat rushing to your face. He did not just say that. You glared at the side of his face, imagining all the ways you could strangle him with the tie he wore so smugly. Murder was illegal, but maybe, just maybe, you could make an exception.
 Ignore him. Heâs not worth it or⌠should you just strangle him? Oh, you wanted to strangle him. No, you needed to strangle him. Who even says that? You huffed, straightening in your seat and glaring at the file in front of you.
Jungkook flipped open the folder, his sharp eyes scanning the documents.
And then it happenedâa faint smirk tugged at the corner of his lips, so subtle you almost missed it. âLetâs begin,â he said smoothly, finally turning his attention to the clients. But just before he did, his gaze flicked to you, brief but searing.
The meeting began.
The meeting dragged on. Your hand ached from jotting down notes, your fingers stiff as they moved across the page. All you could think about was how Jungkook managed to handle these clientsâtheir demands were endless, their standards sky-high. Jungkook, somehow, handled their lofty standards with an ease that almost infuriated you. How could someone so insufferable be so damn good at this? You, however, were drained. Mentally, physically, emotionally. All you wanted was to go home, curl up, and forget this entire ordeal. But the clients showed no signs of slowing, so neither could you. You scribbled furiously, keeping up with the endless stream of requests and comments, your hand cramping around the pen. Every now and then, you stole glances at the clock, silently begging for it all to end.
Finally, after what felt like hours, the meeting came to an end.
 The clients rose, shaking Jungkookâs hand with smiles that didnât quite reach their eyes. âThank you for your time, Mr. Jeon,â one of them said, their tone oozing professionalism. Then their gaze flicked to you, offering a curt nodâno words, no acknowledgment of your work. You swallowed the frustration bubbling up in your chest and nodded back, forcing a tight-lipped smile. Typical. You bit the inside of your cheek, swallowing the bitter taste of resentment as they exited the room. Well, women in corporate field.
The door clicked shut, leaving you alone with Jungkook. Your mind was hyper-aware of his presence.
He was leaning back, the picture of ease, his chair swinging slightly from left to right. His left leg rested over his right, one arm draped casually across the armrest. He didnât speak, didnât make a sound, but the intensity of his stare was enough. You didnât dare look up. Not after what had happened earlier. Not after what he said earlier.
You stole a glance, his tie had loosened slightly, the top button of his shirt undone. When he did that? He looked like he owned the entire world, and the infuriating thing wasâhe probably did.
You remembered what you thought while applying for this job: How hard could it be to work for him?
Youâd found out the hard way, within mere hours.
Jeon Jungkook wasnât just hard to work forâhe was impossible. A devil in designer suits. A man who had no mercy and no patience, especially not for someone like you. Your first day had made that abundantly clear in the worst way possible.
Jeon Jungkook wasnât someone to take lightly. He was a storm you hadnât prepared for, and it was already threatening to swallow you whole.
You pushed the glass door open, ready to step out, but then you heard itâhis voice, loud and clear.
"Pebble!"
You froze. Slowly, you turned around, almost colliding with the door in the process. His eyes locked onto yours, and a subtle smirk tugged at the corner of his lips. It wasnât the friendly kindâit was something else. Something that made you feel both irritated and, disturbingly, giddy.
"What?" you muttered, your voice low and unsure. You weren't able to understand why you gripped it ever so tightly.
He stood from his chair, rising with an ease that felt effortless, his hands casually buried in his pockets. His movements were smooth, deliberate, as if he had all the time in the world to examine you. He was far too good-looking for your sanity, far too composed, far too everything.
 Fuck him, and fuck your good sense.
What was this? Why were you feeling so fragile in front of him? You didnât have time to figure it out because, in three long strides, he was standing in front of you, so close that the scent of his cologne wrapped around you. His eyes were still on you, as if he were studying youâno, devouring you with just a glance. You wanted to look away, but you couldnât. And that, right there, made you even more furious.
Is this guy stupid? you wondered. What was the point of staring like that? It felt intrusive, unnerving, yet somehow, you couldnât tear your own gaze away.
 Staring, in your book, was the hallmark of cheap behaviour, reserved for people with no manners or boundaries. But he somehow pulled it off, with that smirk and those features and that way he seemed to have everything in the world under control. As if his ridiculous good looks gave him a free pass.
"Coffee. In my office."
"Huh?" was all you could manage, your voice barely above a whisper, still unsure of what was happening.
He tsked, shaking his head like you were hopeless. âYou heard me. Black. No sugar. MsâŚâ he trailed off, his brow furrowing slightly.
Your eyes widened in realization. He didnât know your name. Or worseâhe hadnât even tried to know it until now. Your throat tightened, and you opened your mouth, about to respond, but before a single word could leave your lips, he finished with,
"Pebble."
Your mouth hung open, as you watched him leave.
Pebble.
He had just called you Pebble.
You stood there, staring, stunned, unable to believe what just happened.
He was the most disrespectful, irritating, unbearable person you had ever met.
The anger built up in you until you couldnât stand still anymore. You stomped your foot hard against the ground.
You would make him regret this.
Oh, you absolutely would.
With a resigned sigh, you turned toward the elevator, dragging your feet. At least you now knew where the coffee machine wasâdown at the far end of the floor. Great. More walking. You hadnât even done this much cardio in the past year, let alone in a single day. No wonder all the women here looked so fitâthey practically lived on their feet.
When you reached the elevator, you noticed himâJungkookâalready stepping into it. Your pace slowed instinctively. No way were you getting in that elevator with him, even for a single second. He wouldnât stop the elevator for you anywayâhe was too much of a jerk to care.
But when had life ever gone according to your plans?
Before you could change direction, you heard the sound of the doors closing and sliding back open.
Oh, hell no. Your body tensed. You didn't want to step in there with him, but you didnât have a choice. You dragged your feet reluctantly. The annoyance in his eyes deepened, and a muscle in his jaw twitched, like he was already regretting his decision to wait for you.
Finally, you reached the door.
âGet fucking in, woman.â
You didnât need to be told twice. You stepped inside, muttering curses in your head, and the doors slid shut with a soft ding.
 You didnât dare move, didnât dare look at him, but you could feel his gaze lingering on you, like he was trying to figure you out or, worse, punish you for existing.
Maybe he was pissed.
And you? You couldnât decide if you hated him more in this moment or if you just wanted to get out of this damn elevator as quickly as possible.
âI thought you had work here,â he said, his tone casual.
âHuh?â you managed, surprised.
He shook his head, as if you were already the most frustrating thing heâd encountered that day.
âDo you know anything else besides âhuh?ââ
You opened your mouth to retort, but he didnât wait. âI said, I thought you had work here.â
âWhat work?â you snapped. His eyes flared. But the bastard smirked, like heâd been expecting this reaction.
âWhat meeting do we have next, Pebble?â His voice was smooth, almost playful.
Your stomach dropped. Pebble. He had just said it again. But. You froze. His words lingered in your mind like a bad omen, but all that filled your head was white noise. The name of the company⌠where was it? Shit.
He chuckled, the sound low and smooth, just to make sure you knew how badly youâd messed up. âYou need to collect some files from marketing and sales team. You forgot.â
The damn files. I forgot? You swallowed hard, glancing around the elevator as if the walls could give you an answer.
âWhat are you trying to doâbreak the glass and jump into the sales and marketing floor?â he said, his tone as bored as his expression. His words felt cruel, but you knew there was a bite of truth to them.
You shook your head, cheeks heating as you mentally berated yourself. You could feel the heat creeping up your neck, embarrassed and annoyed. More walking. Thatâs all you could think about now.
The elevator doors opened, and Jungkook stepped out first. He glanced up at you, raising an eyebrow, and for a split second, you thoughtâjust maybeâhe might say something remotely decent. But no, that was far too much to hope for. His lips curled into that damn smirk as he turned away and said, âCoffee. On my desk. In five minutes.â
Before you could even respond, he turned around and walked away.
You stepped out of the elevator, its door closing behind you. You let out a frustrated exhale. . God, I hate him. You made your way to the coffee machine. You prepared the coffee just like heâd ordered, and even the smell made your stomach churn. The bitterness of it matched the bitterness radiating from him. No wonder he was always so damn miserable. A person who drank this much bitter coffee could only have a bitter heart.
You walked down the hall to his office. The door was slightly ajar, and you knocked softly, holding the cup in your hands.
âCome in,â he barked again from inside.
You pushed the door open and stepped inside, placing the coffee on his desk. He was sitting at his desk, back straight, his sharp features focused on his laptop. The desk was neat, pristine, every paper and pen in its place, a stark contrast to the chaos on your desk.
âHere, Mr. Jeon,â you said, your voice tight with forced politeness.
He didnât even look at you. Instead, he grabbed the cup, bringing it to his lips like it was the most important thing in the world. His eyes fluttered closed as he took the first sip, and you watched in disbelief as he sighed deeply, as though heâd just tasted heaven.
âGood,â he muttered, but it wasnât directed at youâit was all about the coffee. Your stomach turned at the absurdity of it. He didnât even acknowledge the fact that youâd stood there, prepared it, and handed it to him.
âSend Jimin in my office. Now, leave,â he demanded, his voice flat, as if he were speaking to a wall, not a person.
 Every inch of you wanted to pull his hair out, to throw something across his perfectly organized desk. Instead, you nodded stiffly.
âSure, Mr. Jeon,â you said, forcing the words past your clenched teeth before turning on your heel and leaving.
Once outside, the first thing you did was head straight for Jimin, who was at his desk, buried in papers. His workspace was cluttered with post-its, notes, and scribbles. His eyes lifted when you approached, and though his face showed signs of being busy, his greeting was polite as ever.
âWhat brings you here, Ms. âŚ,â he began, with a soft smile.
âMr. Jeon wants you in his office,â you replied, keeping it brief. You didn't have the energy to engage in any more small talk.
"Why?" Jimin asked, as he stood up, closing the file in his hands and sliding his blazer on with a sharp tug. You just shrugged. Jimin gave a small nod.
âAlright,â he said, adjusting his blazer. His tone indicated he didnât mind being interrupted. âIâll head in there.â You watched as he walked toward the hallway.
You followed your own path toward the marketing department first. You handed over the files, your hands sore from too much writing, before heading toward the sales department. The constant movement was starting to wear you down, but you couldnât let it show. You did the same at the sales department, before finally making your way back to your office, your feet aching more than ever. This is going to be a long day, you thought, pressing a hand to your lower back as you settled into your chair.
Before you could catch a break, the clock ticked, signaling that it was time for the next meeting. You picked yourself up again, shoulders sore and heavy, and made your way back toward Jungkookâs office.
You knocked on the door before stepping in, your hand pressing into the wood with slightly trembling fingers. This time Jimin was in there with him, seated on the couch. He looked agitatedâhands running through his hair as he exchanged words with Jungkook.
You hesitated at the threshold. You didnât want to intrude on their conversation. You quickly turned on your heel, shaking your head as you backed out. These guys were insane.
You closed the door behind you with a gentle push and let out a shaky exhale. Your hands gripped your notebook tightly as you walked back toward the hallway.
The next meetings were a blur. For reasons you couldnât quite explain, you found yourself relieved when Jungkook skipped every other meeting for the day. He didn't show up, and Jimin took over. The clients didnât seem to mind the change, and in fact, it made things easier. Jiminâs presence was soothing. His voice was soft, his smile was kind. He spoke in careful sentences, his calm composure like a reassuring presence. Working with him was smoother, quieterâlovelier, even. He made the chaos of the day seem more manageable, and you found yourself wishing you found yourself wishing you could work for Jimin, just him.
But you quickly shut that thought down. That wasnât possible, not when you were stuck in this job, tied to Jungkook. No matter how much you hated it, you had to stick around. It was unviable to leave, even though every part of you screamed for the chance to escape. You have to stick around him.
As the last meeting came to an end, you gathered the files and followed Jimin out of the conference room. He took the files from your hands. You were thankful for his help, but the lingering feeling of being under the spotlight didnât fade. You hated the attention, and of course, everyone would stare. Having the director of the company himself helping you with your work was far too big of a deal. The eyes of all the female employees had burned into you as you walked out. You couldnât shake the sense of discomfort, and it only worsened as you stepped into the elevator with Jimin.
"Mr. Park, you really donât have to do this," you said, offering a shy smile as the elevator doors slid shut behind you.
Jimin, however, seemed unfazed. He gave a lazy smile, his voice light as he answered. "Oh, Iâm not doing it for you." Jimin leaned casually against the wall, eyes scanning the floor numbers as they lit up.
You blinked, confused, your brows knitting together. "Whatâs that supposed to mean?"
He turned his head, flashing you a mischievous grin. "Itâs more for me, really."
Your frown deepened. "For you?" You couldnât hide your confusion, but Jimin just chuckled, clearly entertained by your reaction.
"You see," he began, shifting slightly to face you fully. His eyes sparkled with a playful yet sincere gleam. "I come from old money. I just can't stand the idea of a woman doing something like that when Iâm around. Makes me feel like Iâm failing somewhere. Iâve got this fragile ego, you know?" His voice was light, teasing, but his smile softened as he continued. "It just feels better to help out. Plus, itâs... good manners."
"Yeah?" You asked, tilting your head slightly, your eyebrows furrowing as you tried to make sense of his words. The slight smirk tugging at his lips told you he knew you were lost but didnât care enough to explain. Instead, he only shrugged nonchalantly, his expression so casual it almost felt dismissive.
Before you could respond further, the elevator dinged softly, and the doors slid open. Jimin stepped out first. You followed behind as you adjusted your grip on the files. He led the way to your cabin, his presence drawing a few curious glances from colleagues. You felt those stares prickling at your back again, but Jimin seemed entirely unbothered. He walked you to your cabin, while you struggled to keep up with his pace. When he finally reached your desk, he placed the stack of five thick files down with practiced ease, brushing invisible dust off his hands like it was no big deal.
"All set. Anything else you need before I head out?" he asked, his voice light as he straightened his blazer.
Thanks again, Mr. Park," you said, shaking your head.
Jimin gave a small nod in return, stepping back. Just as he turned to leave, he glanced over his shoulder. "Take care, pretty," he said, his tone casual, yet the words felt deliberate.
Your hands froze mid-motion as your head snapped up, eyes widening in surprise. Heat rushed to your face, and you felt the unmistakable blush spreading across your cheeks like wildfire. You stared at the empty doorway where Jimin had disappeared, his words echoing in your mind.
"What the hell," you muttered under your breath. Forcing yourself to focus, you picked up the files, flipping through the pages with renewed determination. It was time to finish up for the day, but not before ensuring everything was in order for tomorrow. Your fingers worked quickly, your eyes scanning schedules and notes, the lingering warmth on your cheeks refusing to fade completely.
When you finally finished your work, you grabbed the file Jungkook had instructed you to complete and headed to his office. As you approached, you noticed the door slightly ajar. Through the small gap, you could see Jimin sitting in one of the chairs in front of Jungkookâs desk. Jungkook, on the other hand, sat with his brows furrowed in a way that seemed permanently etched into his face. It was a wonder Jimin didnât crack under the weight of his perpetual grimace. If he wasnât so ridiculously good-looking, you were certain his demeanour wouldâve been a massive letdown.
"Are you even human?" Jimin's voice rose, his tone laced with disbelief as he leaned forward, his palms slapping against the desk with a dull thud. His lips pressed tightly together. His words seemed to hit like a quiet plea, but Jungkook didnât seem to care. His eyes stayed glued to his file as he flipped the pages.
"I am dying over here. I am that tired and you are one of the reasons behind it. Donât you dare ignore me, Jeon Jungkook!" Jimin continued, his voice a mixture of disbelief and frustration. His words grew louder as he leaned back in his chair, throwing his hands up in the air, as if trying to physically puncture Jungkookâs indifference.
"Huh?" Jungkookâs voice was flat, almost absent, as he gave Jimin just a single glance, his eyes flickering for a mere millisecond before he turned back to the file in his hands. He gave a distracted nod, not sparing Jimin much more attention.
Jiminâs jaw dropped slightly, his annoyance reaching a boiling point. "Seriously!" he exclaimed. His fingers curled into loose fists as he leaned back, pacing a step before planting his hands on his hips. "You made me handle all your meetings and deal with my own workload. Iâve been running around like a headless chicken while you sit here, all cozy with your stupid papers! Do you not have any regardâ"
"You're right," Jungkook said, his voice steady and matter-of-fact, cutting off Jiminâs rambling mid-sentence. He slowly closed the file in front of him and placed it neatly to the side. This time, he leaned back in his chair, his posture loosening slightly as he crossed his arms over his chest. His dark, boba eyes locked on Jiminâs. "I am sorry, hyung. You're always picking up the slack for me. I don't say it enough, but⌠Iâm really grateful. I couldnât do this without you."
Jimin froze for a moment, his brow furrowing as he eyed Jungkook suspiciously. His eyes narrowed, and he tilted his head, studying Jungkook as if he had just grown a second head. "Oh? Whatâs wrong with you?" he asked, dragging the words out slowly. He leaned forward in his chair, elbows digging into the edge of Jungkook's desk. "Show me your head. You punk, Iâm sure you hit it somewhere."
Jimin shot up from his seat and lunged across the desk with inflated urgency, his hand reaching for Jungkook's head like a concerned but overly dramatic mother.
"Jimin-shi!" Jungkook exclaimed, his voice rising in protest as he swatted at Jiminâs hands. He grabbed Jiminâs wrists, prying them away from his head. His brows knitted together as he leaned back further in his chair, out of reach, glaring at Jimin. "I swear, Iâll kill you."
"There you are," Jimin said, a grin spreading across his face as he let out a sigh. He flopped back into his chair, dramatically wiping his brow as if the ordeal had been exhausting. "I was worried for nothing. Glad to see the real grumpy, homicidal self's still here."
Before they could exchange any more words, you finally stepped forward, your knuckles rapping lightly on the doorframe.
Knock, knock.
The sound broke through, causing both their heads to snap in your direction.
For a moment, you felt rooted to the spot, like a deer caught in headlights. You tightened your grip on the file in your hands, suddenly hyper-aware of how out of place you felt. Clearing your throat, you finally stepped inside. "Sorry to interrupt," you said.
Jiminâs lips curved into a faint smile, and he tilted his head, gesturing toward the file. "Itâs fine. Come in. Looks like someoneâs got work to do, unlike us," he teased, his tone light.
You tried your best to force a smile onto your faceâa polite, controlled, and friendly expressionâbut as your eyes met his. Your throat felt like it had closed up, your voice thin and wobbly. Why did he make you so nervous? Yes, he was intimidating. Yes, youâd dealt with difficult bosses before. But there was something about himâsomething that felt wrong, a shrill, intense warning in the back of your mind, like a distant alarm telling you danger was near.
Your heels clicked softly against the floor as you passed Jiminâs chair. He was sitting casually, his hands clasped behind his head, completely at ease as he looked over at you. You stopped beside Jungkook's desk, just behind where Jimin was sitting. "Mr. Jeon, I just finished the tasks you assigned." Your voice was soft but steady as you extended the file toward him. You forced yourself to meet his gaze, though it felt like staring into the eye of the devil. "Hereâs the file. Iâm leaving now, so I was wondering if thereâs anything else you need before I go?"
Jungkook didnât respond right away. Instead, he leaned back in his chair, slowly and precisely. His sharp gaze scanned your face, lingering on your forced smile before sliding down to the file youâd placed on his desk. A smirk curled at the corners of his lips, and his eyesâsoft and doe-like at first glanceâbetrayed a sharp, predatory glint. "Actually," he drawled, his voice carried an edge that made your pulse quicken. He gestured lazily toward the towering stack of files on the far corner of his desk. "I do need something."
Your eyes widened as they darted to the stack, a silent gasp catching in your throat. The files seemed endless. You swallowed hard, glancing back at him, but his expression was unreadable. You couldnât decide if you were more nervous or outright afraid of what was coming next. "See those files?" he continued, tilting his head slightly, his tone casual as if he were commenting on the weather. "I need them reviewed and sorted by tomorrow."
And you just stood there for a moment, trying to figure out whether you had a choice, or if you were already drowning. Tomorrow? That was impossible. You turned back to Jungkook, hoping to find some hint that he was joking, but his expression was calm and unyielding, like carved stone.
"IâŚ" you began, but your voice faltered.
"Something wrong?" Jungkook asked, tilting his head slightly as if daring you to argue.
It was your first day, and you couldnât understand what went wrong. Youâd always thought Jungkook was handsome, admired him from the glossy pages of magazines and the distant buzz of news. You'd been excited, so excited to work for the most wanted bachelor in the continent. But now? Now, it wasnât going as planned.
Too much work. Too much. How could anyone be expected to handle this much work? You thought you could handle challenges, but this? This felt impossible. This was ridiculous. He was ridiculous. Youâd probably have to sell your soul to some demon and even then, it still wouldnât feel enough. You couldnât do this. You shouldnât have to do this. But the thought of giving up? That wasnât even an option. You wanted to scream. No. You didn't want to scream you wanted to kick him where the sun doesn't shine.
"To-tomorrow," you stammered, barely able to believe the words coming out of your mouth. You were close to snapping, but something in his gaze made you hesitate.
"Impossible?" Jungkook interrupted, his voice a low, smooth. His eyes locked on yours, the warmth in them replaced with ice. "Iâm not interested in hearing any excuses. You need to understand where and for who youâre working. Workload is a usual thing here. You either do it or resign. Itâs up to you. Nobodyâs begging you to stay."
The words were harsh. There was no softness to them, no room for debate, no compromise. He wanted you to know that you had no power here. His small, smug smile confirmed itâa clear taunt, a game to him, and you could feel it deep in your bones. He wasnât just being cold. No, he enjoyed this. He was tormenting you, and you knew it. He was such a sadistic being.
"Understood," you said, the words coming out of your mouth with a firmness that surprised even you.
You turned your back to him and grabbed the stack of files from where they were carelessly left. The moment you lifted them, you knew this was going to be hell. It was heavyâtoo heavyâfar heavier than youâd expected. Your arms shook as you struggled to balance them. You almost stumbled under the sheer force of it, but you steadied yourself.
You bit your lip, fighting back the urge to ask Jimin for help. You glanced toward him, only to find that he and Jungkook were locked in a silent staring match, their gazes locked like two wolves sizing each other up. Jimin looked like he was about to explode. You couldnât drag him into this. He already looked like he was walking a thin line, and you didnât want to add to the fire. Besides, Jimin looked angry enough already.
So, you started walking.
You struggled your way out of his office. Your legs wobbled under the weight, and you nearly stumbled into the doorframe as you tried to maintain your balance. You wanted to scream. You hated him. You hated everything about this. Him. His smug smile. His icy tone. His ridiculous expectations. In truth, youâd never felt this much resentment toward anyone. Not even your previous bosses had managed to push you this far. But Jungkook? He was something else entirely. A walking nightmare wrapped in a handsome package, and you were stuck in it.
The moment you stepped into your office, you slammed the door behind you. You were done. You were going home. You couldnât wait to get out of here. You grabbed your bag and purse. You cursed under your breath, knowing you couldnât leave without grabbing those files too. There was no way you were going to spend another minute in that sterile, over-designed office. You adjusted the files again, and with a final shake of your head, you stepped out of your office. Your feet moved on autopilot as you walked toward the elevators. You didnât look back. There wasnât any point.
You knew youâd have to come back.
You knew youâd have to face him again.
But for now, you needed to get out.
The first day had been hell, all thanks to your devilish boss.
Jungkook and Jimin stepped out of Jungkookâs office. Jimin shot a sharp glare at Jungkook, his brow furrowed, lips pressed into a thin line. Jungkook, on the other hand, wore a smug, teasing smile that danced at the corners of his mouth. He could feel Jiminâs annoyance and found it far too satisfying to ignore.
"Jiminshi," Jungkook said casually, but Jimin didnât even give him a second glance, his jaw clenched as he exhaled sharply.
âShut up,â Jimin snapped back without hesitation, the heat in his voice enough to make Jungkook pause for a second. It almost made him laugh, but he quickly held it back, the corners of his mouth twitching.
"Come on, Jimin. Weâre already late. And Jin hyung will be mad if we get even more late," Jungkook added, his tone light but carrying an edge of urgency. His smile was easy and easygoing, the kind that always got under Jiminâs skin, and this time, it did the trick. Jimin let out a slow, exasperated breath, his shoulders slumping slightly as he let his irritation simmer down. He nodded once, fingers gripping his phone a little too tightly. His hand flexed as he tucked it back into his pocket, his gaze fixed forward as they walked towards the elevator side by side.
Jungkook pushed the button to call the elevator, and Jimin stood next to him, arms crossed, still giving off that frustrated vibe. But Jungkook could see the edges of his irritation slowly dulling. Even if Jimin was pissed, he wouldnât stay mad for long. Jimin was always the wise one, and he knew that getting upset over Jungkook's antics wouldnât help anything. Jin had invited them for dinner tonight, and they both knew this wasnât just another casual evening. Jimin had told Jin about youâhow Jungkook couldnât hear your thoughts, which still felt weird and foreign to him. It was strange, unsettling in a way, and Jin had wanted to discuss it. Heâd called them both over, saying he needed to talk. Jungkook was curious about what Jin had in mind. It wasnât every day that Jin invited them over, especially not without a reason.
The elevator doors opened, and Jungkook gestured for Jimin to enter first. Jimin grumbled under his breath but didnât argue. Jungkook stepped in behind him, and the two of them stood in silence. He was looking forward to the evening, not only to talk things out but also to meet Jin's wife. She was a kind and sweet woman. If it wasn't for Taehyung, they would have never met her. Jin had been married for years, but he rarely invited anyone over, keeping his personal life guarded. Jungkook and Jimin always looked forward to her company. Jin, on the other hand, was borderline obsessed with her. It was impossible not to notice the way he adored her. They all had to be on their best behavior when she was around, thoughâJinâs protective streak was well known.
The elevator doors closed with a quiet swoosh. They descended in silence, the air feeling heavier as their thoughts swirled. Both knew this night would give them more answers, but they werenât sure what kind of questions would arise afterward.
Jungkook and Jimin soon stepped into the reception area. The receptionist was seated at her desk, typing quickly, and her head lifted the moment she saw them. She offered a polite smile as they approached.
"Good evening, Mr. Jeon, Mr. Park," she greeted warmly. Jungkook didnât even spare her a glance. His eyes stayed ahead as he strode past her. He could hear her thoughtsâgranted, not every single word, but enough. Disgusting. Intrusive. He had no shame in admitting it. He didnât feel the need to entertain it, so he ignored her completely.
Jimin, however, was different. His easy smile came naturally as he gave her a small, polite nod. His body language was relaxed, his movements smooth as he walked beside Jungkook toward the parking lot. His gaze was neutral, a simple act of kindness that contrasted sharply with Jungkook's indifference.
They reached the parking lot, and Jimin climbed into his car, his fingers gripping the steering wheel a little tighter than usual. He had originally planned on making Jungkook drive, but the irritation bubbling in him from earlierâthe way Jungkook had acted with youâmade him rethink. He was annoyed, not just because of what happened, but because Jungkookâs behavior had crossed a line. It wasnât professionalism; it was just unnecessary rudeness. Pure and simple. Jimin had half a mind to lecture him, but instead, he started the engine, the sound of it roaring to life filling the air.
But Jungkook didnât get in his own car. His eyes werenât on Jimin, nor were they on the road. They were locked on somethingâor rather, someone.
You.
You were standing by your car, your arms crossed tightly over your chest, your head bowed slightly. Your shoulders looked tense, rigid, the way they always did when you were tired. You were clearly trying to calm yourself, but your lips were moving. You were speaking to yourself, or maybe the wind, but Jungkook could see itâyour face contorted into something that looked like frustration, like rage.
He observed you. His body was suddenly heavy, his thoughts distracted. You looked like you wanted to set the entire parking lot on fire. From the way your hands tightened into fists by your sides, Jungkook could tell you were seething, clearly ready to explode. He couldnât hear your thoughts, couldnât read your mind like he could with everyone else, but it didnât matter. Your expression was enough. You were cursing him out, he was sure of it.
It felt wrong to stare, but he couldnât stop himself. It was like an itch buried beneath his skin. His entire body ached to know what you were saying, but you were like a closed bookâimpossible to read. It irritated him. That feeling of helplessness, the itch he couldnât scratch. He hated not knowing exactly what you were thinking, hated that he couldnât tap into the storm swirling behind those eyes. You looked like you wanted to strangle him, and the idea actually made him chuckle darkly to himself.
As much as he hated to admit it, there was something oddly magnetic about you. You looked so exhausted, so ready to shatter, your emotions playing across your face like an open book he couldnât read. And that drove him insane. He wanted to know all of you. Every thought. Every word. Every secret. But he couldnât. And it pissed him off.
His chest tightened as he studied you, his mind working in circles. Even though you looked like you were about to explode with frustration, there was a strange sense of calm that settled over him. Paradoxically, your angerâyour confusionâwas like a balm to his restless thoughts. His hands twitched at his sides.
And you, completely unaware of his gaze, kept muttering, your words too quiet for him to catch. The cold wind swayed your hair, and Jungkook wondered if you had any idea what you were doing to him. He hated that he cared. And yet, he couldnât stop himself from wanting to know.
He shifted his weight, a part of him wanting to walk away, but another part of him... couldnât. He hated how curious he was about you. You were a puzzle he couldnât solve, and that was something Jungkook couldnât stand.
You suddenly turned your head, catching Jungkookâs eyes locked on you. Jungkookâs breath hitched. The shock of being caught sent a wave of heat through his chest. His eyes widened in alarm. Shit.
He knew. He knew you caught him. His face twisted into a mix of panic and frustration, and before he could overthink it, he whipped his head around, his heart pounding. He didnât wait. He didnât hesitate. He bolted into his car, yanked the door open, and slammed it shut behind him. Without looking back, the engine roared to life as he slammed his foot on the accelerator, his knuckles white around the steering wheel. He sped out of the parking lot, his focus darting between the road and his rearview mirror, where you were barely visible in the distance.
But before he could even breathe a sigh of relief, the heavens opened up. Rain poured down in sheets, soaking everything in an instant.
And thenâhe cursed.
He hated the rain. It always made him feel fragile, exposed, as though the world was pressing in on him in a way he couldnât control. The sound of it pounding on the roof, the windshield, and the pavementâit was overwhelming, and it irritated him that he couldnât understand why. It was stupid.
He glanced at the road, but Jiminâs car was nowhere to be seen. Of course, Jimin was probably already halfway there, and here he was, alone and soaked in this awful weather. His head was a mess, and his frustration felt tenfold. Great. He groaned, slamming his palm against the steering wheel. Perfect. The rain made it harder to see, the windshield wipers swishing furiously, but still, everything was blurry. Most people wouldâve slowed down, maybe even pulled over. But Jungkook wasnât like most people. So, he didnât. His foot pressed harder against the gas, not caring about the storm that made the road slippery and hard to see.
Then, Jungkookâs eyes caught sight of Jiminâs car parked outside a convenience store, headlights flickering through the rain. He let out a soft, amused chuckle, shaking his head.
Typical Jimin.
Jimin was probably picking up some random snacks or an odd gift for Jin and his wife. The thought made him grinâwhat could you possibly find at a convenience store that would be good enough for dinner with Jin and his wife? Not much, he figured. But Jimin would always find a way to make things interesting. There was no way Jimin would have time to get something nice, and even if he did, Jin wouldnât care. Namjoon wouldnât even be there; he was off with his girlfriend. It was the kind of casual thing Jimin would do, and Jungkook was sure Taehyung along with Eunji (Namjoon's girlfriend's daughter) would tease him mercilessly about whatever he picked up. He could already imagine the scene: Jimin sulking, pretending to be annoyed, but secretly enjoying the attention. He spotted Jimin emerging from the door, an awkward bag in his hands, and he wondered what he had found.
But it wasnât enough to make him stop. He didnât want to be stuck in the rain any longer, so he pressed on, the road slick with water. The roads were empty. His headlights swept through the downpour, and the sound of his engine roared louder, mixing with the patter of the rain. The world felt gray and cold, and for a moment, he wondered if anyone else was even out here. His eyes darted, blinked twice, then three times in quick succession. A sharp flash of light broke through the downpourâstreetlights, or headlightsâtoo fast, too sudden. He squinted, trying to make sense of it, but his vision was useless against the storm.
Somethingâs coming.
Before he could react, he felt it. A sharp, sudden jolt as his car lost control. His hand gripped the wheel harder, his muscles tensed. He tried desperately to turn the steering wheel, left, rightâanything to steady the carâbut it felt as though the wheels had no grip at all. His breathing came out in short, sharp bursts.
And then it hit.
The sound was deafeningâmetal groaning, glass shattering. Jungkookâs body was thrown against the seat as the car twirled. He barely registered the impact before the airbag exploded in his face with a loud whoosh, his head slamming into it with force. His vision blurred, and the pain came, biting and sudden. His chest felt tight, his breaths shallow. The car spunâonce, twice, thrice. His hands trembled against the steering wheel, and his head throbbed painfully. His heart felt as though it would pound out of his chest.
For a moment, everything went silent. He could feel his body shaking. His head swam, dizziness clouding his vision. His pulse raced as the rush of adrenaline hit, but then, fearâa feeling he rarely ever feltâtook over. It wasnât supposed to be like this. He wasn't supposed to feel like this. Not after Mr. Park took him in. Not after Jimin became his family. He wasnât supposed to feel this vulnerable. But now, the sensation was loud and personal, crawling up to his heart, through his arms, and into his bones.
Jungkook's world spun around him, the blur of the rain and the crash fading into nothingness. Suddenly, time seemed to stop. The sound of the storm, the screeching tires, everything disappeared. He wasnât in his car anymore. He wasnât even on the road. No, he was somewhere else entirely. Somewhere warm.
He was seven again.
The leather seats were soft, comforting, and the scent of his motherâs perfume lingered in the air. The only sound was the soft hum of the engine, a calm contrast to the chaos he had just left behind. He glanced around. His father was driving, hands steady on the wheel, wearing his familiar cheeky smile. His mother sat beside him, head against the window, her gaze distant but peaceful. Jungkook shifted uncomfortably in the back seat, squeezed between the seatbelt and the door. His arms were crossed tightly, shoulders hunched in frustration, as he kept his head down to avoid their attention.
âHun, how long until we get there?â his motherâs voice broke the calm, soft and uncertain, reaching his fatherâs ears. She turned her head toward him with a small smile, her face lit faintly by the dashboard glow.
Mr. Jeon turned toward her, a subtle smile tugging at his lips. He shot her a cheery look, his eyes soft with affection as he answered. âQuite,â was all he said, but there was a warmth in his voice that made her smile.
But then Mr. Jeon's eyes found him.
Jungkook was sitting in the backseat, his little arms crossed tightly over his chest, his puffy cheeks flushed red. His head was turned toward the window, a frown tugging at his lips.
"What happened, Jung?" His father asked gently, voice full of care.
Jungkookâs gaze flickered up to meet his father's eyes, but he didnât speak. Jungkook just huffed, his lip curling slightly, trying to hold back more tears. His arms tightened around himself, his small body so tense it seemed like he was trying to disappear into the seat. His eyes welled up again, and he sniffled, looking away.
âHe donât want to go.â Mrs. Jeon whispered softly, her voice light but firm, as though sheâd been trying to ease the situation for some time. She shifted in her seat, her hands lightly brushing her white Chanel dress.
"I know that," Mr. Jeon said with a soft chuckle, his eyes flicking back to Jungkook. "But why?" he asked, genuinely curious.
Mrs. Jeon shrugged her shoulders, turning toward her husband with a helpless smile, her eyes glinting faintly with understanding. âYou know how shy he is,â she whispered to him, just loud enough for him to hear but not Jungkook. Her voice was soft and wrapped in familiarity, like a gentle assurance.
Mr. Jeon chuckled softly, nodding in understanding. He then turned his attention back to Jungkook, his smile wide and encouraging. âBut Taehyung will be there, too. Donât you want to play with your hyung?â he teased, wiggling his brows playfully as he spoke.
Jungkookâs expression twisted with irritation. He pouted even more, his arms folding tighter across his chest. âNo,â he snapped, his voice a little louder than before. âNo, Taehyungie.â He refused to even look at his father, turning his head toward the window. His little hands balled into fists at his sides as he sat there.
Mr. Jeon froze for a moment at Jungkookâs sudden outburst. His eyes widened briefly as he glanced back at his son in the rearview mirror, but he let it go. He wasnât angryâhe never was with his sonâbut the outburst was unexpected. Jungkook wasnât one to open up easily, and Mr. Jeon understood that. It wasnât that Jungkook disliked Taehyung; he just couldnât handle him. Taehyung was too muchâtoo loud, too dramatic, too confident for Jungkookâs liking. His endless antics and unshakable charm always rubbed Jungkook the wrong way. It was easier for Jungkook to retreat into his shell than to deal with someone like Taehyung. Jungkook preferred the quiet, the safety of his own thoughts, while Taehyung was none of those things.
âPark uncle and his son are coming too. You wanted to meet Park uncleâs son?â Mr. Jeon tried again, his voice light and filled with gentle encouragement. He glanced back briefly, his brow furrowed slightly. He wanted Jungkook to at least be excited.
They were heading toward the Kim mansion for a grand party. A formal event with a lot of people, glittering dresses, and chatter. The kind of place where smiles felt like currency and charm was the language. It was important because their families shared good relationships with the Kim's. It was a social obligation.
But Jungkook didnât bite. His gaze fixed on the rain streaking down the window. He pressed his cheek harder against the cold glass, the coolness against his skin doing little to ease the rising frustration in his chest. He wasnât interested. His fatherâs words barely registered in his mind. The whole idea of going to a big event, the crowded space, the noiseâit all just felt overwhelming.
âNo,â Jungkook muttered, his voice tight, almost as if he were trying to seal off any further conversation. He could feel his fatherâs eyes on him, but he didnât care. He didn't want to go. Not to meet Park Uncleâs son. Not to that party. Not anywhere. He wanted to stay home. He hated people. All of them. Parties. Crowds. They made his skin crawl. Even though Park uncle was always kind and brought him chocolate, even though he was gentle and easy to talk to, it didnât matter. Meeting his son was a thought that felt like a chore.
Mr. Jeonâs face softened with a small, exasperated sigh. He turned his head, catching his wifeâs eye for a brief moment. Mrs. Jeon gently tapped his arm, urging him to stop pushing Jungkook. But Mr. Jeon didnât listen. He could see his sonâs discomfort and it worried him. He wasnât going to let it slide this time.
âSon, listen,â he began, trying again with more patience, his voice firm but not unkind. âYou shouldââ
But his words were cut short by the sudden screech of tires and a blinding flash of headlights, too bright, too fast. Thenâboom. Something slammed into their car, a deafening crash that shook everything around him. The impact tore through them, sending the car off the road. The world spun wildly, glass shattered, metal twisted, and screams filled the air. His head smacked against the seatbelt, his shoulders pulled hard by the force as the car twisted and turned like a broken toy. His arms flailed, his hands gripping at anything they could find, but there was nothing.
Finally, the car came to a violent stop and everything felt eerily quiet. The sound of the engine sputtering, the hiss of rain, and the faint, dull ringing in his ears filled his senses. He blinked rapidly, trying to clear his vision, but his head spun. The air was thick with the metallic scent of blood. His chest was tight, his breath shallow. Through his blurred vision, he saw itâthem. Blood streaked his vision, dark and warm as it trickled into his eyes from a gash on his forehead. His breath came in short, broken pants. He couldnât see clearlyâeverything felt distorted, red, and wrong. His mother was there. Her body was twisted, crumpled, unnatural, and there was so much blood. Everywhere but specially beneath her.
âMomâŚâ he whispered, his voice broken, a thin, desperate sound. His lips trembled, his head shaking as though he could will it away, but the horror wouldnât leave. His small hands gripped at his seatbelt again, his fingers sticky, his face soaked with rain and fear. All he knew was that his mother was hurt, she was bleeding and wasn't moving. No, no, no⌠His chest ached, a desperate pain that he couldnât understand.
His eyes shifted to his father, still breathing, but barely. His fatherâs chest rose weakly, blood dripping from a gash on his forehead, and Jungkookâs heart twisted in his chest. âDadaâŚâ His voice cracked, the sound barely more than a whimper as he reached out for his father, his small hands pressing against the seat. The fear was suffocating, but the pain of seeing his father so helpless, so close to slipping away, was worse. His body shook uncontrollably, his tiny frame trying to fight the overwhelming terror that threatened to swallow him whole.
The silence felt unbearable. Everything around him felt like a blur, yet every detail was all real and painstrikingly cruel. His hands trembled, his body shaking, his chest aching as he waitedâdesperatelyâfor some kind of answer. But before his father could respond, figures emerged from the darkness dressed in black uniforms that glistened faintly under the rain. Their presence felt wrong, but the night itself was nothing if wasn't sinful. Jungkookâs head spun, his ears ringing painfully. The sound was distorted, every word like a distant, broken whisper. But the fragments came through, jagged and broken.
âAnd, itâs done... Wasn't much. Let him suffer.â
Jungkook visibly flinched at their words, his heart hammering against his ribcage. His ears rang painfully, making it hard to hear, but the fragments reached him like poison.
âHe denied boss, after all.â
"Hmm, all he needed was that file. Black orchid project's file."
 "Yeah, stupid motherfucker." They turned to leave, but then one of them paused, looking back at Mr. Jeonâs bloody form, a sinister smile creeping across his face. âYou know, since youâre dying anyways, let me tell you something⌠we found her. We got the first kid from the Black Orchid project. And with her, weâll get them all. And with you dead, who will stop us.â
Their laughter was cruel and hollow, echoing in the stillness like nails scraping across the floor. Jungkookâs chest tightened, and his stomach churned, bile rising in his throat as they disappeared into the rain. The words haunted him, swirling in his mind, but before he could process them, another sound broke throughâthe sound of his fatherâs breath.
Mr. Jeonâs body shifted, his chest rising and falling in labored, shallow breaths. His tear-streaked face twisted with pain as his eyes met Jungkookâs, the weight of everything crashing down in those last, fleeting moments. âJungkookâŚâ His voice was raw, barely a whisper, but it carried so much guilt that it felt like it could suffocate him. âIâm so sorry, my boy⌠this⌠this is all because of me.â
âDadaâŚâ His voice was cracked, shaky, the fear rising in his chest like a storm. His hand reached out instinctively, trembling, but it fell short, his small fingers grazing the air instead of his fatherâs skin.
Just as Jungkookâs vision began to blur, another sound broke through the hazeâthe screech of tires and the distant sound of shoes splashing through the rain. Relief flickered faintly in his chest. Someone was coming. But his blurry gaze couldnât make out who it was.
A pair of feet appeared before him, followed by the frantic sound of someone running, slipping in the rain as they skidded to a halt next to the wreckage.
 It was Mr. Park, panting, his face pale with shock as he took in the horror before him.
Mr. Park dropped to his knees beside the wreckage, his hands trembling as they hovered over the twisted metal, unable to focus on anything but the devastation before him. His breath hitched in his chest as his gaze fell on Mrs. Jeonâs crumpled, lifeless form, and the tears welled up instantly, blurring his vision. He opened his mouth, but no words came out. All he could manage was a broken, âOh, my... How⌠what?â His gaze settled on Jungkookâs mother, crumpled and lifeless in the front seat, and his breath hitched. His hands gripped the cold, wet metal of the car, his entire body shaking as he fought the overwhelming wave of fear and sorrow threatening to drown him.
âHang on! Iâll get you both out, I promise!â His voice cracked as he spoke, his hands fumbling against the seatbelt, desperate to pull them free.
But Mr. Jeon, with great effort, shook his head. His face was pale, slick with sweat, and blood dripped from the corner of his mouth. His voice came out hoarse, barely more than a whisper, but the words cut through the chaos. âNo... no... listen to me.â He coughed, his body convulsing from the effort, and blood spattered onto his chest. âI... I wonât be able to make it out of here. Take Jungkook... get him out... and raise him. Thereâs no one else I trust more than you, Park. Youâre like a brother to me. Please... take care of him... like heâs your own.â
Mr. Parkâs eyes filled with tears, and he squeezed them shut for a moment, trying to push back the wave of grief threatening to drown him. His chest tightened, and his voice cracked as he fought to keep it steady. âI will. I promise. But donât say that, we can stillââ
âNoâŚâ Mr. Jeonâs voice was barely a whisper now, weak and distant, almost drowned out by the rain. The faintest of smiles tugged at the corner of his lips, but it quickly disappeared as he coughed, blood staining his mouth. âItâs too late for me⌠just save him. Please.â
Mr. Parkâs hand trembled as it hovered over Mr. Jeonâs, and he nodded, his lips trembling. He wasnât ready to accept this, but he knew there was no choice. âIâll take him,â he whispered. âIâll take him, I promise.â
With trembling hands, Mr. Park unbuckled Jungkook, his heart breaking at the sight of the boyâs tear-streaked face, pale and bloodied. The tiny body was limp in his arms, and he fought to hold back his own tears, knowing it wouldnât help. Jungkookâs head lolled against his shoulder, eyes barely open, blinking with confusion and fear, but he couldnât speak, couldnât move.
âIâve got you,â Mr. Park whispered, his voice rough with emotion, his arms tightening around Jungkook as he lifted him from the wreckage. The boyâs head rested against his chest, the faintest stir of breath against his skin. âItâs going to be okay,â he said, though he knew nothing about this could ever be okay. If anything, he himself didn't trusted his words. They felt hollow.
âIâll be back to get you. And Iâll get you out too, just hang there,â he said, his voice final, desperate, and certain. His hands trembled as he cradled Jungkook against his chest, his gaze flickering back toward Mr. Jeon, whose eyes were barely open. Mr. Park wasn't sure if he was even capable enough to fulfil that promise but at moment it was all he could offer, it was all he had left.
Mr. Jeonâs eyes fluttered, a faint nod the only response he could manage. His body had grown so still, but the tear streaked face, the way his lips trembled, said everything. He knew it was a promise that wouldnât be keptâbut he nodded anyway, and the last bit of hope faded in the silence of the wreckage. With one final glance, Mr. Park turned, his arms cradling Jungkook against him, as he ran toward safety, the boyâs limp body a stark contrast to the life and pain surrounding them. The rain continued to pour, and with each step, it felt like the world was slipping further away.
Jungkookâs eyes fluttered weakly as he was carried to Mr. Parkâs car. His small body felt light and cold against the older manâs chest. Inside the vehicle, Jimin sat in the backseat, his wide eyes staring at the scene before him. His small hands gripped the edge of his seat tightly, his knuckles pale in the dim glow of the headlights. When Mr. Park placed Jungkook beside him, Jiminâs shock melted into an visible concern. His little face was a mix of worry and gentleness as he shifted closer, his small body trembling slightly. Without hesitation, he wrapped his tiny arms around Jungkook, pulling him into a hug. The warmth of Jiminâs embrace was so soft, so comforting, but it felt like it wasnât enough.
âDonât cry⌠itâs okay, donât cry,â Jimin whispered, his voice cracking slightly as he pulled Jungkook closer. Jungkookâs eyes burned, but he couldnât bring himself to speak. His throat was tight, his chest hollow with loss. The last thing he felt before the world around him went black was Jiminâs arms, holding him tight, and the warmth of a friendship that now felt fragile, like a thread ready to snap.
Meanwhile, Mr. Parkâs hands were shaking, his desperation choking his every movement as he turned back to the wreck. His heart pounded in his chest as he sprinted toward the flames, but he didnât make it. Before he could even reach the wreckage, the explosion erupted in a violent wave, the flames licking at the sky as they consumed the car. The explosion rocked the ground beneath him, the heat so intense it scorched his skin, and the rain didnât do a thing to stop the inferno. The sound of the blast echoed in his chest, and for a moment, Mr. Park stood frozen, his body trembling from the shock, the image of his closest friend burning into his mind. His breath caught in his throat, his heart twisted painfully, but he couldnât move. He watched as the fire consumed everythingâeverything he had hoped to save. The rain poured harder, but it was useless against the inferno.
And just like that, Jungkook lost everything in one brutal, cruel instant. His mind hung on that moment, the crackling fire and the unyielding rain swallowing it all. The sound of the explosion still rang in his ears as he was pulled from the memory. Another sharp, blinding flash of light cut through his closed eyelids, yanking him out of his haze. His head throbbed painfully, the beat of his pulse a steady rhythm that seemed to match the aching in his skull.
A car screeched to a halt in front of him, the sound cutting through the fog in his mind like a blade. For a moment, he thought it was Jimin. But that couldnât be rightâJimin was way behind him, far away from this mess, in a safe place. How could he have gotten ahead so fast? Jungkookâs thoughts came fast and fragmented. His breaths came quicker, his hands trembling harder as his body tensed with uncertainty.
What was happening? Was it Jimin? Was it someone else? His mind felt fractured, his body unable to respond. His body felt paralysed, useless.
The driver stepped out into the downpour, his black uniform drenched in seconds, but he moved forward with an unsettling calm. The sight of the uniformâit was like a switch had been flipped inside Jungkook. But his thoughts were too scattered, too foggy, to make sense of it. The closer the man got, the louder the buzz in Jungkookâs head grew, like lightening sissling through his skull. It was unbearable. His hands flew to his temples, fingers digging in desperately, but the pain only intensified. A low, broken groan escaped his throat.
Without warning, a loud, brutal crash shattered the silence. The man had smashed the car window. The sound tore through his body like a physical blow, breaking his fragile focus. His eyes flew open just as he felt the sting of broken glass. The shards flying like tiny stars of pain that bit into his skin. Before Jungkook could even flinch, a rough hand wrapped around his collar and yanked him from the seat. He was dragged out into the downpour, the cold, icy rain slamming into his face, washing away the blood. The cold slapped against his skin like a thousand tiny knives, but he was too weak to react. His limbs were heavy, his body numb, as if it wasnât even his own. He couldnât fight back. The man dragged him across the slick road like he weighed nothing, and with a brutal toss, he was slammed onto the wet pavement. His body hit the ground with a sickening thud, and the cold, muddy water instantly soaked through his clothes, seeping into his bones.
He forced himself to push up or at least he tired. His hands trembled, weak and brittle, but he couldnât hold himself. His body gave out, and he collapsed back into the mud with a helpless, wet sound. His face turned upward, the rain blurring his vision, every droplet a sharp needle that dug into his skin. His chest heaved, his breaths coming in shallow bursts, but the pain in his skull, his limbs, and his chest refused to go away. Jungkook tried again, his body shaking harder this time. His head swayed from side to side as he struggled, but the rain felt endless, each droplet pounding into him, each one deeper, colder, meaner. His heartbeat was an erratic drumbeat in his chest, thudding against his ribs like it might give out at any moment. His vision remained a hazy blurâeverything was grey, wet, and cold, and the pounding in his skull grew stronger with every heartbeat.
Jungkookâs eyes fought to stay open, his vision blurring more with each passing second, but the shape of the man in front of him became clearer. The man in the black uniform loomed over him, a dark, shifting figure that blurred in the rain. His face was a shadow, but the smirk on his lips was cruel and clear.
The manâs eyes gleamed with satisfaction as he watched Jungkook struggle beneath him, barely able to lift himself up on one elbow. His hand gripped the gun with a steady, deadly calm, and as he crouched down, water splashed from his chin, droplets falling onto Jungkookâs face. âLook at you,â he sneered, voice dripping with mockery, âpathetic. No high and mighty prince now, huh? Whereâs your guard dog to save you?â
Jungkookâs chest heaved in ragged breaths, his heart hammering in his ribcage. He could feel the weight of his body dragging him further into the puddle, the cold seeping into his bones, but his muscles were too weak to fight back. His hand twitched, desperately trying to reach for somethingâanythingâto push himself up, but it shook violently, unable to get any purchase. He gritted his teeth, eyes clouded with pain and dizziness, unable to respond, unable to do anything but lie there and take it.
âtoday was my lucky day, I guess,â he laughed.
âYouâve been a thorn in our side for too long,â the man continued, his voice dropping lower as he straightened, standing taller. His form was solid and imposing, his boots kicking mud as he took a step back. The gun rose, glinting under the pale light of the streetlamps. The barrel was cold, steady, and pointed directly at Jungkookâs chest.
âTime to put you out of your misery, kid. Join mommy and daddy. I wager... Youâve been dying to.â A cold sweat broke out across Jungkookâs skin even in shrill rain, and for a brief moment, his breath caught in his throat. His eyes widened, flicking between the gun and the manâs mocking face, terror clawing at him from the inside. His chest tightened, his body frozen as the world spun around him, and he tried once more to move, to escape, but his legs were useless, as if the earth beneath him was swallowing him whole. All that remained was the sharp, unrelenting noise of the rain and the sickening sound of the manâs finger inching toward the trigger.
Jungkookâs body went rigid as the manâs words echoed in his mind. His heart thundered in his chest as the memories of his parents flooded himâtheir lifeless eyes, the blood staining the night, the terror that gripped him then and now. His hands, slick with cold rain, shook uncontrollably as he stared at the barrel of the gun. His throat constricted, but no words came outâonly a choked sob that was lost in the downpour.
The manâs grin widened, cruel and savage, as he inched his finger toward the trigger. Jungkook could see the gleam in his eyes, the satisfaction of finally having the power to take everything from him. The laughter in his voice was sharp, like glass scraping against his skin, and with a slow, deliberate motion, he squeezed the trigger.
"Goodbye, Jeon Jungkook."
The gunshot shattered the nightâlouder than the storm, louder than the pounding in Jungkook's ears. For a brief, agonizing moment, the world seemed to stop. The rain paused in midair, hanging like frozen tears, the wind silenced as if holding its breath. Jungkook felt the world tilt beneath him, and his body instinctively braced for the impact that was supposed to come.
a/n: So, howâd you guys like it? Hate it? Loved it? I need the feedback, break me, but like... gently, okay? Iâm fragile and Iâll cry, like, on the spot. But honestly, there might be some grammatical disasters in there. Why? Because I got sick and just didnât have the energy to do much editing work on it. So yeah, donât judge me too hard, Iâm basically a walking disaster right now. Also, I really hope you still love Jungkook after reading this. Please donât hate him. Show him some love. And, like, show me some too, because my ego is starving. Tell me how amazing it was (or, like, pretend it was) and boost my fragile little ego, okay? I need it. Love ya, guys!
#kookiewithluv#bts ffs#bts ff#bts fanfic#bts smut#jeon jungkook#jungkook scenarios#black orchid project#jungkook x you#jungkook x reader#jungkook x y/n#jungkook x oc#jeon jungguk#bts jungguk#jungkook bts#jeon jungkoooook#jimin and jungkook#jungkook#jungkook smut#jungkook series#jungkook fic#jeon jungkook x reader
43 notes
¡
View notes
Text
Corpse Groom - G.S.
Synopsis. Till dĂŠath do you partâŚor does it when a dĂŠathly error leads your newly-wedded husband to be from beyond the grĂĄve?
Pairing. Gojo Satoru x Reader
Content. MDNI, fem! reader, CĂRPSE BRIDE!AU, arranged marriages, period-typical mĂsogyny, Naoya is awful, accidental marriage, ĂĄngst, major character(s) dĂŠath, HAPPY ENDING, talks of dĂŠath, knĂves, poĂson, reĂncarnation, Gojo YEARNS, he loves you sm I cried, hĂĄndjobs, fĂngering, spĂtting, cĂşmplay, BRĂEDING, creampĂes, mentions of having kids, pĂşssydrĂşnk Gojo, overstĂm, oraI (fem rec.), pet names, swĂŠaring.
Word count. 12.7k (ohoho)
A/N. K!nktober isnât over until I had to make a rewrite of my favorite Halloween movie mhm <3
âMother, I refuse-â
âNonsense, child!â
That sharp snap! of your motherâs feathered fan is loud enough that the whole carriage rattles on its hinges, creaking you noisily to what seemed like your very doom.Â
You gulp when sheâs tilting her head down as far as her best, high-collared gown would allow, eyes narrowing. âThe Zeninâs are the only nobles left in this wretched town, and I will not have my daughter marrying some commoner.â
The unsteady cobblestone pathway jostles you in your cushioned seat ever-so-slightly, a pertinent little reminder of that fact.
In the deafening silence, your father pipes up - ever-the-pacifist, âNow now, why donât we all calm down, especially before such a glorious wedding.â But his words wither out into nothing but a whisper in the simmering tension. âLike your mother said, dear, the Zeninâs are a good family, with a uh-â Coughing nervously, â-good son. We just want you to be taken care of.â
As if that was the only thing.
But there was no use arguing.Â
Facing back to the gray window with a sigh, and you can only whisper. âIâd rather die than marry Naoya Zenin.â
---
âWith this hand-â
âLouder.â
âWith this-â
âMore passionate.â
âWith this damn hand-â
âNot a threat.â The older woman in front of you wrings her satin gloves, turning towards your fuming parents with a tone that matches their expression. âHonestly, I know that you new money people find it hard to adjust but this is our special tradition! My poor baby Naoya is going to be heartbroken tomorrow.â
Dutchess Zenin had a cruel sort of beauty to her, high cheekbones, and cutting eyes that picked apart every fray at your dress - the spitting image of her son.
And her âpoor baby Naoyaâ was currently finding it impossible to hide his smirk. Swiping away invisible dust from the velvety-clad shoulder of his overpriced suit, he sets down his wine bottle from the vows.
âDonât be too harsh, mother.â Naoyaâs smooth voice comes out in a dangerous purr, and you jolt when one of his strong arms slither around your waist. Possessive. âAfter all, itâs this oneâs face thatâs whatâs important.âÂ
God, if it werenât for your parentsâ pointed looks you would have shoved this overly-perfumed bastard away from you and bolted through those high doors faster than you could say âI do.âÂ
The Naoya Estate was as beautiful as its occupants could never be, brutal, looming architecture intended to make you feel smaller than you were. All those high cemented pillars, plush furniture, and gleaming chandeliers spoke of exactly what your parents wanted - power.Â
It wasnât the sort of home youâd like to call your own, but then again, you didnât have any choice in the matter.Â
âMy deepest apologies on behalf of my daughter, madam-â your motherâs gritting out the words, painted lips curling ever-so-slightly towards the end with a bitter taste. â-or should I say, co-mother-in-law? Ah, come now, we might as well be family already, right?â
âSure.â Dutchess Naoya turns, arching a needle brow. âMight as well, thanks to your family assets- if your daughter doesnât make a joke of the vows, that is.â
The wisened officiary standing at the altar nods solemnly towards you. âDo you even want to get married tomorrow, young lady?â No, you want to answer, but bite back. âZenin house traditions dictate that the mark of a good wife is one to follow the vows to its every syllable.â
You wince - and your features sting where theyâd been perfectly stretched into a plastic smile. Your next words come out small, strangled in a way that makes your future husband smile. âI apologize, I know how important these vows are, and Iâll- Iâll do better next time.â
âGood.â
With a click of Dutchess Zeninâs fingers, a hushed, swirling piano melody fills the hall once more.Â
Your wedding ballad.Â
Something that Naoya had prattled on and on about being an esteemed tradition in the Zenin household, a tender tune to accompany their sacred vows. Modeled after the long-lost royalty of this kingdom, and this was the closest youâd get to a taste of it.Â
It was your one initiation into power - saying those sweet, special promises - and the one thing you found impossible to get right.
â-for I will be your wine.â
Shit.
You didnât even realize that Naoya had polished off his own vows, before you jolt at the hefty weight of wine being poured into your cup.Â
And you could practically feel the burning stare of every eye in the room. Watching. Waiting.Â
Youâre fighting against your intricate corset to gulp in a deep inhale of the stale, thickening air. Clearing your throat ever-so-slightly, you raise the hand holding onto his wedding ring. âWith this hand, I will lift your sorrows. Y-your cup will never empty-â Fingers tightening around the silver goblet in your other, your breath hitches at the bile rising to your throat already. â-for I will be your- your uh- wine.âÂ
In the corner of your vision, you could spot Naoyaâs smug smirk already. You could hear his tiny âAs if you have any other choice.â
You knew what he was thinking.
That whisper is enough to make your jaw grind, your hand clench in a way youâd been taught by your mother not to - in a way that sheâd unfortunately forgotten to tell you was for the cupâs sake, rather than your own.
Because it only takes one harsh squeeze before it just bursts.
Red, red wine trickling all down your wrist, splattering onto the gauzy curve of your gown - but more importantly, onto Naoyaâs crisp suit.Â
It bleeds through the velvet in thick smears, seeping into the fabric as if catching on fire. Only staining further and further with each second heâs flailing frantically to wipe it off.Â
âShit- My apologies- oh, shit-â youâre gasping, but thereâs no one paying enough attention to tell you off for your unlady-like profanity right now. Body moving before your mind, you snatch some of the officiaryâs papers from him, âWait, it will only get worse- let me-â
Only to forget what was in your hands.
Honestly, if this was any other time you would have laughed watching the rest of the wine nestled safely in your cup come gushing down onto whatever was left of his unmarred suit - every single inch.Â
Itâs chaos.
Then itâs silence.Â
Every single breathing being in the room can only watch as the last few crimson droplets drip! drip! drip! onto Naoya Zeninâs lapels.
Wordlessly, you look to the aghast officiary, your stony-faced parents, and finally, your gaping fiancĂŠ. Youâre the first to speak - to hold back your chuckles, more like. âI- I cannot apologize enoughâŚâ
âYou- you witch! This was on purpose, wasnât it? Do you know how much this custom suit cost? How it was worn by the late highness himself.â Naoyaâs screeching, voice shrill. Pointing a finger accusingly at you, it would be menacing if it wasnât for the big, fat droplets of red dripping from his angry features. More of a drenched cat than the gentleman he pretends to be. âRemember that Iâm doing you a favor by marrying you-â
You cross your arms, struggling to keep composure. âI shall reimburse-â
â-and acting all haughty as if you were from the royal family itself.â heâs frantic, mouth running a mile a minute. Tugging at his wet strands, âAnd my hair, oh my beautiful beautiful hair-â
âI shall reimburse the emotional damages, too!â
Dutchess Zenin tackles her son into a soothing embrace you find almost comical, granting you with a venomous glare that you were sure if looks could kill, sheâd be lowering you into your grave and waltzing over it with Naoya already.
Simpering, âItâs quite alright my poor boy, this wedding cannot take place! We can find another-â
âNo no no- no, I still want to marry her-â His greedy eyes sweep your trembling figure up and down, âDoesnât matter if sheâs an unfit wife, Iâll fix her up-â Youâre quirking a brow, âSwear Iâll marry her and fix her up into-â
THUD!
Youâre throwing the cup remaining in your hand as hard as you can, hitting Naoya right in the bullseye of his chest. And as soon as the air leaves his lungs, they leave yours too - in a stubborn, infuriated hiss, âWell, Iâd never marry a spoiled, pompous brat like you.â
And with a flick of the stray beads of wine on your fingers at his face for good measure, you lift your heavy skirts as scandalously far as theyâd travel to dart out of the door.
Out of the winding corridors.Â
Out of the Zenin Estate.Â
Ignoring every call of your name, every arm reaching out for you - urgently following your feet wherever they took you. Honestly, youâre so busy gasping in deep lungfuls of the cool, fall air embracing you that youâre half-surprised you only crash into a few people on the streets.Â
Again. And again. And again and again, yet never stopping. Afraid of being followed by Naoya. Or even worse - your parents.
You barely even slow down until your tailored shoes crunch against gray snow, eyes taking in lines upon lines of towering trees in front of you. Tall, towering. Weaving their branches with the sky - ominous, almost, against the steadily darkening night creeping its way in.
The forest, youâre realizing with a gasp. Have you really come this far?Â
Taking a glimpse over your shoulder at the twinkling lights of the town in the distance, you think of the vows that were waiting for you, and the town rumors youâd definitely sparked. Well, a walk to cool off wouldnât hurtâŚ
And despite wanting to relax, your thoughts only churn with each step. Replaying the scenes from earlier over and over and-
âAnd your cup will always- fuck- they probably think Iâm such a fool.â youâre spitting, kicking at a pile of snow. âFuck Naoya and his vows, fuck that stupid wine, shouldâve shoved it up his-âÂ
Just then, a sudden gust of fall air puffs up against your ear, sending goosebumps careening down every bit of your exposed skin. You shudder sharply, hands shovelling for warmth inside your gownâs pockets, âUgh, todayâs such a horrible-â Only to cut yourself off with a gasp- âThis isâŚâ
You feel for that metallic cold again, hastily pulling out that solid, silvery ring. Meant for Naoya Zenin.
Admittedly gorgeous, an intricate band with a delicate sapphire embedded in its middle. Your mother had spent months tracking down the best jeweler in the country to forge a ring that even the Zeninâs would be impressed with.Â
Fit for a king.
You scoff, âAn unfit wife, my ass. Itâs not even that difficult.â
Still feeling highly insulted, and only slightly embarrassed for it, you clear your throat. Speaking clearly into the stiff air, âWith this hand, I will lift your sorrows.â Determinedly you stride your way into the middle of a slight clearing, âYour cup will never empty, for I will be your wine.â
Grasping a stray branch, you mock lighting the altar candles. âWith this candle, I will light your way in the darkness.â
Before setting down on one knee - customary for the groom, yet feeling so right when you gaze down at a tree root sticking up from the blanket of snow. Poised like the prettiest of fingers at the foot of a towering oak.
âWith this ring,â Youâre sliding it down easily as you would have to onto the man you hated the most. âI ask you to be mine.â
.
.
.
You donât expect the sudden shift.Â
You donât expect the wind to pick up, you donât expect for a murder of crows to materialize from the midnight darkness and crowd on a tree right behind you. Letting the tree root slip from your fingers, you whirl around - what- a storm?
But before you can think of any answers, that withered branch shoots further out of the ground. Barely giving you a split-second to jump backwards before cupping your cheek, gently.Â
And you couldâve sworn that one twig glides across your cheek - just the way oneâs thumb would have. Like the softest of lovers.Â
Gasping in fear, you fall backwards, splaying out into the uncomfortably bone-chilling snow below.
You can only watch as the tree root twitches once. Twice. And your ears thunder with the high-pitched howls of the wind, and a sudden, booming bang! bang! bang!
Shit.Â
Your eyes widen, it was coming from under the ground.Â
The ground that was splitting open before your very eyes.Â
Wider. And wider. Like something was baring itself before you. Something was clawing all the way from hell, that tree root only surging up, up, upwards in a long, limb-like fashion. Branching out into five fingers that dig their way into the ground. Hard.Â
And if you didnât think you were about to faint from just this - you were definitely on the verge of it when the fingers lead their way into a forearm, a shoulder. Miles upon miles of skin - a person, towering above you, silhouetted by moonlight.
He looks at you with sapphire eyes. Close.Â
A man.
Beautiful.Â
Whispering, âI do.â Nose to cold nose, thick white lashes fluttering shut. âYou may now kiss the groom.â
---
Youâre barely half-awake when you realize that that was probably the strangest dream youâve had in your life.Â
Groaning, you rub blearily at your eyes - yet, through the bursts of stars and pounding flashes of headaches, all you can think about is him and his chilling lips on yours.
Soft, like a leaving lover. Â
Even in your most feverish of dreams, youâd never conjured up anyone so ethereal. Tall, powerful despite the almost-sickly air about him, and the deep circles underneath his gleaming eyes.Â
But so gorgeous - sorrowfully so.Â
The image burned permanently into your mind, like your most favorite of memories. Every tiny detail down from the almost-blinding reflection of the moon against his cloudy hair, to how that illuminated his soft smile - that tiny dimple at the corner of his pert, pretty mouth.Â
You remember how he wore a wedding suit, the kind that nobles these days wouldnât dare touch with a six foot sword with how it looked centuries out of fashion. Stark white, with fine silver detailing down the velvety fabric for you to admire.
How ironic, somehow, the thought made you sad.
But most of all, you especially remember the way he looked at you.
Just like he was right now.
âAh!â
âNow thatâs not usually the reaction I- fuck!â
He was real. So painfully real.
And clutching his face where youâd claimed a swat at one of high cheekbones.
âOuch, my wife has a real good arm on her, huh?â Blinking back the haziness in your eyes, you catch sight of that same summer blue gaze, eyes crinkled slightly at the ends. Tender, despite being attacked by you less than a minute after gaining consciousness. âThough, I love a strong woman.â
âNew arrival! Looks like we got ourselves a breather-â
âLooks like she fainted, is she alright? You know we canât keep her long-â
âCan I touch her? Looks so soft~â
White - white fills your vision, too-late are you realizing that youâre being pressed into the soft coat of his chest. Inching you away from a hulking, four-armed creature, he mutters, âSheâs my wife, you curse.â
âWhat-â It takes you a few more seconds to finally find your voice. In those moments you look up to take in his boyishly pretty features - about your age. Human, had it not been for that otherworldly faint blue pallor. âIs this a joke? Where am-â
Choking on your words as you take a sweeping look around the - tavern? Realm? It looked like the very same one in your own town, except bright. Musical. Everything that your home wasnât. Finding faces you could never imagine looking at you - some beautiful, some mere skeletons, all taken out of your wildest dreams.Â
And all dead, it hits you with a jolt.Â
Yet, somehow, youâve never felt safer in his arms.Â
âSomething wrong, my love?â
You pinch yourself, âI need questions- now.â
âYou mean answers.â One from the pub crowd scoffs - a towering man, handsome. Heâd look ever-so-ordinary if it wasnât for the completely skeletal arm on his left side. And of course, that same death-like serenity. âHonestly, Gojo, you picked an airhead or what?â
The man that still held you - Gojo, you assume - whines in protest, âShut up, Toji. Iâd always love her regardless- and she said her vows so perfectly.â
âI didâŚâ you breathe.
Shit.Â
Shit shit shit- you did.
Cocking your head, you ask. âWho are you?âÂ
Heâs rolling his eyes, gifting you a crooked grin of pearly whites. âYour husband, obviously?â
And before you can pinch yourself again to make sure you werenât dreaming, and that last time was a fluke - or perhaps smack him again - Gojo shows off one slender hand. Naoya Zeninâs ring adorned proudly across his ring finger. Your ring. With your vows.Â
âSoâŚâ you let out a giggle of still disbelief. âYouâre the tree-â
âNot quite but-â
âOh! I love this story- could make a skeleton cry.â
âHeh, yeah yeah sing it, king of curses.â
âPlease donât.â
âYou see, welcome to the Land of the Dead, doll.â A man with pink hair sets down his drink to throw one of his four arms around your shoulder, much to Gojoâs chagrin. Words dripping with taunt, âNâ lemme tell you the story of our lovely corpse groom.â
Youâre dragged along through the crowded, eerily lit tavern, everyone jostling each other to better get a look at you. Poking and prodding, some even gasping at the feeling of your thundering pulse.Â
He hums, âHere we have a pompous prince known miles around-â And you could tell him and Gojo had already known each other long, with how he was toying with the other man. â-fell hard and fast for a cute lilâ peasant girl much like yourself-â
âSukuna, stop it.â Gojo grits, jaw clenched.Â
â-but, alas. When dear olâ dad the king said ânoâ, he jusâ couldnât cope. So our dear lovers came up with a plan to elope-â
Youâre thrust into the arms of an attractive blond man, almost half of his entire face held together with stitches and bone. Heaving out a sigh in a way you could very much feel akin to, âMeeting up late at night is always a stupid plan, even with all the wine and riches for the road. You might not need much when you have love, but you never know whatâs lurking. And, well, on that dark night, our prince here paid the price.â When you look back at the white-haired man his eyes seemed significantly softer, if that was even possible.Â
Tojiâs the one by your side this time, âPoof! Dropped dead as dust waiting for his dear girl, no evidence, no body, no bride. What a crybaby he was when he arrived. Didnât even want to stay here-â
â-because then he made a promise to wait upstairs.â Another man - with such gorgeous, long hair makes himself known this time. Forehead littered in strange stitches, as if itâd been opened and fixed many, many times. âAnd waited and waited asleep for one hundred years to this day until out of the blue, you came along, sweetness. The lovely bride, to our corpse groom.â
You.Â
And Gojo looks at you like he canât look away.
Lone, standing there with his arms open as the story tapers out. Waiting.Â
Until you came along.
---
âHERE YE, HERE YEâŚFUTURE BRIDE OF ZENIN HOUSE SEEN LURKING IN THE FOREST WITH A MYSTERY MANâ now for the weatherâŚâÂ
âWhat?â your mother hisses at the bellows of the local newsman, well, rumor-spreader, more like. But heâs never been more useful than now. Sneaking an urgent glance at the stunned Dutchess Zenin by her side, she elbows your father, âWe come outside to search for our daughter only to hear this? How could we let this-â
âMaybe itâs a ah- slow news day?â
Theyâre interrupted by a sudden, sharp clearing of oneâs throat - dripping with the distinct tone of condescension that only a member of the Zenin family could possess. âWe are one bride short for the wedding tomorrow. What a scandal!âÂ
âAh!â sheâs gasping. Waving her hands frantically, âW-we promise weâll find her before the wedding-â
âYou better.â
âNo.â Naoya Zeninâs voice was brimming with something dangerous, an eerie, steady lilt of determination to it. But heâs not even looking at anyone in the group, eyes trained firmly on the woody entrance to the forest in the distance. âIâll be the one to find her.â
Finally, something that seems to appease the huffing matriarch.
Only leaving her sullen son with a nod of approval, âAnd NaoyaâŚâ She makes sure the other two bothers were out of earshot, greedily scurrying back to the warmth of the Zenin household. âRemember, the ah- family funds are drying up. Hurry.â
---
Gojo Satoru, you learn, was as nervous about this marriage as you were.
âThis is where I always visited after first dying.â he muses, ice-cold fingers wrapped snugly with yours as he guides you gently through various crooked stairs and skeletons of town. âThe view takes my breath away- well, if I could breathe, that is.â
Youâre startling out a laugh that has both of you surprised, and he turns to you with such breathless awe.Â
âBeautiful.â
âWhat-â your eyes widen - and you donât know whether itâs from his sudden little compliment, or from where you two had finally stopped walking.Â
A steep cliff, overlooking the entire, vast town of multi-color lights. The rigid structure from where you came could never compare. Complete chaos. But as pretty as those paintings you read about in books, views you never thought youâd see.Â
You rest your hands atop the spindly barrier surrounding the very edge, marveling. âIt is beautifulâŚâ
âIt is.â Gojoâs tone is rich, and his eyes never stray from you despite all else there is to drink in. It takes you a few moments of counting all the bustling figures in the distance before you finally mount up the courage to meet his hypnotic gaze.Â
Gojo jolts when you look his way, as if he wasnât expecting it. Hastily, he flusters to pat down the sides of his suit - tattered at places, patchy as if once-pristine but ruined with age. Heâs smiling once he ruffles through his breast pocket, pulling out something glinting.
Youâre letting out a tiny gasp when he shows off a silver, heart-shaped locket. Intricate, obviously custom-tailored - youâd never quite seen anything like it. Positively beaming with all the shine that the rest of him had lost.Â
Treasured.Â
âItâs for you.â
âWhat?â Your jaw falls slack in shock, pushing away Gojoâs held-out hands. But he was ever-persistent. âPlease- I canât, that- that looks like it should be for someone precious.âÂ
âAnd it is.âÂ
This was the firmest youâd heard his sing-song voice, and at your slightest split-second of faltering, he snatches the opportunity to circle his hands around your neck. Deftly clasping it from behind, Gojo only smiles, soft pads of his fingers lingering at your nape. âIâve had it for years.â You wanted to know exactly how many years that meant. âConsider it a wedding gift~â
Your own dust over the cool metal pendant, heart lurching. âIf only you let me know about our wedding in advance, I wouldâve gifted you something, too.â
âHeh, you donât have to.â
âDo tooâ
âDo not.â
âDo too.â You cross your arms, boring your eyes into his. âIâm not going to be an unfit wife.â
Thereâs a second of silence.Â
One.
Two.
And at this point, you half-expected your parents and Naoyaâs to just burst from behind the nearby stairway to tell you this was all some elaborate test - before Gojo just explodes in peels of cackles.Â
âIâm sorry- Iâm sorry I- hah!â heâs barely able to wheeze out, wiping away stray tears of joy. âYou never change, huh-âÂ
It takes the embarrassed tapping of your feet for Gojo to finally straighten back up to his tall figure, muttering out a few more indiscernible phrases underneath his breath. Clearing his throat, âNow who said youâd ever be an âunfit wifeâ, sweetheart- Yâknow I really didnât believe Tojiâs airhead comment but- oh-â
You land a half-hearted punch solidly in his stomach - and usually, youâd think twice, thrice before acting this familiar with anyone. Even then, you wouldnât follow through underneath your motherâs watchful eye.Â
Ah, but youâve never smiled harder when you claim. âI think I won our first argument as a married couple.â
âOh, can you do this fâme when I have an argument with Sukuna, next?â Gojo chuckles, wiggling his brows.Â
He has to dodge your playful hand a few more times - well, he would have had to. But heâs taking them all gladly, pulling you by the wrist to press you flush against his chest. âBut fine, you win. Maybe as a wedding gift we can consumm- Iâm kidding Iâm kidding- follow me, I have the perfect idea.â
And you couldnât not come with him, with the way that Gojo was eagerly dragging you through the town plaza and back into the now-empty tavern, where youâd remembered had a grand piano nestled away.
Gojoâs pulling out the seat for you, before promptly taking his own flush beside you. Nudging you with one of his shoulders, he starts up a beautifully haunting few lower notes. Delicate. âYou donât have to play, you can listen if youâd like-â
âHey, I know this one.â youâre gasping, eyes lighting up with the recognition of that familiar somber from the Zenin house. But something about it this time felt so right.Â
Before you know it, your hands are moving faster than you can hold them back, joining Gojo in his sweeping melody on the higher notes. It rings in the air around you two, jostling your body up against his.Â
âYou know it.â he breathes, such a brilliant grin making way onto his pretty features when you two continue your little duet. And you swear you could hear him suck in a sharp inhale before playing even harder on the keys - a challenge.
And you were never one to back down.Â
âHeh, youâre not half bad-â But his own little boast gets cut off by Gojoâs half-skeletal wrist snapping off, twiddling up, up, up the grand piano and on its merry way around your shoulder. âPardon my enthusiasm, my love.â
You help him reattach it back, an interesting quirk of being half-dead, you suppose. âI like your enthusiasm.â
Thereâs a slow, stuttering silence that echoes afterwards, and youâre shivering from the slightly cold bite of the underground. Gojo wraps his full arm around your shoulder this time, and you donât have the heart to tell him that he was still bone-cold.Â
âHowâŚâ he gulps, barely meeting your eyes. âHow did you know that song?â
But you couldnât tear yours away from him, âOh? That song? Well- before I uh- married you, I was actually engaged-â
His pretty lips fall slack, âOhâŚâ
Youâre not sure why you hasten to explain yourself, âB-but he was a prick- and I threw a wine cup at him just before coming here.â
âThatâs my girl.â Gojo winks, and youâre feeling your skin heat up.
âAnyway, this song was to be played at the wedding. So my mother made me memorize every single note- she failed to tell me it was a duet, however.â
âIt was.â
Something about those two words comes out breathless, barely hanging on. And youâre biting your bottom lip ragged before the question escapes you, âYou were engaged, as well? Before- as a prince- I mean- oh, forget-â
To your surprise, Gojo only chuckles - deep voice breaking ever-so-slightly at the very end. His fingers glide across the piano with a familiar sadness that you canât quite pinpoint. Chest rumbling, âWell, itâs just as the others said. We were meant to run away together, but your dear olâ husband here died just before we could.âÂ
Youâre swallowing the lead thatâd seemed to piled up heavily in your throat, still afraid to push too far. âAnd the- the bride? What happened to her?â
âIâŚdonât knowâŚshe probably saw I wasnât there and went back, had a happier life with a more deserving husband- children, even.â He looks towards the perpetual night sky, Adamâs apple bobbing heftily. âItâs funny- todayâs a hundred years since that day.â
Something hurt. And your chest churned at the thought of him waiting and waiting in the darkness for years. For someone.
âYou loved her?â
He looks at you - really looks at you - and then down at the gleaming locket. âI love her. And I made a promise, I wait for her - in life and death.â
Something really hurt - and it wasnât just that hollow, aching burn in your chest. No, your head was now throbbing with such a splitting pain that you canât help but grab your temple with a yelp. Eyes scrunching shut with tears, trying to down out that drilling thrum.Â
âShit-â youâre hearing, foggy, like it was in the distance. âShit shit shit-â Big arms wrap around you, âAre you alright? Shit-â
The swinging pub doors slam-
âWhat happened?â
âThe bride from upstairs-â
âSheâs still here?! She already dead or what?â
More and more voices are joining in - and youâre not sure if youâre thankful that they drown out that harrowing thunder of blood in your ears or angry that theyâre making it ache more deafeningly in response.Â
âPlease- space.â Gojoâs stern command rings across the plaza, for a moment of clarity youâre thinking that heâd make the perfect leader of sorts. The perfect prince. âMy wife needs space, and you all will leave-â
Nanamiâs strict tremor was distinguishable anywhere. âWhat she needs is to go back upstairs, Gojo.â Another pair of rough hands grasp your shoulders, and you hear a growl from above you. âWith fresh air, with her kind. I donât know what fantasy youâre playing out but she needs to be back with the breathers, down here isnât good for her.â
âBut-â
Just at that unfortunate moment, your head wracks with another painful burst, making you cry out. Clinging onto Gojoâs soft jacket for dear life.Â
âBut sheâs my wife.â
Everyone goes quiet.Â
You were sure he was crying now, and oh how badly you wanted to reach out and comfort him. But, instead, Gojoâs the one soothing a hand down your back, nuzzling his face into the crook of your neck. He breathes in deep, grounding gasps by the chain of your locket, âN-nanaminâs right- we- I have to get you back.â
Your eyes shoot open, âWhat- no-â
âItâs for your own good.â Pressing a slow kiss to your forehead, âTrust me.â
âBut-â
âPlease?â
---
Gojo Satoru had spent so long in the darkness, that heâd almost forgotten how beautiful the moonlight is.
Even more so when you were by his side.Â
âOhâŚâ And despite not having a beating heart, he swears he could feel it racing at the crisp scrunch! of freshly fallen snow underneath his polished shoes. Arms immediately wrapping around your waist, twirling you to him, âHow I missed the beautiful upstairs.â
Youâre giggling, batting your lashes up at him. âWell, youâre not doing much sightseeing right now, are you, Gojo?â
âPlease.â He rests his icy forehead against yours, waltzing you slowly around the clearing. Your first dance. âCall me Satoru, I would like to part ways having heard my name on your tongue once, than not at all.âÂ
And ah, it hurt him more than that dull, spreading pain of death to simply see your expression crumble. Lower lip wobbling when you whisper, âDo we have to?â
Itâs as if that tiny tremble in your voice jolts him back to his senses, and heâs letting go of you as if you burned. Turning his back so that you wonât see him swipe underneath his dampening eyes, âWe do.â he nods solemnly. Still gazing out through the barren trees, the snow breaking in. âBut I wouldâŚif youâd like- I would really like you to say my name just once.â
Nothing - not one of your quipping insults, not even one of your sweet, sweet giggles. Gojo could barely even hear that shallow breathing of yours.Â
âMy love?â
Nothing.
Gojo whirls around, âMy love?â
Nothing.Â
---
âLet me go let me- go-â you spit, voice dripping with a deadly growl that should decidedly not be used in front of your future in-laws. But you didnât give a fuck right now. âI will never- ah-â
Unceremoniously, youâre thrown like a mere debris in front of Dutchess Zeninâs gold-tipped boots, hands splaying out against the cool marble to dredge up some ounce of balance. You look up into her burning glare, hissing, âI will never marry your son.âÂ
But itâs like youâd never spoken at all.
Sheâs turning to Naoya, stood proudly behind you, holding back his snickers. âAh, my son-â Reaching her arms around to brush off the soft pattering of snow down his coat. â-I see youâve brought your wife back.â
âOf course, mother.â heâs humming. âHad to walk all throughout that crummy forest until I saw her-â At this, heâs turning towards your parents, who could only watch from the sidelines. â-with another man no less- well, canât quite call him that if he didnât even see his woman being dragged off into the dark.â
Dutchess Zenin cackles,and the sound makes you grit your teeth. âThat other man is my husband-â
âWhat?âÂ
Itâs your own mother speaking this time - eyes widened. Fuming. She comes up to you in a few urgent, sharp strides, grabbing at the now-torn and frayed edges of your gown. âWhat nonsense are you speaking-â Sneaking a glance at your father, âOur daughter seems to have lost her mind, dear.â
Heâs just a bit more gentle - cautious, almost. As if confronting a cornered wildcat when he ruffles through your pockets for the ring. Finding none.Â
Youâre wrenching yourself away, âIâm fine- but father, listen- I was practicing my vows in the forest-â Every eye was on you know, and oh youâve never felt more of a spectacle. â-and I put that wedding ring on a tree root- and it- it came alive and oh- he was a groom. A beautiful corpse groom-â
âThat trip to the forest must have bogged up her mind- yes yes, she must be imagining things.â
âOf course, but the weddingâŚpoor dear-â
âThe only thing sheâs good for is the money.â Dutchess Zenin gruffs, tired of hiding her disdain. âAnd maybe a free trip to the hospi-â
âThe wedding will take place.â Naoya cuts in gruffly, snapping his fingers at a nearby attendant and pointing at you. âCall the officiary, and as for my future bride, I donât care if you must force her into that wedding dress, I donât care if you have to drag her here - she will marry me one way or the other. Now.â
Itâs like youâre a puppet - their puppet. Being rapidly walked and bathed about, dolled-up in a white, silken wedding dress that you could never see yourself standing in next to him.Â
It fits you like a glove, attuned to your body as if it was made for you - and you almost hated how beautiful it was, adorned with tiny silver inklings and the most delicate of lace. Made with too much love to be borne out of this dreary household, but when you turned to ask your jittery handmaiden about it, sheâd only cryptically answered about âthe dress being with this family for a long, long time.â
No one here seems to give you answers.
Or grace.
Or anything but locked windows that you crack a nail or two attempting to open and flee and a long, decorated aisle to walk down to your future husband. Naoya.Â
Your throat tightens when youâre stepping back into that hallway - now flourishing with bouquets of blue, blue babyâs breath, and twinkling candles. It was almost colorful, for this town, at least.
You shudder out a teary sigh when the tender piano starts up again - the exact same tune youâd played with Gojo. But cold. And suddenly, youâre realizing that you never asked him how he knew the song.
âPssst! Walk!â Your motherâs high-pitched hiss is enough to snap you out of your little reverie, glassy eyes snapping up to look at her urgent signal to hurry up.
And so you walk, but not to the one man you wanted to.
Naoyaâs smirk lies as smugly as ever when you take your place beside him at the altar, poised, and perfect in his pressed suit, his glinting sword. Whispering snidely from the corner of his mouth. âSmile a little, itâs a wedding after all.â
You keep your gaze trained firmly on the officiary starting his speech, âPerhaps in disappointment, we are perfectly matched.â
âDearly beloved, we are gathered here today to join this man and this bride in holy matrimony-â Gesturing a wrinkled hand at Naoya, âYou may begin first.â
He raises his hand in a solemn oath, razor eyes boring relentlessly into yours. Voice dangerous, humming. âWith this hand, I will lift your sorrows.â This time, he was pointedly the one to pick up that cup on the altar table - a steady, unbreakable metal this time. âYour cup will never empty, for I will be your wine.âÂ
Your trembly fingers wrap around the bottle of wine, starting to slowly pour. âWith this hand, I will lift your sorrows. Your cup will never be empty for I- I will beâŚâ
Shit.
Shit, you canât do it.Â
Your words struggle to come out, and you could burn in the sheer anger already wafting from Naoya.Â
âI will- I will be-â
âHow scandalous to marry an already-married woman~!â
The gasp that echoes throughout the hall is almost as deafening as the booming crash! of those towering, mahogany doors being swung open. Clattering against the walls so hard that your teeth chatter with vibration - but you didnât care. Didnât even feel it because youâre too awe-struck by what was standing in front of you.
Or more accurately, who.Â
âSatoru!â The tears are falling hotly down your cheeks, you barely have the patience to lift up your layers upon layers of gauzy skirts before stumbling your way into his arms at the very end of the aisle. Ready. Ever-loving. Catching you easily like heâd been waiting a hundred years for this very moment.Â
âI thought you left me waiting.â he breathes.
âI would never- and- and youâre here.âÂ
âMhmââ
You canât help but let out a laugh, âHow did you even know where to find me?â
âOur duet- there would be no other but this house that would know it-â He wraps his arms even more snugly around your waist, white locks tickling your nose. âAnd you did promise to lift my sorrows, what type of husband would I be if I didnât do the same?â
âYou. You- What- what is the meaning of this?â Dutchess Zeninâs squawk tears through your little moment, sheâs whirling into a furious stand, fists clenched. âMarried woman- husband? Youâre dead!â
Gojo remains calm, sapphire eyes narrowing, âI am.â
But the ever-composed woman youâd feared for so long was now running her mouth a mile a minute, half-ripping out chunks of hair in frustration as the officiary held her back from storming her way towards the two of you.Â
âYouâre dead youâre dead youâre dead-â she screeches, and even Naoya could only watch with his mouth fallen. âYouâre dead- my family made sure of that-â
She stops short, mouth opening and closing in a gasp until you breathe, âM-made sure?â
âYes-â Sheâs fighting against the hold, still muttering to herself maniacally. âShit- we made sure to- oh god why- do we have to kill you all over again! Your wretched Gojo royal family is wiped out- I still- I still have the power, the riches- All because we left you-â
âFor dead.â he whispers. Youâre too shocked to gasp - to do anything but look up at his reaction. âBut she came back to me.â
âHer? This one- Once more you found that insignificant little-â
And at this very moment, Naoya just bellows in a guttural scream, everything his mother was restrained from doing with how heâd closed the gap between you two in a few urgent seconds. One hand wrapped roughly around yours, âI donât care- You forget she was engaged to me first.â
âSheâs still my wife.â Gojo spits.Â
âNot if youâre-â Naoyaâs unsheathing his sword haphazardly. Swinging. âDead!â
Schwingâ!
It would have been sure to hit you.Â
Would have been sure to gravely injure your side - if Gojo hadnât deftly moved himself squarely in front of you, that is. The sharp blade slicing right through his ribs - yet, he still smiles. âYou forget I already am.â In one, fluid motion tackling the sword to holt at its bejeweled hilt - pointed right at Naoyaâs chest. âLet go of me and my wife, before you join me.â
Itâs silence.
Silence and the smell of fear. Sour, and saturated when Naoyaâs stepping away, one unsteady foot after the other-
âI will ruin you as my ancestors have, Gojo brat-â
Dutchess Zenin.
Your body moves before your mind - before any form of thinking, as if on instinct. Yet, you already knew what was coming.Â
And soon enough, youâre standing in front of a stunned Gojo, face splattered with the red, red wine in her silvery cup. Drip! drip! dripping down your stained lips and onto the marbled floors.Â
But something about it tasted bitter.Â
Different.
.
.
.
And all of a sudden - you see dark.
âPoison! By gods, the wine was poisoned!â
âHow will the wedding go on?â
âNo- no no no I just wanted to her sick- to get her willâshit-â
âMy love---listen----hear--me?âÂ
In the foggy distance, you could hear girlish, high-pitched screams that sounded strangely like Naoyaâs, and the familiarly dark chuckle of- Sukuna? Sounding ready to pounce on fresh meat. âHeheh, new arrival - and some unfinished business, huh?â
âSâToruââ youâre whispering, eyes blearily. Heart cold. Suddenly, everything about you was cold. And the only thing you could register right now is the fact that you were still in his arms - always was. âToru- am I- where am I?â
âYouâre here, sweetheart.â he gasps, big fat tears splattering onto your face. The only sense of warmth that you could feel, other than the one in your no-longer-beating heart. And you canât help but wonder - can a heart be broken even when it stops beating? Because he was living two deaths now - his own - laying there poisoned with wine so long ago on the forest floor, with only the Zeninâs to watch, and you to wait for him much later - and most importantly, yours. âYouâre- youâre here, with me.â He places a sweet, sweet kiss onto your lips. âRest now, Iâll wait for you. I promise- I promise.âÂ
And through your hazy vision, the only thing that you could quite see was that silver locket youâd never thought to look through, out of fear - sprung open. Baring two grainy, clouded portraits - as good as a photo.Â
Of himÂ
AndâŚyou.Â
âIâll always wait for you, in life and death.â
---
âHey- Toruââ your voice rings out in Gojoâs favorite song, peering curiously at the boyishly grinning prince. âDo you think Iâll be an unfit wife?â
He throws his head back with a cackle, peering through his long lashes from where he was resting his head in your lap. âWhat- no? Whatever makes you think that, silly girl?â
Youâre settling yourself further down the young oak - your favorite little hiding spot ever since youâd introduced your secret lover to it. Grumbling half-jokingly, you thread your fingers through his soft, snow-white hair. âWell perhaps because someone refuses to help me do anything in preparation for tonight-â
âShhh!â Gojoâs bringing a finger to his lips, glancing around over-dramatically. âYou never know when my father will be jumping from behind the bushes.â At your amused laughter, âNâ besides, doesnât matter if weâre going to elope, Iâm not letting my wife pick up a thing.â
âWhat- no-â
âIâll snag my wedding suit- and that specially-made dress for you heh- and get the attendants to sneak out some leftovers from the banquet. The Zenin family has just gifted some wine I know youâll love.âÂ
Craning his head to press a slow kiss to your forehead, âWeâll drink, weâll say our vows- you better have memorized them this time-â And another on your nose, âThen Iâll have you drunk in another way~ ow! Okay okay- donât hit royaltyâ! And run away to our happily ever after.â Then, finally, lingeringly on your mouth,âTrust me.â
âBut-â
âPlease?â
Youâre fiddling with the chain around your hefty, heart-shaped locket with a huff, finally caving in. âFine- but then-â Deftly unclasping it, â-you have the responsibility of keeping this safe, too, I have to teach piano to the little ones in town again today, and if anyone catches me with a piece like this Iâll be hanged for thievery before ever getting married.â
âOur duet?â
âOur duet.â
He twirls that delicate pendant around his fingers, brows scrunching in half-seriousness. âIâll protect it with my life-â Almost flinging it towards the end of the clearing in his haste to salute you, âAh- pardon my enthusiasm, my love.â
âI like your enthusiasm, dummy.â youâre rolling your eyes at his antics. âBut what if Iâm late? The music lessons always take so longâŚâ
âJust meet me here at our place - promise Iâll wait for you, of course. In life and death.â
You never did find out if Gojo Satoru waited for you.
You never found him that night - running late to the clearing, only to be met with no sign of him. Not that night. Not the night after. Night after night, you waited for him - watched as the Gojo royal family fell and the Zeninâs raided their palace, as the town started to grow and you stayed the very same.
With stray hope, even in your final ages, waiting for him and the marriage that wonât take place.
Not for a hundred years.
---
Youâre waking up remembering the feeling of those cold, cold lips on yours.Â
Finally, remembering.
âSa-Toru-â youâre gasping, gulping in heavy lungfuls of air before you realize - you donât need it anymore. Eyes startling open, you wince at the even the dim, heady lighting overhead. âIâmâŚâ
âDead.â
His words are gentle - just above a whisper, as if anything else will scare you off. But his words have the complete opposite reaction, in fact, youâre reeling him in so close by the silvery lapels of his weathered jacket. Wedding suit meeting your wedding dress.
You feel over his broad chest, and then over yours. Breathing out in awe, âI- I really am dead.â
Gojoâs wincing, running the soft pads of his fingers down your scalp. Massaging, âHow- how do you feel, my love?â
Too-late youâre realizing that youâre splayed out on what seems like a plush, engulfing bed. Blankets upon blankets of velvety fabrics covering the surface, like someone had tried their very best to replicate warmth.Â
âI think I feelâŚâ youâre muttering, the very corners of your painted lips turning upwards at the way that Gojo was hanging onto your every word. Pretty mouth dropped into a soft oh! eyes wide and true. You just canât help but drag him into the tightest embrace your joints could possibly handle. â-that I havenât spent enough alone-time with my husband.â
He laughs - he laughs and laughs like he hasnât before, like itâd been bubbling up in his throat for years and finally set free.Â
âOh, my love.â Gojo reveres, pressing a trail of hot kisses down the side of your face. Lingering in a languid lick where big, salty tears of yours were welling up. âWe have all the time in the world- I just- just- do you remember?â
Youâre pretending to think, leaving him careening at all your minute expressions. Finally cracking, âOf course, I remember- all of it, dummy-â Swatting his chest, âWhy didnât you tell me?â
Heâs gulping heavily, âI always knew that- that it was you the moment I saw your face- you look exactly as you did. Exactly as beautiful as the day I lost you, after all.â Cupping your cheek, âAnd oh, sweetheart, what a blessing it would be to marry you. But how could I ever tell you when you didnât even remember me? How could I so selfishly ask you to throw away something so dear as life for me? Even for a promise?â
âI would have done it.â youâre pouting, brows scrunching.Â
âExactly.âÂ
âI waited for you, yâknow. For years, until my death. No âdeserving husbandâ, and no children.â
He gasps a tiny, meaningful gasp. And for all how Gojo loved to run his mouth, right now he only presses a sultry kiss to your forehead, âBut in this life, or the last, or whatever comes next-â On your nose now, â-Iâll wait for you. Always have, always will.â Finally - yearningly - on your mouth, âIn life and in death.â
Gojo kisses you like heâs been waiting a hundred years for it - and would wait a hundred more before he can again.Â
Pressing one, two. Three steamingly hot, open-mouthed on your spit-glossed lips before moving to trail them down the underside of your jaw. Dragging his raw lips in a messy glide, heâs tittering when all it takes is one sudden bite at the soft spot on your neck to get you to jump.Â
âHeh- you never change-â he murmurs into your heated skin, licking down the sting with a slow spread of his tongue.Â
âT-Toruââ youâre managing to gasp out despite his relentless attack on your mouth. Making him wrench out such a pained grunt when you pull his face back ever-so-slightly to look into Gojoâs eyes. âArenât you forgetting something?â
Gojo can only cock his head in confusion, gaze still half-lidded and locked on your lips.Â
âYouâre forgetting your promise from all those years agoââ youâre dragging out in a honeyed-tone, giggling at the way his hulking body squirms impatiently. â-to consummate our marriage.â
And oh.
Oh, Gojo Satoru feels heâs dying six times over already.Â
He feels like his bleary head is about to go into overdrive - as was the sudden tightening in his pants.Â
âW-well thenâŚâ heâs rasping out, voice so ragged, dipping into a husky baritone that for a second you almost donât recognize it. Two of his long fingers cup your face once more - rougher this time, making your lips squeeze together into an almost-embarrassing oh! âOpen that mouth fâme, my love.â
You barely even realize it when you do - not until Gojoâs spitting a thick, translucent wad of his syrupy saliva right onto your lolling tongue.Â
Nodding smugly when youâre taking him all, heâs swiping the curve of his thick thumb down that purposeful splatter on the corner of your lips. Because you knew the prince of a nation should have perfect aim, you knew he just liked seeing your dewy eyes flutter.Â
Whispering hoarsely against your lips, âI ask you to be mine.â
âYes-â youâre whining, your hands scrambling down the decadent fabrics of his suit. âYes yes yes- please- n-need more, Toru-â
And the sound of that cute lilâ nickname youâd made for him in that sweetened tone makes Gojoâs entire body wrack with a violent shudder. Head throwing back, white lashes flickering shut- âO-oh, shit- shit youâre gonna be the death of me-â
But whatever little joke playing on your tongue just dissipates when Gojoâs shedding his outer coat off slowly. Bloodied, silken jacket hitting the ground- bloodied? Youâll have to ask about that later.
And then his mouth is on yours again - teeth clashing, tasting metal, his pretty lips wrapping around your hot tongue to just suck. Lazily, like his favorite candy.Â
âSo beautiful-â his words puff out in a feverish pant. Chest huffing - no, heaving - you can only keen when you feel something so hard and massive nudge up in a gentle kiss against your high. âSo perfectââ The sodden curve of his achy tip dragging in a wet smear down your leg. âSo mine.â
As soon as youâre blinking your dazed eyes back open, youâre hit with what looked like miles upon miles of Gojo Satoru. Curving muscles sitting prettily and casting shadow in the low lighting - it made you just drool.Â
Shit, when did he even take his shirt off?
âHeh, already so needy, sweetheart?â He kisses up the glossy trickle, groaning into your mouth, âSo cuteââ
But, of course, you werenât exactly one to be pushed around, either.
With a low purr, you cup that bulging tent right in-between his muscled thighs. Fingers skimming over inches upon inches of his girthy, solid shaft - he just gasps. âO-oh, you little minx- do you enjoy p-playing with my hngh- sanity?â
With a snicker, it doesnât take you long to smudge the pads of your digits at that thickly spreading pool of precum. Glossing a thin sheen all the way down to your wrists with how fucking greedily he was throbbing at your touch.Â
âF-fuck-â heâs hastily clearing his throat as soon as it breaks off into a pathetic whine. Hips bucking forwards in mindless, staggering gyrations into your hand like Gojo didnât even realize what he was doing right now. âFuck fuck fuck- honey, I-â
The neediest little grunts spill from his puffed-up lips, and heâs moving urgently - hastily, when sitting upright to all but rip that bejeweled belt off of his slender waist. Tugging his white pants down, down, down and-
Oh.Â
âFuck, Toru.â
Gojo was so unfairly pretty - all of him.
Even every single inch of his long, thick shaft, smeared with glistening precum sobbing out from his fat, round head. Blushed darker than the rest of him - matching his innocent cheeks right now. So hard it looked painful.Â
Twitching over and over in saturated gushes coating his prominently throbbing veins, his tight balls. Your fingers.Â
Wrapping tight around his flushed base, he was so incredibly big that youâre worried your fingers wouldnât even close. Scratching up against those drenched tufts of cloudy white at his toned pelvis, the sight is enough to make you gulp.Â
âYes-â Gojoâs rasping, head thrown back because shit did it feel good to have your pretty lilâ fingers all wrapped around him. Hips stuttering up, up, up- âYes yes yes- câmon- c-câmon my wife-â
Shit, those words spilling from his lips are enough to steer into such a loud moan, and heâs letting his jaw fall unhinged. Jaw-droppingly powerful back muscles flexing when he falls into a hunch, kissing wetly at your lips.Â
âTighter- squeeze ah, squeeze me at my tip-â Gojoâs babbling, drunken eyes so thoroughly locked on where you were pumping your fist back and forth. âY-yeah hngh- and glide your thumb over justââ
Youâre swiping the very tip of your thumb underneath that sensitive slit of his, the slightest touch enough to make him bawl out in a dripping sheen of precum. Reddening even more, his hefty girth in your hand jolts sensitively.Â
âS-sâthisââ you stagger out, wrist aching when youâre moving it faster. And faster. Ears ringing with the sloppy fap! fap! fap! of your fingers clenching around his thick, circular girth, the splatters of precum itâs forcing from him. Kissing gently down his burning shoulder, âSâthis good, Toru?â
And god, how dare you even ask that?
With a sudden groan, he crashes his lips into yours again. Addicted. Growling against your whiny mouth, youâre flinching at the nip of his sharp canines.Â
âOh, yer perfect-â heâs blinking back big, fat tears from behind those glassy eyes. And the soft plane of his palms dance ravenously down your body - all your curves, your dips where your wedding dress was hiking up. But most importantly at your sopping wet cunt. â-so so- p-perfect- any harder nâ mâgonna make ya a pretty momma right now, right here.â
His words come out a burst - a beg.Â
In that very heady moment heâs just bullying his thick digits past your soaked pussy - absolutely useless with how fucking translucent it was. Sticking to your sopping wet folds like a second skin that he wanted to rip off.Â
âS-so oh!â Sucking in a sharp gasp at the sight of that tiny lace wrapped around his fingers, âSuch a pretty cunt, wearinâ such a dirty lilâ thing, naughty girl- who was this for?â
And you couldnât dare bear to wrench your lips open, to meet that dark glint in Gojoâs gaze. Hooded, such a slow, leering grin growing all over his face when the seconds tumble by. When your softened fingers falter around his length.
âWho was this for?â heâs echoing. âNâ no lying to your h-husband.â
âToru-â
âTell me, my pretty wife.â
âIt was-â youâre mewling out, choking on your tiny confession when he slides his index solidly down the drippingly wet purse of your swollen pussy lips. Puffed-up and sensitive against where he was rubbing that cool metal ring against them. â-w-was for ngh- N-Naoya- but it was Dutchess Zenin that made me-â
Oh, but fuck - it didnât matter who made you wear those sinful panties.Â
Because itâs only taking Gojo Satoru a split-second to crane his hot mouth downwards and bite down on the very hem of your saturated panties. Biting the edge of your skin only slightly - before just tearing the fabric off with his very teeth.Â
He takes a few seconds with his greedy gaze boring into yours, crazed. Canines bared glintingly around that tender lace, he just groans.Â
Eyes rolling to the back of his head before spitting it out - and kissing you like youâve never been kissed before.Â
âH-hngh, Toruââ youâre moaning, your fingers half-cramping up with the way they were turning around his swollen cock. Swiveling around the heated bumps of his sensitive spots, the drag of your nails gently down his veins make him shiver. âFeels so- ah!â
And ah, for how much Gojo loved those saccharine sweet moans in your ear, how much he loved teasing you - he was hungry.Â
Shoveling all the way into your gummy channel, until your puffy pussy lips were kissing his very knuckles, gushing out in spurts of wet slick down his wrist. Twirling those cold digits, so stark against how toasty you were inside.Â
It made Gojoâs thickened tip twitch in your fingers, huffing out a humorless laugh when he was easily knocking against that bulbous bullseye of your g-spot. Pressing down. Hard.Â
âMhmââ heâs purring, nosing down the tender crook of your neck. âTell me how it feels- hngh- gotta tell me- fuck oh fuck donâ squeeze me like that- ah-â
Heâs just wrenching out the most dripping squelches with each rummaging pump into your melty cunt, your walls were just molding around his digits. Sucking him back in like youâre trying to milk out something delicious- fuck, how he wished this was his achy cock right now, instead.
Gojoâs biting down hard at that magical spot on your neck, sending shocks of electricity down your sluttily arched spine. âCanât- hah- canât take it anymore- shit- needa be inside you soon. Needa fill ya up soon.â
And he didnât even have to tell you - you could feel it.Â
Building up and up with every relentless such of his glistening fingers. Glossy.Â
âNeed to make you mine-â heâs gasping, heatedly. Tone cracking on almost a bawl, his hips are fucking into your hand like his little cocksleeve, up all the way from weepy head down to thwack into his pulsing base. Fingers bumping messily into his taut, twitchy balls - making Gojoâs mouth water. âNeed to- hngh- need to make you cum! Please-â
Tears crinkling at the very ends of his doe eyes, after every single crash along your sweet spot. Thorough wet glides. âPlease please please-â
And itâs whispered over and over like a mantra when youâre cumming - again and again, so hard that you didnât even realize youâre reaching your high before your tight pussy clamps around his fingers.Â
âYeah- yeah yeah, cum all over my fingers.â Heâs thrusting his fingers in and out so rabidly, hitting all your forbidden spots. Free hand pushing apart your quivering thighs even further, âSpread wide- heheh, yeahhhââ
Those sudden slurps sounded so thunderous in your ears, and your maw sags open deliriously in a higher-pitched ah! ah! ah! Grinding your hips down over and over in needy swivels, using him. Music to his ears, making his staggering erection just weep so dangerously- but he canât cum.Â
Wonât cum just yet.Â
Not until heâs fucked you through each and every one of your peaks, not until your convulses are tapering out into nothing but tiny tingles.Â
And then heâs dragging out his ruined fingers from your sodden cunt - out, out, out. Snapping delicate strings of the mess heâs made of your poor pussy, before pushing them through his lips rawly.Â
âM-mmm-â heâs rumbling from the very depths of his broad chest, pecs heaving. And through your half-lucid gaze, youâre spying a silvery dribble of drool down the side of his lips. Moaning at the sweet, sweet taste. âShit- shit, sweetheart-â
You canât even react before heâs then spitting a steady stream of wispy saliva down to your sloppy hole, swirling it around with one of his thumbs.Â
âBetter let her know mâcoming back for seconds later.â
You whine all brattily, your hips arching into the perfect buck upwards - which only makes him grin. âHeh- my greedy girl, if I waited one hundred years ya can wait a few seconds.â
Itâs so admonishing - and Gojo has never told a bigger lie.Â
Because heâs the one thatâs so painfully impatient right now, angry cock spewing out a few more velvety waves of precum down your gleaming palm. A low string of profanity rips from his throat, and heâs just diving his hands around every inch of your body he could reach.
Deftly untangling those tedious ties at the back, âDamn these little- forgot how many ribbons I fuckinâ- ordered-â
In split-seconds, youâre being flipped over with one fluid push of Gojoâs biceps, sinking your front into the royally soft mattress. You felt like you were in heaven.
âToruââ youâre whirling your head over your shoulder to admire just how much his biceps flex. Twitching with each eager rip down your bodice. Shaky fingers tightening on the silken sheets, âH-hurry up-â
âEasy there, my love.â
Itâs ragged, breathed hotly against your ear, and suddenly Gojoâs resting every bit of his body weight on top of yours to pin you down helplessly onto the bed. Holding your squirming hips captive onto one rough hand attached to them, âArch jusâ a bite more- please- fuuuck like that yeah-â
Heâs taking the opportunity to fling your wedding dress down easily, bunching it somewhere towards the corner of the bedroom - right alongside your bra and inner layers.Â
Youâre gasping - stunned.Â
âDonât l-look at me like that, Iâve had one hundred hah- years to practice this exact moment with my hand nâ imagination-âÂ
And then Gojoâs gasping, heâs snapping his eyes open, heâs heaving out the most whiny call of your name when you push your hips back in a wet slide against his painfully hard cock.Â
Your folds smacking wetly against his shaft, dragging in a dripping trail along his veins - and shit, Gojo really underestimated how fucking hot youâd feel against his cock. How readily awaiting when his slender hips rut down in a furious push and pull. âThis is long overdue.â
âHey!â you jut your spit-sheen lower lip out when heâs rudely smacking away your hand from the clasp of your locket. âWhaâs that for?â
âKeep it on.â Gojo nips at your earlobe.
And then heâs spitting you open - heâs pushing in.Â
Inch by fucking inch of his swelteringly hot cock being shovelled into your gooey cunt, stretching out your snug walls to their limits. Pulled taut. Barely giving an apologetic kiss to the side of your head before Gojoâs circling one big beefy arm around your hips, easily tilting your entire body upwards for him to surge his hips even deeper.Â
He gasps, he shudders at the faintest of your wet clenches. âCâmon-câmon câmon câmon- a-ah- you can take it please- please take it fâme.âÂ
How could you not?
Because every one of his tiny, shallow grinds just to fit in have your mouth dropping further and further open cockdrunkenly.Â
âPlease-â your hands fist at the plushy pillows, the headboards, craning behind at Gojoâs neck. âFuck me h-harder, Toru- I can-â
âOhhh- you play a hah- dangerous game.â He swipes away the stray hairs on your forehead, kissing at your sweat-slicked forehead. âMy beautiful bride- my beautiful, beautiful bride - ah- almost makes me wanna m-make you more.â
Just that split-second of sultry shock is enough for Gojo to push in fully - all the way until your thighs sting with the sudden thwack! of his hefty, cum-filled balls, your folds kissing up against his thickened base.
Heâs hissing when his achy, rounded tip recoils ever-so-slightly against the spongy mess of your cervix, hitting it relentlessly in harsh jackhammer. Spearheading his fat cock to massage up against all your sensitive spots in a more dizzying way than even his fingers could.Â
âWh-what do you m-mean-â Theyâre falling from your mouth as hastily as Gojo can pump you stuffed full of his cock. Not even easing into it, starting up a sloppy cadence. â-b-byââ
âAwww, donâ hngh- p-push yourself, my loveââ heâs simpering out. But oh his hips were speaking a completely different language from how soothing your husbandâs tone was, one hand curling deftly around your throat to reel you in even harsher in sudden swats against his ever-pushing hips. Twirling around the chain of your locket, âWhat I mean isâŚâ
Both of your half-lidded gazes are downturned to where he feels for that tiny nudge at about halfway down your stomach. Drawing an imaginary line about halfway through, before splaying down all five digits. Hard. â-that mâgonna make ya a pretty momma as well as my pretty wife.â
This little confession is followed by a particularly hard slam! from Gojoâs end, and you dart your hand out to grasp desperately onto the wooden headboard.Â
Crying out, âIs- is that even possible, Toru?â
But the only actual response that Gojo can give - that he thinks himself capable of giving right now, with how mind-numbingly your pretty pussy was milking any rationality out of him - is a breathless chuckle. His head throwing back with a whimper, brows knitting together. âI donât know hah! Havenât got a fuckinâ clue- but that doesnât mean mânot gonna fucking tryââ
And he was fucking you into the mattress just like it, well and fully intent on breeding your tight cunt. Jostling the locket at your chest with rough, reckless abandon. Every sodden drag down your slobbery walls having those dreams from a lifetime ago about your happily every after playing through his mind.
You, with your drooling pussy painted all white with his potent cum, making such a mess of him that he just has to do it all over again, of course.Â
You, all round and glowing - full of him, his heir.Â
You, looking up at him with those gorgeous eyes - another, tinier set held delicately in your hands. His hair, and your smile. Everything that heâs ever wanted in life and death.Â
Stupidly. Pussydrunkenly.Â
âOh oh-â Gojoâs groaning, the sudden bump of your fingers against the sensitive curve of his balls making him jolt back into his reality. His heavenly, heavenly reality. âAww, have I b-been neglecting you, my love?â
No, you want to scream - but you canât.Â
Because heâs only hiking up a powerful thigh to pressurize his harrowing rams with even more power, and you could feel every flex and ripple of his washboard abs. The spatter of pearlescent beads of sweat setting in with fatigue.Â
But Gojo wouldnât listen in the first place, couldnât even think of anything that didnât stem from his achy cock pummeling into you.Â
Messily, heâs swiping at those fingers of yours that were currently reaching for your angrily puffy clit, aching for more more more-Â
Giving a mean little smack onto where your sensitive nub was drenched in all your sweetened juices, it sends bolts of electricity all over your body. Clinging your gummy walls around his girth so tight.Â
âThis what y-you wanted?â he rasps by your ear, drawing slow, determined circles on the very peak of your clit. And when that doesnât have you crying out all prettily for him the way he wanted - Gojo just tugs. Unapologetically. âTell me- ngh- tell me how it feels, fuck- can feel this cunt gettinâ so soaked-â
âYes-â youâre sobbing out. Hips now aching with the burn of pushing back into his unrelenting hips - it hurts almost. The sting of his skin against you, the hard collision of his fat head against your cervix. But you want more. âY-yes feels so good, Toru- need more hngh- need you t-toâŚâ
âWhat?â heâs spitting. Wild. âTell me, sweetheart- please- please-â
And, hell, Gojo Satoru wanted to hear so badly that heâs just slowing his hips down every so slightly to let you catch your breath. To answer.Â
But what he was actually blessed with was another one of your long, drawn-out whines. Grumbling ever-so-slightly as you jolt your hips back with every one of the thorough swivels of his fingers on your clit. Toying.Â
Fucking back harder than ever into his rock-hard dick, the locket just slams itâs cool branding onto the heated skin of your chest-
âNeed you to f-fill me up-â you mutter wetly, nothing more than a few gurgles wrenched out when his clashing head French-kisses your g-spot. Drawing wet glides of his steamy precum down it. â-make me a hngh- m-momma, Toru-â
Oh, this might just be his third death ever.Â
Because the bed creaks riotously with every one of his ragged rams, in a way that made you glad for the ever-present music of this town.Â
Over and over.
âYeah- shit, gonna make you a p-pretty momma-â heâs babbling away, a mile a minute. So sloppy that youâre barely able to understand what Gojo was saying. âFill you- up- ngh- so theyâll look at you and see me. All me- all pretty and r-round- me me me- ohââ
Right now, Gojo didnât give a fuck if his little dream was even possible. He didnât give a fuck if his moans were turning into whimper, staggering thrusts trudging into the sloppiest of grinds. The neediest.Â
Because right now you were cumming.Â
That rapid throb of your clit increasing twofold when youâre finally plummeting into your high, wave after wave of pleasure that he fucks you through with heavy pound after pound.Â
Your eyes are rolling to the back of your head, toes curling, flashes of white flitting behind your firmly shut eyes. Fuck, it felt so good.Â
And your fingers clench hard around where they were still firmly stationed on the headboard to keep at least an ounce of your sanity. Intertwining with- Gojoâs when he slams his hand down hard enough that the entire bed shudders.Â
Or maybe that was just him - because so was he.Â
âF-finally-â Gojoâs hiccuping, angling his head just right to be able to catch your pretty lips in what could barely be considered a kiss. Just a sloppy suck of your tongue while he pumps you snugly full of sloshing loads of his cum. âWanâed this for- so long- finally hngh- consummate- you- most beautiful ah momma-â
His whines were nonsensical at this point, only growing more and more so with each velvety ribbon of cum being poured around into your tight pussy. You could feel it swashing about your soft walls with every one of your hard, convulsing clenches, painting your insides over and over again in a second, sticky skin of his seed.Â
âYeah- fuck fuck fuck, yeah Toru- hah- m-more-â
And just when Gojo thought the almost-painful clenches of his heavy balls were coming to a close, just when he thought his thick streams of voluminous cum were stretching out into thinner wisps - you have to go and say those syrupy sweet words.Â
Fuck.Â
Heâs gasping, locking his finger with yours even harder on the headboard, âGonna- ngh- gonna be the death of me I s-swearââ
Oh, and then you looked at him with that fucked-out smile of yours. A sight heâs gifted to see. Humming, âIn life and in death, r-remember?â
Bang!Â
The headboard crashes down onto the floor. Your back is hitting the now utterly drenched sheet below you before the realization hits you.Â
In nothing but a split-second, Gojo pulls out his dangerously twitching cock to manhandle you flatly onto your back. Swiftly, he throws your legs over the curvaceous deltoids of his sculpted shoulder, easily bending you down, down, down into half.
Into the meanest mating press possible.
Dredges of thick, hot cum just ooze down your sopping slit, spreading in a milky circle underneath you. And slobbering down Gojoâs swollen hilt as soon as he plugs himself back in - immediately.
The very divot at the end of his cock quivering - for only a split-second before bursting out in streams of more and more cum. Overflowing. Overspilling out of you.
And he canât help but glide an open palm over that tiny inflation beginning to form where heâd drawn a line just earlier. One hand pressing down on it hard, the other tweaking at your clit to make your walls clench.Â
âOh f-fuck yeahââ Gojo stutters at the glossy coating of his own seed all around him. Reveling in the toasty feeling again and again until his poor, overworked cock can only sputter out wispy strings of nothing. Shooting blanks. âGonna breed ya- make ya all round and and- ngh full until you c-canât take anymore. Until we hahh- have that happy ending y-you wanted.â
You mewl when heâs licking away those glistening tears rolling down your cheeks, â-happy ending w-we wanted hngh- Toruââ
âYeah-â he chuckles. Pecking at your lips with that salty sweet taste on his tongue, âWe wanted. Itâs why I didnât reincarnate like you, my love, unfinished hngh- business here sâto spend a long, long and happy marriage with you, yâknow?â
You bat your lashes in sweet disbelief, âThatâs- thatâs mine, too.â
Ah, he reels you in even closer into his arms. Snug. Ever-loving. Seemingly like heâd never let you go ever again - couldnât bear to.Â
He nuzzles against that now-open locket, eyes peering down at those bleary paintings of you two, as loving as if they were taken just today. And in the back of his fried mind, he makes a note to take newer photos for later. Fingers tracing their familiar pathway to press down on the outer edges of the metal - in only the way he knew how, in the way that you should have been taught all those years ago, but was never able to.Â
âThen-â His eyes light up as they always did whenever it came to you, when the tiny mechanisms on the locket open up to reveal a delicate, gorgeous ring. Strangely matching his own. Gojo doesnât think heâs done anything easier in his life when he slides that ring onto your finger, fitting so perfectly. Not even when he was waiting for you, not even when heâd taken care of Naoya in a way that left his coat spattered and stained with red. â-weâre both lucky.â
Itâs only after a few soft, lingering kisses that Gojo finally pulls away - like it hurt to.
And it did, sensitive shockwaves erupting down his overwhelmed length. But none of that shows above his drunken grin when Gojoâs shuffling down the bed, all the way until his hot breath was puffing up feverishly against your sloppy cunt.Â
Messy. Drooling.
Making such an utter mess on his tongue when he lets it loll out, swiping up the gushing creamy dredges with a long lick. It was so filthy, dribbling down the sides of his mouth, onto his pinkish tongue-
Just a tease for more.Â
âBecause I keep my promises, my wife.â his murmur wraps all around your thrumming clit. Tongue swirling a milky gloss all over his pert, raw lips. Only wanting more. Waiting. âIn life and in death.â
A/N. THIS- THIS WAS SO FUN TO WRITE Nâ GOT ME IN MY FEELSSSS. Hope yâall have a lovely lovely week <3
Plagiarism not authorized.
#gojo x reader#gojo smut#gojo x you#jjk x reader#jjk smut#jjk x you#gojo satoru x reader#gojo satoru smut#gojo satoru x you#jujutsu kaisen x reader#jujutsu kaisen smut#jujutsu kaisen x you#jjk#jjk fic#jujutsu kaisen#gojo satoru#tonywrites
10K notes
¡
View notes
Text
she talks, he talks | max verstappen
pairing: max verstappen x reader
summary: max verstappen loves to talk, you love to talk. match made in heaven.
liked by charles_leclerc, alexandrasaintmleux, landonorris, and 625,048 others!
yourusername: skiing with cha except he eats shit every five minutes
view comments below!
user1: YN AND CHARLES CONTENT
user2: WE CHEERED!!
charles_leclerc: NOT every five minutes
yourusername: đ¤¨
charles_leclerc: like every ten minutesâŚ
user3: i really needed some yn and charles content after that HORRIBLE triple header
user4: i need yn and charles content 24/7
user5: is this his girlfriend?
user6: ew no
user7: yn and charles have been friend since childhood. his gfs name is alexandra!!
user8: did you guys see those paparazzi pictures?? they were so funny
user9: LMAOOO YEAH yn talking her ass off while charles was just đ§ staring dead at the camera
user10: he looked like he was trying to communicate for help with his eyes
user11: charles loves himself some yappers
alexandrasaintmleux: thank you for sending me that five minute compilation of charles eating shit
yourusername: anything for you my love <33
charles_leclerc: can you guys stop bonding over my hurt
alexandrasaintmleux: no!
carlossainz55: please send me that video
georgerussell63: me as well!!
alex_albon: me too!
maxverstappen1: ooo me too!!
landonorris: please send that video my way
oscarpiastri: me too!
lewishamilton: i would like to see that video!
charles_leclerc: youâre all sick.
user12: wait now i need that video
user13: PLS POST IT YN PLS
user14: yn and charles going on vacation alone while he has a gf is soâŚweird
user15: not really?
user16: his like his sister bro đ youâre making it weird
user17: alex is clearly ok with it so why is it weird??
user18: iâm pretty sure they were with other friends
user19: and even if they werenât that would be okay!! because they are grown ups who can do whatever they please
user20: you know who would be great friends??
user21: max and yn
user20: you literally READ my mind
user21: it would be literally the 2 yappers against the world
user23: you guys are geniuses
user24: i canât believe with all the races yns been to she hasnât met max đ
user25: they obviously know OF every other, they just havent met face to face ďżź ďżź
user26: one photo pls just one photo of max maxplaining and yn ynplaining pls
â yn ln has posted new pictures!
liked by charles_leclerc, alex_albon, and 649,028 others!
yourusername: leo and his favorite aunt + his favorite max (>á´â˘)
view comments below!
user27: OMG THEYRE FRIENDS NOW
user28: yappper mets yapper
user29: charlesâs two yappers are friends
user30: his two worlds are colliding
user20: i made this happen guys
user31: no bc they definitely saw that comment and were like âyep! weâre friends now!â
charles_leclerc: youâre his only aunt
yourusername: your point?
charles_leclerc: of course youâre his favorite aunt, you have no competition
yourusername: yeahâŚi still donât understand where youâre going with this
maxverstappen1: yeah charles, be more clear with your words
yourusername: he realllyyy needs to know how to communicate better đ
maxverstappen1: HONESTLY!! itâs soo annoying when he wonât just spit something out
yourusername: you are SO right max
user32: oh yeah, this is a good combination
user33: the yappers are yapping
user34: they just became friends and theyâre already ganging up on charles đ
user35: do you guys think sheâll go to hungary?
user36: UGH I HOPE SHE DOES
user37: okay guys listenâŚthe last 3 gps were ASS for charles right???? and the last race yn was at wasâŚ. MONACO and who won that?? YEAH CHARLES. sheâs the good look charm.
user38: youâve literally solved the problem
user39: @/yourusername we NEED you in that garage pls yn. i can handle another horrible ferrari weekend
alex_albon: pet play date when?
yourusername: max says leo isnât allowed to have play dates with other animals until he has a play date with jimmy snd sassy firstâŚ
alex_albon: gosh he is so possessive đ
maxverstappen1: sassy and jimmy need to be leoâs #1 friend. if he meets other animals then THEY WONT BE HIS #1 FRIEND. is that so hard to understand?
yourusername: makes perfect sense to me đ¤ˇââď¸
maxverstappen1: thank you!
charles_leclerc: you guys are aware that heâs MY dog, right?
yourusername: for now đ
charles_leclerc: WHAT
user40: you guys are saying friendsâŚbut i smell relationship
user41: smell? you SMELL?
user42: oh thatâs notâŚ
user43: can yall just LET PEOPLE BE FRIENDS
user44: people just donât believe in the power of friendship anymore
liked by user45, user46, and 64,928 others!
maxverstappenupdates: yn and max caught yapping to others and EACHOTHER at the hungary grand prix today!
view comments below!
user47: fork found in kitchen
user48: clap if your surprised
user49: dead silence
user50: this is actually so cute
user51: RIGHTT?? like he talks, she listens, she talks, he listens
user52: does anyone want to role play yn and max with me
user53: ?
user54: iâll be yn
user53: great! iâll be max
user54: ??
user55: the first race with yn and max being friends and theyâre already like this đ¤
user56: i need her in the redbull garage next
user57: it think that would cause charles to explode
user58: iâm gonna say what everyone is too scared to sayâŚthey would be a cute couple
user59: DONT LET THEM SILENCE YOU
user60: man be QUIET
user61: yâall see the opposite sex interact and donât know how to act
user62: theyâre both so expressive when they talk and it makes theyâre conversations so much better
user63: i was there and i overhead part of their conversationâŚtell me why they were talking about which one of them could outrun a f1 car
user64: my bet is on yn
user65: nah i donât think so, max is an athlete
user66: yeah but heâs also the type to fall on his ass 3 seconds into the run
user67: BUT SO IS YN
user68: they are literally made for each other
user69: they make it so hard to just believe there friends
user70: THE WAY THEY LOOK AT EACHOTHER!!!
user71: FRIENDS DO NOT LOOK AT EACHOTHER THAT WAY
liked by landonorris, charles_leclerc, and 652,084 others!
yourusername: skiing with someone who wonât wipe out every 10 minutes is great! (ŕšËá´Ë) and thank you to the random person who took that amazing picture for us! <3
view comments below!
charles_leclerc: on your mind 24/7 đđ
yourusername: the image of you tumbling down the mountain and taking at least 20 people with you will NEVER leave my mind
charles_leclerc: IT WAS WEEKS AGO
yourusername: I BET THE PEOPLE YOU TOOK DOWN WITH YOU STILL REMEMBER
charles_leclerc: LEAVE ME ALONE
landonorris: iâm a much better skier then that guy đ
maxverstappen1: please tell me where she asked
landonorris: just sayinggg
user72: jealous max?
user73: IM THE ONE WHO TOOK THE PHOTO!!
user74: omg how was it??
user73: SOO CUTE!! they made a snowman and made like 20 different snow angels đ
user74: OMG THATS SO THEM
user75: does this not look like soft launching to you?
user76: they make it so hard to keep saying their just friendsâŚ
user77: what type of friends take vacations alone together
user78: charles and ynâŚ
user77: oh you got me there
georgerussell63: those are awesome glasses
maxverstappen1: i just threw them away
georgerussell63: why would you do that?
maxverstappen1: i tend to do the opposite of whatever you say is great
georgerussell63: okay rude.
user78: those glasses are fire đĽ
user79: why are they lighting up? and where did he get them??
user80: that first picture is absolutely gorgeous
user81: this is literally soft launching, why is nobody freaking out?
user82: what about this is soft launching? its literally just them hanging out
user83: oh to be hanging out with max making snow angels with him
user84: they would be so cute together
user85: this is a date and nobody can convince me otherwise
user86: OH BROTHERRR
â max verstappen has posted new photos!
liked by yourusername, charles_leclerc, and 972,018 others!
maxverstappen1: launching us straight into the moon đ
view comments below!
user87: yapper and yapper together my dreams have come true
maxverstappen1: @/yourusername
yourusername: you get me đ
user89: what did i fucking say. i want EVERYONE who told me i was crazy for saying they were together to APOLOGIZE.
user90: iâm sorry, truly
user91: yeah thats my bad, sorry!
user92: my bad đŹ
user93: i still think theorizing about someoneâs relationship is weird but okay!
user94: iâm sorryâŚ
user95: yâall really had me out here defending your âfriendshipâ đ
user96: RIGHT! i feel so embarrassed
user97: truly a defining moment for me
user98: i really wanted a man x woman FREINDship to shove into peopleâs faces
user99: you always have yn and charles!
user98: itâs just not the same :(
user100: but they are really cute together
user101: yeah..they are
charles_leclerc: finally! she has someone else to talk too other then meâŚ
yourusername: hey! i have other friends đ
charles_leclerc: name 3
charles_leclerc: WHO ARENT RELATED TO ME OR WHO ARENT ON THE GRID
yourusername; okay frick you??
maxverstappen1: itâs okay liefde, iâll listen to you talk forever
yourusername; thank you maxie đ
charles_leclerc: barf
user102: does he mean soft launching??
user103: LMAOO I THINK HE DOES
user104: happy for you! (i wish that was me soo bad)
user105: iâm soooo normal about this
user106: charles two yappers have officially gotten togetherâŚi definitely saw this coming
user107: i knew it!!!
user108: yn posting cute little friendship pictures and max just full force announces their relationship
user109: ugh i love him
. . .
notes: summer school is officially over! i can now spend the rest of my summer writing ( ̄â˝ďżŁ)
thank you for reading!! hope you enjoyed :)
#max verstappen social media au#max verstappen smau#max verstappen x y/n#max verstappen fluff#max verstappen x you#max verstappen fic#max verstappen imagine#max verstappen fanfic#max verstappen x reader#max verstappen#f1 x reader#f1 fanfic#f1 imagine#f1 fic#f1 x y/n#f1 x you#f1 x female reader#f1 social media au#f1 fluff#f1#formula one x you#formula one x reader#formula one x y/n
4K notes
¡
View notes
Text
Ditto [s. todoroki]
đŽđđśđ đžđ đđ˝đ đđžđšđšđđ, đżđžđđ đđđ đś đđžđđđđ, đđđ'đ đđśđđ đđ đđžđšđšđđ, đŽđśđ đžđ, đđśđ đžđ đˇđśđ¸đ, đđ˝ đđśđ đžđ đšđžđđđ â đđžđđđ, đŠđđđĽđđśđđ
â summary: when you transferred to U.A., you didn't anticipate slipping on a pair of chopsticks in the middle of the crowded cafeteria during your first week. however, what was more surprising was the unexpected fall for the boy who gracefully caught you.
â pairing: shouto todoroki x fem!reader
â genre: fluff, strangers to friends to lovers
â word count: 13.1k
â warnings & tags: sfw, female pronouns are used, usage of y/n l/n, Class 1-A are now third-year students aka 18+, swearing, the usual U.A. chaos, reader has a Quirk, misunderstandings, some training violence, minor injuries, mentions and discussions of insecurities, aizawa briefly belittles the reader as a form of motivation, beginnings of a panic attack but it's cut short, there is one instance of the reader appearing to be âflushedâ in regards to a fever, since this is my first bnha fic some characters might be ooc? | please kindly let me know if I missed any tags!
â author's note: AHHHH HERE IT IS! I've been working on this for almost a year now and I am so excited to finally share it with all of you. Honestly, I didn't think I would ever finish this story, but I kept slowly chipping away at it thanks in part to the encouragement from @andypantsx3, @missrosegold, and @getstarried. Special thanks to @pikatsum for beta-reading this for me! Thank you girls. This is for youđŤśđť
The cafeteria at U.A. High School was a pretty chaotic environment, you quickly learned within your first week after transferring from another Hero Course in the countryside. There were multiple things that could and would happen after the famous students had gotten some much-needed nutrients in their systems.
It was only three days into the school year and nothing had happened just yet, but in the U.A. world, that something was overdue.
The first chaotic event of the year that everyone had been anxiouslyâor in some cases, excitinglyâwaiting for happened on Thursday.
The day started off average; you got to school with three minutes to spare, which was a new record, but you had forgotten your pencil pouch in your dorm room, so you had to borrow some pencils from a girl who sat in front of you; Mina Ashido.
âThank you,â you whispered as you took the pastel pink utensil from her. There was even a cute little fluffy puffball at the end in exchange for an eraser. Good thing you had an eraser in your bag.
âNo problem! I gotcha!â She physically lit up and gave you a bright smile before turning back to focus on the blackboard.
You somehow managed to get through your morning classes running on the four hours of sleep you got the night before. You were cutting it quite close to passing out at your desk during calculus class, but you were saved by the lunch bell.
As soon as you stepped foot into the hallway, you were wrapped up in the faint, delicious scent of your favorite food coming from the cafeteria. Your mouth instantly watered, and you made a mad dash for the source of the delicious scent.
âHey!â a sharp voice made you freeze in your steps. You glanced over your shoulder to find Tenya Iida, Class 3-Aâs representative, glaring at you. The light reflecting off his glasses made him appear more threatening than he really was, but regardless, you still found yourself shying away from his harsh glare and rapid-moving hands. As they passed by, some students gave you apologetic smiles while others were not shy about openly staring at the scene before them, wondering what you possibly could have done to induce the wrath of the student representative. âThere is to be no running in the halls!â You cowered some more at his brisk and overly formal tone.
Geez, what a stuck-up, you thought to yourself.
âMy apologies, Iida.â You respond with a bow. He accepted your apology with a curt nod before he continued on his way to the cafeteria.
You waited for him to pass before rising from your bow. âWow, he makes it feel like I broke the law or something.â You mused aloud.
âDonât take it personally,â a comforting voice said from behind you. You turned to find Momo Yaoyorozu, Ochako Uraraka, and Tsuyu Asui standing before you. Ochako gave you a slight wave in greeting. âIida can be quite demanding,â Yaoyorozu reassured you.
âThank you.â
Tsuyu regarded you with gentle onyx eyes. âItâs L/N, right?â
You smiled, happy that she remembered your name from roll call. âY-yeah! Iâm Y/N L/N.â You introduced yourself. âI, um, already know who you guys are.â You suddenly felt shy, and you bashfully rubbed the back of your neck out of nervous habit.
Before your transfer was finalized, you did extensive research into your future schoolâs history and future classmates. Thankfullyâor unfortunately, depending on how you look at itâa lot of information is public knowledge; the various attacks on the school in the year leading up to and the conclusion of the War between the Paranormal Liberation Front and the Heroes, not to mention the various televised sports festivals, and the fact that the members of Class 1-A are practically household names even before their graduation.
The girls invited you to sit with them in the cafeteria. You had been keeping to yourself the first few days of school, choosing to observe from afar the already established social circles and friend groups. You had waited for an invitation to join one of said groups, and here was your opportunity.
The four of you made small talk as you made your way through the lunch line and to the table. Right away, Asui told you to call her by her given name. You told them about your life growing up in the countrysideâwith you and Uraraka bonding over your shared reason for becoming Pro Heroesâabout the friends you had, embarrassingly funny stories from your junior high days, and eventually what led you to transfer to U.A.
âWell, this is the best Hero Course in the country!â you all laughed. âBut to be frank, the only teacher at my old academy who could handle my Quirk retired, and none of the other academies within the prefecture had the resources to help me advance. Plus, my mentor is an U.A. alumnus, so naturally, the only other choice was U.A.â
Yaoyorozu hummed. âIt is a shame about your mentor retiring, but that is what led you to transfer to U.A., and for that, I am grateful.â The class vice representative regarded you kindly. âI am a firm believer of things happening for a reason, and your transfer doesnât change that.â
Uraraka nodded her agreement. âMomoâs right. U.A. is a place where anybody can make a difference, and I think you will find success here.â
You were rendered speechless. The tips of your ears turned red as your classmates regarded you with so much hope and sincerity in their eyes. âUh . . . I,â you bashfully scratched the back of your head. Not knowing how to respond, you instead reached for the small bottle of milk on your lunch tray and brought it to your lips.
However, before you could take a sip, a BOOM erupted from the front of the cafeteria, accompanied by a gruff voice yelling, âDonât walk in front of me, Icy-Hot!â You reflexively jolted at the loud noises and lost your grip on the glass, spilling the half-full bottle all over the front of your uniform.
âShit,â you exclaimed as you instinctually rose from your seat, only to quickly sit down again when the liquid started to fall to the floor. The girls gasped and were quick to hand you all the napkins in the vicinity.
âAre you okay, Y/N?â Asui asked as she watched you pat down your sodden skirt.
âYeah, Iâm okay.â You waved off her concern as you continued to wipe away the remaining liquid. The napkins managed to soak up most of it, but your skirt was still damp. If you didnât change skirts, you were going to smell of milk for the rest of the day, and you didnât want to start off the school year with a reputation for smelling vile. âIâm going to go back to the dorm really quickly and change into a clean uniform. Please let Mr. Snipe know that I will be late for class.â
âDo you want us to accompany you?â Yaoyorozu asked. She began to rise from her seat, but you stopped her.
âNo, no. Iâm okay, really.â You gave her what you hoped to be a reassuring grin instead of a grimace. âThank you for offering, Yaoyorozu, but Iâll be fine.â Before your classmates could respond, you stood from the table and made your way to the exit.
Great, this is just great, you thought as you walked, not really paying attention to where you were going. As soon as I make some friends, I make a fool of myself.
Unbeknownst to you, there was an obstacle in the aisle directly ahead. You were too distracted by your growing inner turmoil to notice the pair of metal chopsticks lying on the ground before you until your foot made contact and slipped out from under you.
It all happened so fast that you couldnât even react.
Time froze as you became weightless, and you felt your body become briefly suspended in the air. Before you could react and rotate your body to prevent yourself from violently banging your head on the tiled floor, gravity took hold and yanked you back down toward the ground. You squeezed your eyes shut, not wanting to witness your classmatesâ reactions to your misfortune.
Great, now Iâm gonna embarrass myself in front of the entire school. Fuck you, chopsticks.
You prepared yourself for the pain of hitting the hard floor but were shocked when you were suddenly wrapped in a chilled warmth. You did slam into a hard surface, but this didnât feel like the cold tile you expected.
âAre you all right?â a voice asked from above. You opened your eyes, only to find yourself captivated by a beautiful graphite and turquoise gaze. Your mouth opened to respond to the inquiry, but you couldnât speak. This strange yet calming gaze hypnotized you, causing the rest of the world to fade into a buzzing silence. You watched as the perfect eyebrows of the owner of those magical eyes furrowed downward at your prolonged silence, the action momentarily drawing your attention.
With your attention span no longer zeroed in on the heterochromatic gaze, the world around you suddenly slammed back into your senses at full force. The volume of your fellow classmatesâ conversations was deafening at first, but your ears grew accustomed once again to zone them out and focus on the person before you.
It took about thirty seconds for the entirety of your current predicament to register within your brain.
You were hanging about ten centimeters off the ground. The only thing keeping you upright and injury-free was Shouto Todorokiâs firm grip on your wrist.
âUm, hello?â the dual-haired teenager once again drew your attention to him. His grip slightly tightened before he tugged you up onto your feet.
âI think you broke her, Icy-Hot.â A rough voice drawled from your peripheral.
The intrusion of the other voice is what finally brought you out of your stunned silence. âNo, Iâm okay. Not broken.â
âDid you hit your head?â Todoroki inquired. He steadied you on your feet but didnât release your wrist from his hold. Katsuki Bakugou was standing off to the side, trying to appear like he wasnât involved with either one of you.
âI-I donât think so.â As you reached down to brush yourself off, you caught a whiff of the unflattering scent of old milk emitting from your clothes. You held back your gag and turned to face Todoroki and Bakugou. âIâm sorry to rush, but I really do need to go.â You gave a quick bow. âThank you for catching me, Todoroki. Bye!â
The two boys watched you sprint away like a bat out of hell. âTâfuck is her problem,â Bakugou muttered. âFuckinâ extra makinâ me late for lunch.â
Todoroki didnât respond to his classmateâs remarks. His lips pursed together as he watched you nearly run into a couple of first years before you disappeared around a corner, out of sight.
âDonâ even think âbout it, Icy-Hot.â Bakugou drawled from beside him. Todoroki cocked an eyebrow, the only sign of emotion on his otherwise indifferent expression. âGettinâ involved with âhat extra will ruin your precious bloodline.â
You tried to forget about the cafeteria incident, but the embarrassing ordeal refused to secede from the forefront of your mind. As you lay in bed that night, your thoughts ran a hundred kilometers a minute, antagonizing and overanalyzing every second of what had happened.
As the night dragged on, your thoughts shifted from the overall event to one single individual: Shouto Todoroki. You knew who he was, of course. You didnât grow up underneath a rock. Yet, you werenât prepared for how much more handsome he was in person than on the news or in photos.
You overanalyzed everything he did in the brief two minutes you were blessed to be in his company, every word he said, and every brief flash of emotion that showed in his heterochromatic eyes. Todoroki had tried to approach you after training in Ground Beta once you had returned from the dorms, but you avoided him, not wanting to face him again so soon after the embarrassing first meeting.
By Sunday, you had begun to forget about your embarrassing cafeteria incident. Your newfound friends didnât bring up the spilled milk, and thankfully, they didnât see you slip on the chopsticks and fall into Shouto Todorokiâs muscular arms. You breathed a sigh of relief when you found out that last part. You didnât want them to think you were a total klutz.
Todoroki may think otherwise.
As you were rounding the corner to walk back up the stairs to head back to your dorm room, Todoroki happened to be walking down. You both turned at the same time and walked straight into each other.
He wasnât fazed by the sudden collision; however, you were taken completely off guard. No matter how strong you may be, suddenly walking into about a hundred kilos of pure muscle would make anyone stumble. While he remained steadily standing, you, on the other hand, fell back onto your ass.
It took about three seconds for the two of you to comprehend what the hell had just happened. You groaned out when pain flashed across your backside.
âMy apologies, I did not see you.â Todoroki said as he offered you a hand. You begrudgingly accepted his assistance, face heating as your super handsome classmate helped you to your feet for the second time in a week.
âThank you,â you bowed your head to him. You brushed away some dust from your sweatpants, finding yourself too shy to look back up.
You felt a firm, yet gentle hand land on your shoulder. You jerked your head upwards to meet Todorokiâs captivating gaze. âAre you injured?â His heterochromatic eyes searched you for any injury, and they glimmered with relief when he found none.
âNo, Iâm okay,â you reassured the male. âI may be a little bruised in the morning, but I will be fine.â Not to mention my bruised ego.
Todoroki hummed in acknowledgment, his hand still resting on your shoulder. His eyes were hyper-fixated on you, leaving you to feel bare under his intense gaze.
You shifted your weight back and forth as the silence between you dragged on for a couple more seconds. âUm, Iââ You cleared your throat. âI should be on my way now. Got things to study, you know.â You told him with an awkward laugh.
You moved to step around him when it became obvious he wasnât going to move. Your movements are what must have shaken him out of his stupor, with him bashfully stepping to the side to allow you access to the stairway.
âRight.â He said as you walked by. âTake care, Y/N.â You startled at his sudden usage of your given name, but nevertheless, you felt oddly relieved. You smiled shyly and bid him goodbye. Nothing else was said between the two of you, but you felt his eyes on you as you walked up the stairs.
I hope he likes cinnamon; you thought as you peered into the oven.
To be fair, you should have considered that before laboring for over two hours making kinako cinnamon cookies from scratchâwhich absolutely failed. Therefore, as a last resort, you were forced to run to the store and buy a box mix.
The he in question?
Shouto Todoroki.
It had been several days since your embarrassing first interaction with the dual-haired male and forty-five hours since your second, literal, run-inânot that you were keeping track, of course.
You wanted to do something nice for him as a way to apologize for your newfound clumsiness and thank him for his assistance in both instances. Your calligraphy skills were not . . . up to par, so to say, by any means, so a handmade thank-you card was off the table, and you highly doubt Todoroki was a flower guy. Not to mention his affluent background, so buying him a gift or offering to take him out to dinner was nullâand way too straightforward for two people who were barely even acquaintances.
Therefore, you were left with only one option: homemade cookies.
Besides, all the old aunties back home always said the quickest way to win anyone over was through food.
âOoooh, something smells amazing!â someone exclaimed from the stairway. Smiling slyly to yourself, you turned away from the oven to the new arrival.
You hadnât interacted much with Rikido Sato save for the casual good morning greetings and thanking him for the delicious red velvet cupcake he baked for you as a welcoming gift to U.A.
âThanks,â you said, grinning at the male.
The combined low mutterings of more approaching classmates brought your and Satoâs attention to the doorway where Mina Ashido, Eijirou Kirishima, Denki Kaminari, and Hanta Sero were entering the dorm.
âWoah something smells fantastic!â Kaminari said, gazing into the kitchen in hopes of spotting the source of the delicious scent.
âYeah, it does!â Kirishima agreed.
âOh my gosh, what is it?â Ashido asked as she walked over. Her eyes lit up when she spotted you. âL/N! Did you make something?â
âI did.â You confirmed with a slight nod. âIâm making kinako cinnamon cookies.â
âOooooh, yummy!â the pinkette exclaimed as she bounced over to peer into the oven. Your other classmates quickly joined her, all of them staring into the soft, golden light of the oven with stars in their eyes.
âThey look so good!â Kaminari was practically drooling at the tawny treats. At that moment, the timer went off with a soft ting! You politely shooed your classmates back as you pulled a hand towel over your hands.
âStep back, everyone,â you warned as you opened the oven door. âTheyâre going to be hot.â You carefully reached in and grabbed the cooking tray, cautiously sliding it off the rack and fully into your cloth-covered hands. Despite taking precautions, you hissed as the hot aluminum seeped through the towel and made contact with your flesh. As quickly as you could without dropping the pan of cookies, you turned and set it down on the kitchen island.
âThese look delicious!â
âWoah, man, they look amazing!â
âI bet they taste as scrumptious as they loââ
You zoned out the boysâ compliments as you moved to the sink and turned on the tap.
âL/N, are you okay?â Ashido asked as she followed you. Her question caught the other's attention, and they, too, turned to watch you quizzingly.
âYes, Iâm fine.â Your response ended with a wince as your skin made contact with the cool water.
âHere, let me see,â Ashido gestured to your hand. With your permission, she took your wrist with gentle fingers and held it up for you both to inspect. Your skin was reddened slightly, but it wasnât anything serious. You let out a sigh of relief. âItâs not serious, thankfully, but we should still put some burn cream on it just in case,â Ashido advised as she turned off the tap.
You nodded your head again and followed the pink-haired girl as she went to retrieve the first-aid kit. Before you walked too far from the kitchen, you shouted over your shoulder to your classmates, âPlease donât eat the cookies, boys! They are still hot and are for someone special!â
There was a noticeable delay in response to your warning. After a pregnant pause, there was a muffled, âokamph!â in response. You were about to turn around and make sure that they werenât eating your treats, but Ashido calling your name changed your plans.
âLetâs fix you up, yeah?â She said as you both entered the girls' bathroom. Ashido gestured for you to sit on the counter while she dug through the first-aid kit for burn cream.
âThank you, Ashido,â you said a few moments later as she lightly applied the cream to the worst of the reddening. Your skin wasnât blistering, which was a good sign, but it was beginning to ache.
âNo problem,â she replied. She began to gently rub the cream into your skin, mindful of the sore spots. She beamed at you as she said, âAnd you can just call me Mina. We are friends!â
You smiled at her. âOkay, Mina.â The two of you were silent for a couple of minutes as Mina continued to dress your burns.
âSo,â she started, breaking the silence. âWho did you make the cookies for?â
You sharply inhaled. âW-what? What do you mean?â You tried to play it off by playing dumb, but Mina gave you an are you kidding me look.
âDonât play that game with me, girl.â She scolded you. âSo, tell me, who is this âspecial someoneâ?â
You let out a heavy sigh, dropping your shoulders in defeat. âOne of our classmates. . .â You trailed off, turning away from the pinkette, and absentmindedly twirling a strand of hair around your finger.
Minaâs eyes lit up and her eyebrows shot up to her hairline. âOh my God, seriously?!?â She squealed. You turned to face her again. âGirl, you absolutely gotta tell me! Who is it?!â She went to grab ahold of your hands but stopped herself when she remembered your injury. âSorry.â
âItâs okay.â You said. âBut, um, Iââ You hesitated, searching for the right words, but you couldnât find them. âIâm sorry, but I canât.â You said, barely above a whisper, turning away from your classmate once more in embarrassment.
Mina leaned back, taken by surprise by your change of tone. She studied you for a few seconds, her expression falling when she saw the look on your face; the clenching of your jaw.
âItâs okay, girl,â she reassured you. She set the roll of bandages down on the counter as she finished wrapping your hand. âYou donât have to tell me who your crush is if you donât want to.â
You whipped back around to face her, eyes wide. âC-crush?!â you stammered out. âW-what?! I donât have a crush! I never said I did.â you explained.
âYeah, sure,â Mina smirked at you, her eyes sparkling with mischief. âYou wouldnât of baked cookies for them if you didnât like them.â
âUm, because Iâm nice?â you asked with a lilt in your voice. Mina does have a point, though, you thought.
Mina laughed. âYeah, sure. Letâs go with that.â
A couple of minutes later, you and the pinkette exited the bathroom, laughing over something Mina had said. Your hand had been expertly wrapped and treated with some burn cream. Your injury didnât even hurt anymore, but you were still going to check in tomorrow with Recovery Girl as a precaution.
As you rounded the corner to go back into the kitchen, you stopped dead in your tracks as your eyes fell to the now-empty pan where twenty cookies sat not even ten minutes ago. Mina stopped next to you, and you could see her giving you a questionable look, but you didnâtâcouldnâtâacknowledge her. You just stared blankly at the pan, trying to process what you were seeing.
What the hell? you thought.
âAh, man,â a voice drawled out. You slowly turned towards the source; Denki Kaminari. He was lounging against the counter as he rubbed his stomach for emphasis. âThose cinnamon kinako cookies were delicious!â Your brain blanked out when you heard that, the organ pathetically trying to comprehend and respond to the current situation.
âYouâre telling me!â Kirishima piped up from beside the blond. Sero and Sato voiced their agreement from where they were seated on the couches. âThey really hit the spot after the day I had.â The redhead noticed you and Mina. âHey, guys, welcome back!â he greeted with a wave, a broad smile overtaking his features. âHowâs your hand?â
You did not formulate an answer right away, your brain still processing the crumbled remains of your cookies. Your delay didnât go unnoticed by the others, but before they could question it, Mina came to your rescue.
âItâs okay! Y/N is alright, nothing major.â She informed them. Kirishimaâs gaze left you to focus on the pinkette by your side, but Kaminariâs remained transfixed on your blank expression.
âOh, well, thatâs great to hear! I was worriedââ
âBut you should be ashamed!â Mina cut the redhead off, tone sharp as a blade. âAll of you.â
âWhatâ?â
âMina, whyâ?â
Kirishima and Kaminari spoke at once, their voices clashing, but the pinkette interrupted them once more.
âY/N didnât make those cookies for you.â She said. âShe made them for someone special, yet you guys ate them even after she told you not to.â She just about bit the last part out. The boys gaped at Mina, her scolding catching them by surprise.
âIs that true?â Sato asked, rising from the couch to approach you. Everyone fixated their attention on you, waiting for a response.
You hesitated at the sudden limelight, and also in shyness. When you originally set out to bake the kinako cookies for Todoroki, you didnât expect them to 1.) burn your hand and 2.) for them to be eaten by others. Even though you were upset, you didnât want the others to be ashamed or scolded. But they did eat them after I told them not to, you thought, pondering your next move.
After a few moments, you squared your shoulders and steadily said, âYes. I . . . made them for somebody.â At your words, the roomâs atmosphere soured. The boysâ shoulders slumped as they realized their mistake.
âShoot, L/N, Iâm sorry,â Kaminari said, stepping forward to gently grab your uninjured hand and bow.
âYeah,â Kirishima added, scratching the back of his neck and looking away slightly. âThat wasnât really manly of us.â
âYeah, sorry,â Sero intoned, looking sheepish.
Sato came to stand in front of you next to Kaminari, who still had a gentle hold of your hand. âIâll be more than happy to remake the cookies for you.â He said. âIf you want that, of course.â
You smiled, though it was closed-lipped. âThank you, Sato, but not today.â He bowed his head.
Suddenly, the front doors slammed open, startling the six of you. You all watched, shell-shackedâyou did, at leastâas a fuming Bakugou stepped inside, loudly exclaiming, âI had âhat dumbass villain handled! Damn Sidekick extra jusâ had to step ân andââ He noticed your little group gaping at him. âThe hell âre ya fools lookinâ at?â As the words left his mouth, the other two members of the infamous U.A. trio entered as well.
âKacchan,â Izuku Midoriya said, trying to placate the explosive male. âHe was just trying to . . .â The rest of his sentence fizzled into the background as the entirety of your attention span landed on Shouto Todoroki.
It had already been well-established that the youngest Todoroki son was even more handsome in person, but seeing him in his Hero costume did things to you. Your mouth almost dropped open to gawk at his god-like appearance, but you clenched your jaw tightly shut to avoid that catastrophe. Despite that, you were pretty positive your eyes were as wide as saucers, greedily taking every inch of him in as if it were the last time you would see him.
I should sue him for the cost of my medical bills when I develop heart palpitations, you thought.
âShut the hell up, ya stupid nerd.â Bakugou snapped at a sputtering Midoriya, drawing your attention once more. You could practically see the steam coming out of his ears.
âIs he always this angry?â you asked under your breath; half-serious, half-rhetorical.
âOh, yeah,â Mina confirmed, voice just as low.
Sero snickered from his post next to Sato. âYou get used to it after a while,â he reassured you.
One of Kirishimaâs blinding smiles makes its appearance once again. âKatsukiâs always been passionate about, well, everything.â He told you, not bothering to lower his voice. âItâs who he is. We love him regardless.â
Sato chimed in with, âPlatonically.â The boys snickered and Mina rolled her eyes, yet there was a small smile playing on her lips.
âEven though his sour attitude can be harsh and lowkey over the top,â Kaminari began, eyes shining with mischief. âIt sure makes him fun to mess with!â Your companions groaned in exasperation and started to voice their reservations.
âNo, Denki. Leave him beââ Mina urged him.
âAwe, come on, man. Donâtââ
âHeyy~ Katsuki,â Kaminari crooned, rocking back on his heels as the pale blondâs attention zeroed in on him. Kirishima and Sato facepalmed. âWhy have trouble catching a âdumbass villainâ?â he teased. âBad day? Your head not in the game?â The hair on your arms rose to attention as an electric charge swept the room, putting everyone on edge. Kaminariâs baiting also drew the attention of the explosive maleâs companions. Your eyes briefly met captivating graphite and turquoise, eliciting a sharp gasp to leave your lungs.
âYouâre gonna regret the day you were born, dumbass!â Bakugou bellowed, pointing an accusatory finger at the electric blond, snapping your attention from the hypnotizing gaze. You fully expected him to charge the male, already taking a cautionary step back, but instead of explosions ripping apart the building, Bakugou grunted and moved towards the showers.
Mina turned to the blond and shouted, âNow why did you do that, Denki? You know better than to rile Katsuki up like that!â
Kirishima dragged a large hand down his face before running it through his unruly red locks. âIâll go check on him,â he announced before jogging after the sandy-blond. You were at a loss for words as you continued to watch your classmates scold a shit-grinning Kaminari, not even the tiniest bit remorseful for his teasing of Bakugou.
âPlease donât take Kacchanâs rashness to heart.â A new voice piped up. You turned to meet the electric green gaze of none other than Izuku Midoriya, the new generationâs proclaimed Symbol of Peace. âIâm s-sorry, I donât think we have properly met. Iâve been in and out of campus latelyâwith missions and such.â He practically skipped over to stand in front of you. He smiled brightly as he gently took your hands in his large, calloused ones. âIâm Izuku Midoriya. Iâm so happy you are here at U.A.!â he excitedly exclaimed, lightly squeezing your entwined hands. You couldnât hide your wince and small gasp of pain as Midoriya unknowingly squeezed your burns. The green-haired male let go of your hands so fast as if he was the one burned instead of you, eyes growing wide. âOh my gosh, are you okay?!â he asked, noticing the bandages wrapped tightly around your hand. Midoriyaâs frenzy caught the other's attention, and all eyes were on you yet again.
The tips of your ears grew hot at the unwavering attention from the Heroes-in-trainingâespecially from a certain icy-hot male who made your heart falter in its beating. âY-yeah, Iâm f-fine.â You stuttered as you met each of your classmate's gazes, trying to reassure them of your stability.
âWhat happened?â Todoroki inquired, eyes hawkishly zeroed in on your face.
âU-um, well . . .â you trailed off, words fading from your brain as you slightly cowered under his unwavering attention. âIââ
âShe burned herself while baking kinako cookies,â Sero spoke for you, having caught onto your growing anxiousness. You didnât miss Todorokiâs eyes narrowing at the black-haired maleâs words. Sato and Kaminari made noises of agreement, the blond absentmindedly rubbing his stomach in content.
Midoriyaâs eyes shined. âReally? You did?!â He looked behind you to the kitchen, eyes searching for the aforementioned treats. âWhere are they?â he asked when he didnât spot any, only a plate littered with crumbs. He turned his attention back to you. You opened your mouth to answer, but a wave of shame overcame you as your eyes once again met those of the one you had made the cookies for.
Mina noticed your hesitation, giving you a knowing look as she answered for you. âThe three idiots to your left ate them all,â she said with a little bite to her words, glaring daggers at the culprits. âAfter they were specifically told not to.â She reaffirmed. The boys shuddered at the reminder of their disobedience. The pinkette turned her attention back to the green-haired and dual-haired males. âI patched her up, though. The burns are minor.â
Midoriya nodded his head in understanding. âYou should still see Recovery Girl,â he instructed, unashamedly expressing his concern for someone he had just properly met. âAt least let her take a look at it.â
âIâm going to stop by to see her in the morning,â you reassured him, words coming back now that your mind was a little clear. His shoulders slumped in relief.
âYou should rest, Y/N.â Todorokiâs searing gaze trailed over your form, calculating eyes searching for any additional outward signs of injury or discomfort. âAfter suffering an injury, no matter how insignificant, rest is important.â He softly chided.
âR-right.â You stammered out, at a loss for how else to respond to your handsome classmate's concern other than compliance. A wave of exhaustion washed over you at that moment. Your feet stumbled as you became lightheaded for a split second. You noticed the dual-haired male take a step towards you, catching onto your sudden exhaustion, but you quickly rightened yourself. âThank you, Todoroki.â Youâre not exactly sure why you thanked him, or what for. His concern, perhaps? He subtly nodded as you turned from the small group, breathlessly mumbling some sort of farewell and something about retiring to your room for the rest of the day.
The others muttered their goodbyes as you made your way to the stairwell.
As you walked up the stairs, head hung low, your throat began to burn and your vision began to blur with tears. The first one fell when you reached your floor, quickly followed by a couple more. You wiped them away, sniffing, as you made your way to your door. You didnât react to the sudden presence next to you and the weight draped around your shoulders.
Mina didnât say anything, only traced comforting circles into your back as tears flowed freely down your cheeks.
The next day, you and your classmates were gathered outside Gym Gamma for an impromptu training session. You were surprised that Class 3-A still regularly trained together, but in your defense, that assumption came from someone who didnât have many options when it came to sparing partners up until your transferâa major shortcoming in retrospect.
âToday we are working on âlast standâ combat.â Mr. Aizawa drawled in his natural I Donât Give A Fuck tone. âClose-quarter combat in which a violent assailant has obtained the upper hand and corners you in an attempt to defeat you.â He proceeded to explain the instructions of the training exercise and pair the students into groups of four who would take turns being the Heroes and the assailants.
âMidoriya will be with Jirou.â Mr. Aizawa intoned, briefly glancing at the two students to confirm they heard. âTodoroki will be with L/N.â Your muscles stiffened when you heard that. Your heart began to race as you watched the red-and-white-haired male make his way over to you.
âH-hi,â you greeted him, giving a soft smile.
âHello,â he said, politely inclining his head. âI look forward to working with you.â
âSame here.â You said before facing forward once more as the first group began their round. You and Todoroki observed the match in silence, with you paying extra attention to your classmatesâ movements and taking mental notes of how they incorporated their Quirks into hand-to-hand combat.
The sound of approaching footsteps drew your attention. Expecting the new additions to be Ochako and Asui, you turned to greet them with a warm smile but paused when instead of your friends, Midoriya and Kyoka Jirou were standing next to you, both with warm expressions on their faces.
âHi!â Midoriya greeted with a wide smile and a small wave. âIâm excited for this training exercise! Itâs going to be so cool to see everyoneâs improvement with hand-to-hand combat over the break! And any new moves! Or Quirk Awakenings! Orââ You had a hard time keeping up with what he was saying as it turned into a stuttering rant as he went on about each individualâs Quirk.
The rumors were true regarding his ramblings, you mused to yourself, wondering how long he could go on for before a small hand on his shoulder made him take pause.
âMidoriya,â Jirou intoned. âCalm down.â His cheeks flushed a bright red. He began laughing nervously while absentmindedly rubbing the back of his neck.
âS-sorry,â he said, shyfully.
âItâs okay,â you reassured him. âI agree with your stance, though. Observing others' skills is an effective way to improve your own. Get an idea or two.â You turned your attention back to the ongoing training, taking mental notes of your classmatesâ fighting stances and their defensive moves, trying to get a better understanding of the why behind them. You pulled a small item from your jacket pocket, absentmindedly rubbing it between your thumb and forefinger. The movement caught Midoriyaâs attention.
âWhat is that?â he asked, green eyes alight with curiosity.
âWhat? This?â You held up your good luck charm; a small, pink parrot keychain from a popular cartoon series you had won years ago at one of your hometownâs summer festivals. It was lucky because at the moment, while little you were trying to win, your Quirk had manifested. âItâs my good luck charm,â you explained the pink parrotâs value to you.
âOh, cool!â Midoriya exclaimed. âYou know, I used to have a good luck charmâit was my super rare exclusive All Might trading card! First edition!â His eyes shined as he reminisced. âI would bring it with me everywhere! Even Kacchanââ
âDeku,â drawled a low voice from the other side of your gathered class. The temperature fell as Bakugouâs vermillion eyes narrowed onto Midoriya. âDonât say another word.â
âHeâs such a fanboy.â Jirou chuckled, fondness seeping into her voice. Midoriya smiled sheepishly, not bothering even to try to deny the label. You spent the time until your groupâs turn getting to know the two, quickly finding out that you and Jirou share the same taste in music; vowing to swap playlists after class. You were so caught up in your conversation that you almost forgot about Todoroki's presence, if not for the awareness of a body next to you. His chilled warmth seeped into your muscles, causing you to relax one moment, and tense up another.
âAre you all right?â he softly inquired, spying your tensed posture.
âYeah, Iâm good.â You replied, softly smiling but it didnât reach your eyes. âJust a lilâ nervous, is all.â
Todoroki frowned slightly, not understanding how you could be experiencing anxiousness. âWhâ?â
âOh yeah!â Midoriya suddenly interjected. âThis is going to be your first time demonstrating your Quirk, huh?â he asked you. âOr at least this is gonna be the first time I will see it. What is it again? Objectânoâum, yeah, anyway I bet it is awesome!â His eyes still shined with his enthusiasm and curiosity. âSometime you gotta let me ask you about it! I have so many! Does it work like Ochakoâs Zero Gravity? Or Yaoyorozuâs Creation?â
You couldnât help but give a small laugh at his eagerness. You had never met someone as enthusiastic about Quirks as Izuku Midoriya. It was kind of refreshing to interact with someone as passionate as he was.
âKind of,â you began, silently pondering over what you know of the brunetteâs Quirk and comparing it to your own. âOchako and I have the same limitations when it comes to the weight of an object, but besides that, our Quirks are different.â Your Quirk was object manipulation; you could telepathically manipulate objects within a certain range. To you, your Quirk wasnât all thatâwasnât anything unique by any meansâbut to others, you were seen as a powerful goddess. âTo be honest, Iâm lacking in hand-to-hand combat skills.â You sheepishly smiled.
âReally?â Midoriya asked, blinking in shock. âI thought your previous school would have prepared you for all types of situations.â Jirou nodded her agreement with the green-haired male. Out of the corner of your eye, you saw Shouto continue to observe you with a calculating expression on his face.
âUnfortunately, no.â You shrugged. âTheir curriculum was more focused on improving the individualâs Quirk than learning how to fight without it.â
âOh, wow,â Jirou said. âThat could put you at a great disadvantage down the line.â
You nodded. âYeah, I know. Thatâs whyââ You were cut off by Mr. Aizawa calling for your group to begin your training round. âWelp, this is it, I guess.â You chuckled nervously.
Midoriya gave you a reassuring smile. âYouâll do great!â he said, giving you a thumbs-up accompanied by a warm smile.
âDo your best,â Jirou added before moving towards the training pitch.
You started to follow, but a cool hand on your shoulder made you pause, shivering softly. You turned to find Todoroki giving you an expectant look. âYouâll do fine,â he said, confidently. He looked as if he put his entire faith in you. âIâll be by your side the entire time.â
You felt a surge of confidence fill you at his words. You gave him a determined look. âRight,â you said. âWe got this.â
You swear up and down his eyes twinkled when he looked at you, but it could have been a trick of the light. âYou got this.â He replied, softly. The two of you walked into the pitch together, side by side.
The training went . . . not terrible, but it could have been better on your end.
Todoroki, Midoriya, and Jirou were amazing. Even without using their Quirks, they each were a force to be reckoned with. You were captivated by how swiftly they movedâas if they were ballerinas performing Danse des Petits Cygnes.
You werenât on the same level as them and the rest of Class 3-A. You knew that, and you acknowledged it, but to see and be confronted by it so bluntly in person made you feel a whole other level of embarrassment and shame. You werenât weak by any means, you could hold your own in a fight for some time, but not like your classmates couldâand had.
Perhaps that is what separates you from your classmates. They have battle experience. Hell, they fought in a fucking war for crying out loud while you were on the other side of the country, guarding civilian shelters. You were fortunate not to see much bloodshed, but maybe that brought you to a disadvantage against these future Heroes surrounding you.
The horn had sounded as Jirou pinned you in the dirt for the sixth time, signaling the end of the round. You heard the sounds of Midoriya and Todorokiâs scuffling come to a halt from somewhere off to your left as Jirou lifted herself off of you. She offered you a hand as you began to rise from the ground. You accepted her extended hand with a grimace as the muscles in your back burned.
âNice work.â Mr. Aizawa said as the four of you approached. âYou performed adequately,â he addressed Jirou, Todoroki, and Midoriya. He turned to you. âYou, not so much.â
You flinched as the words landed home. Damn, you thought, but heâs not wrong. You had naively allowed yourself to believe that Eraserhead wouldnât call out your inferiority, at least in front of others. Then again, he was Eraserheadâinfamous for his bluntness and apathy.
âYour skills are greatly lacking in hand-to-hand combat,â he continued. âI havenât seen somebody so physically inadequate since your classmates were first years. Coming from another Hero Course, especially one with its reputation, itâs to be expected that youâre not up to par with your new classmates, but I didnât think it would be this bad.â As he spoke, he never broke eye contact with you, scrutinizing you. Even with one eye, his unrelenting gaze made you feel as if he could see every minuscule detail about you. âBased on the performance I saw today, it was a mistake to put you in this class.â
You heard a gasp from one of your classmates; its owner unknown. You gulped down your shame and remained silent. You had a feeling Aizawa wasnât finished with you.
âFrom here on out, I expect you to train harder and push yourself further than anyone else. Extra training, extra classesâanything that will make you catch up.â His eye narrowed. âIf I do not see substantial improvement in one month, you will be expelled. No exceptions.â
Your eyes widened, but your shock did not stop you from replying. âYes, sir.â You said, keeping your tone neutral as you mulled over his words. Although extreme, I understand the reason for Mr. Aizawaâs methods, you thought. Heâs right though. Iâm far from even scrapping the level these guys are on. I need to be more disciplined and work even harder if I want to stand on equal ground with my classmates. Resolve made, you promised, âI will go Plus Ultra!â
âYaass, Y/N!â Mina cheered. âWoohoo!â
Aizawa didnât say anything else to you, promptly dismissing the class. Midoriya praised your performance and commented on his wish to sit down and talk in-depth with you regarding your Quirk. You promptly accepted his request, telling him you would let him know when you were free. He smiled before walking off to join Iida and Ochako.
âIf it means anything,â a voice suddenly intoned from behind you. You spun around, having not sensed the person's approach. You werenât all that surprised to find Todoroki there, softly regarding you. âI think you did well.â
You scoffed but smiled softly. âThank you, but you donât have to patronize me. I have a lot of work to do if I want to catch up.â
âYou will,â he declared, before quickly clarifying, âCatch up. Especially with my help.â
You furrowed your brows. âExcuse me?â
âShould I repeat myself?â he inquired, his heterochromatic eyes swimming in mirth. âI will assist you in your training and classes.â
You didnât respond right away, regarding him with suspicion. You waited for him to name a condition for his help, but when he offered none, you relaxed. âThank you, Todoroki.â You inclined your head. âI greatly appreciate it.â
âShouto,â he corrected.
You blinked at him, taken aback. âWhat?â
âShouto,â he reiterated. âYou may call me Shouto. We are friends, are we not?â
You gaped at him for a moment, processing his words. âYe-yeah!â you said a little too loudly. âWe are friends, Shouto.â
The small smile that graced his lips lit up your entire world and caused your heart to speed up, pounding almost painfully against your ribcage. âMeet me here tomorrow after class.â He instructed.
âTomorrow.â You repeated in confirmation.
His smile grew a little wider. âSee you then, Y/N.â He said before turning on his heel and strolling away. You watched him go in a daze, in disbelief of what just occurred.
âOooooooo, Y/Nâs gotta date!â
You shrieked at the sudden voice and spun around for a second time to find Mina standing there, hunched over laughing at your reaction.
âMina!â you shrieked, placing a hand over your heart. âYou scared the shit outta me!â
She continued to laugh. âSorry,â she said once her laughter died down. âYou were so entranced with Todoroki that you didnât even realize I was here!â
âOh, yeah right.â You responded, playfully rolling your eyes. The two of you began to walk to the dorm. âI wasnât entranced with him.â
The pinkette gave you a look of disbelief, an eyebrow raised. âYeah, sure,â she retorted. âYou can lie to yourself all you want, but you ainât lying to me.â
You scoffed but didnât attempt to refute her claims. You put your hands in your pockets and looked to the ground, lost in thought. Mina didnât say anything else, allowing you both to walk in silence.
The next afternoon, you met Shouto at the training grounds outside Gym Gamma for your first tutored training session. He regarded you kindly as you slowly approached, suddenly feeling quite bashful.
âThank you for offering to do this, Shouto.â You said when you arrived. âIt really means a lot. I donât know how Iâm going to repay you.â
âThereâs no need for repayment.â He softly responded. âI volunteered to assist you. Therefore, no repayment of any sort is necessary.â
âAre you sure?â you asked. âI donât want to inconvenience youââ
His soft call of your name made your next words die in your throat. âI assure you, this is fine.â He said. âYour company and attention are substantial enough.â You felt your face warm at his admission. Shouto gestured towards the training pit. âShall we begin?â
He started by teaching you some stretches that are supposed to help decrease sudden muscle spasms and strengthen them. Afterward, he had you show him the little knowledge you had of hand-to-hand combat to gain an idea of where you stand in regard to U.A. training. Once you had demonstrated the few kicks and different styles of punching you knew, you turned to judge Shoutoâs impression.
Your breath caught at what you saw.
His handsome features remained stoically blank for the most part, but the pursing of his lips and slight furrowing of his brows spoke a different tale. He grumbled something under his breath that sounded a lot like they didnât prepare you at all, but you werenât one hundred percent sure.
âShouto?â you inquired, voice slightly uneven as your mouth formed the syllables of his name. âIs everything alright?â
His beautiful eyes snapped to yours, and once again you were frozen by the intensity with which he looked at you. His gaze was calculating, and you could just about see the cogs turning in his brain as he silently regarded you. A couple long moments later, his lips parted on an exhale and he finally addressed you.
âWe have a lot of work to do.â He declared. âBut we already knew that.â You slowly nodded your head, curious as to where he would be going with this conversation. âThankfully, youâre not completely helpless,â he intoned dryly. âEven though you donât have many skills regarding physical, non-Quirk combat, I have identified several places where we can start, correct, and then build on.â
You steadied yourself, resolve firmer than ever before. You declared, âIâm ready.â
Shouto gave a quick, but detailed, overview of his plans for your âtraining tutoringâ, you referred to your sessions as. He was going to teach you everything he thought you should knowâwhich was everything he knewâin order to successfully become a Hero people could rely on.
The two of you began by improving your physique. You joined him on his early morning run along with Midoriya and Bakugou, who welcomed you with contrasting fervor. When you met for your afternoon training, you would run five kilometers before learning various grades of combat moves, and then concluding your time together by sparring.
It was established early on that neither of you would use your Quirks during your tutoring as the two of you were well-adapted to your respective Quirksâand the strict rules regarding their usage.
For the next several weeks, you worked tirelessly on your training, and your dedication and hard work paid off. At your end-of-the-month assessment, Aizawa was pleased by your rapid and exceptional improvement and announced you could stay at U.A. He also informed you that it was never his intention to expel you in the first place, but nevertheless, he was impressed by your efforts.
You and Shouto continued to grow closer as time went by. You still had your training tutoring sessions in the afternoons, and you became a regular on his early morning runs. You even hung out outside of class and training; preparing pre-workout meals and drinks together, and various study sessions at all hours of the day and night. Once, you even packed him a small canister of his favorite brand of soba noodles for lunch one of the weekends he was interning at his fatherâs Agency. When he came back to the dorm after his shift, he made a beeline for you and promptly informed you that from then on out, you would be solely responsible for packing his lunches.
âNow why would I do that?â you implored. You crossed your arms, awaiting his response. âAre you gonna pay me?â
Shouto slowly blinked at you in the way a cat would. âWhy would I compensate you for an action you chose to do?â
You had no retort for that.
As you spent more time together, you noticed some changes. Shouto would stare at you for seemingly no reason, and whenever you called him out on it, he feigned innocence. He also sought you out more often, insisting on walking to your next class or to and from the dorm by your side. He even began to occupy you on your shopping runs, dutifully holding your bags for you. And whenever you would thank or compliment him, his whole demeanor would light up as if Aphrodite herself had shown favor towards him.
You werenât any better, though.
If Shouto would do so much as even blink in your general direction, your heart would soar and butterflies would take flight in your stomach. At first, you brushed it off as nerves for being the subject of the Shouto Todorokiâs attention, but you were in denial, not wanting to admit what was actually occurring. Looking back, you realized that deep down, you had known all along what was happening, but at the time, you werenât ready to admit itâto yourself and him.
Regardless of your rebuttals and lack of admission, you were falling for your dual-haired classmate, hard and fast, and there wasnât anything you could do about it.
3 months later . . .
âY/N! Itâs starting! Youâre gonna miss it!â Ochako shouted from the couches, the other girls of Class 3-A surrounding her, all dressed in comfortable loungewear. It was the class's annual Girlâs Movie Night, which was held every couple of months. Tooru told you earlier that week that they would like to have it more often, like once a month, but given their hectic and ever-changing schedules, the girls had to settle for every few months. They took turns who got to pick out the movie. It was Minaâs turn this time. True to her nature, she selected an early 2000s chick flick set in the States.
âHold on, wait for me!â you hollered back as you finished pouring the freshly popped popcorn into a large bowl, a few kernels spilling out as you whirled on your heels to sprint into the living area. You nearly tripped over Jirouâs legs as you practically threw yourself towards the last remaining free spot on the couch.
âAh, sorry!â you exclaimed as you settled yourself into the cushions, checking over Jirou and your popcorn bowl. âDid I miss anything?â
âNo, itâs just starting,â Momo said, taking a sip from her cup of tea as the opening credits began to roll.
âOoh, this is one of my all-time favorite movies!â Mina squealed next to you. âHave you ever seen it before?â she asked.
You hummed, acknowledging her question. You thought hard, trying to recall if youâve ever seen the characters on the screen before. âIâm not sure,â you said. âI donât think so.â
The pinkette gasped aloud and theatrically placed a hand on her chest, sprawling backward. âY/N! You wound me!â
Across the room, Tooru piped up from her spot next to Asui. âHow could you not have?! Itâs only one of the greatest movies ever made!â
âOh, Iâm not so sure about that,â Ochako interjected. âGonna have to disagree.â You expected them to start arguing back and forth over what is truly the greatest movie ever made, like your friends back home would have done, but they donât. Mina stuck her tongue out at Ochako before turning back to the movie.
You all watched the movie in relative silence, save for the light background noise of popcorn moving around in a bowl and slurping from a now-empty straw. It was nice, peaceful; a well-deserved and appreciated respite from the grinding hustle of being Pro-Heroes-in-training.
âJust confess already!â Jirou shouted at the screen as the main character allowed another opportunity for them to confess their feelings for their classmate slip through their fingers. âGosh!â A corner of your mouth curled at her irritation. A few grumbles of agreement sounded from the others as the movie continued playing.
You had to stifle your laughter as the main characters continued to pine after one another, completely oblivious to the otherâs growing feelings. I canât believe there are actually people in the world who are like them, you silently mused. Itâs so obvious they like each other. I canât believe they donât see it.
âUgh, the anticipation and pining is killing me!â Tooru cried out, her slippers moving frantically in the air as she kicked her legs.
Asui raised a brow. âI thought youâve seen this movie before?â
âWell, yeah, I have,â the invisible female said. âBut the suspense still gets to me!â
âIt is quite intense.â Ochako agreed. âI hope they confess soon. It hurts to see them think the other doesnât return their feelings.â
âI donât understand how they cannot.â You admitted, shrugging your shoulders. The girls turned to look at you as you continued, âI mean, theyâre so obvious.â
âYeah, itâs kinda annoying at this point,â Jirou mumbled.
Mina snickered. âY/N, as if youâre one to talk.â
You gave her a questioning look, eyebrows furrowing. âWhat do you mean by that?â
âOh, come on. Youâre so obvious, too, with your crushââ
You cut her off, âI do not have a crush.â
âYou have a crush?â Asui asked. You and Mina responded at the same time.
âNo, I donât.â
âYes, she does.â
âWhat is this about?â Momo inquired, reaching for the remote and pausing the movie.
âNothiââ you began but was swiftly interrupted by the pinkette next to you.
âY/N has a crush on Todoroki!â
The girls gasped and gapped at you, eyes wide.
âI do not!â You said, face burning as you tried to mitigate the situation. âWeâre not like that!â
âOh my.â You thought you heard Momo say under her breath, but you couldnât really hear since Tooru started shrieking with glee.
âYou guys would be the cutest couple!â she exclaimed, jumping up from her spot on the couch and racing over to pull you into a tight embrace.
âI mean, it does make sense given they spend so much time together.â Ochako mused, a finger on her chin as she considered the situation.
Asui jumped on the bandwagon with, âOh they are definitely into each other.â
âOne hundred percent,â Mina agreed.
âGirl, you gotta spill the tea!â Tooru exclaimed as she pulled away. âTell us everything!â The others voiced their agreement.
âI do admit, I am curious as to how this relationship came to be,â Momo vocalized, setting her tea cup down onto its saucer. âThat is if the two of you have gotten that far into your companionship.â
You blinked at the midnight-black-haired woman, shock clouding your brain for a moment as you processed her words. âUm, n-no. We arenât in any type of r-romantic relationship.â You clarified, but immediately you could tell certain people thought your answer was complete horse poop. âWe arenât!â
âRegardless, you guys are pretty close,â Ochako interjected. âIâve seen the way you look at him.â
Jirou nodded in agreement. âAnd all the extra training you do together.â
âThe early morning runs,â Asui added.
âOkay, okay,â you threw your hands up in a placating manner. âI understand what you guys are trying to get at, but youâre wrong.â
Mina came to stand beside you, giving you a knowing look. âGirl, Y/N,â she began. âYou can try with all your might to deny it, but itâs obvious what is really going on between you and Shouto.â She placed a delicate hand on your shoulder. âAnd I know you know it, too.â
You stared at the pinkette, pondering her and the otherâs words. You wanted to continue denying what they were saying, but you were getting tired of denying your feelings to yourself. You slumped your shoulders, the tension leaving your body as you resolved to come clean with the truthâto yourself and your friends, besides a certain dual-haired male. âAlright, fine.â You let out a heavy sigh, mentally preparing yourself for their reaction to your next statement. âI like him a little.â You confessed, looking at the floor, too afraid to meet any of their gazes.
The room was dead silent for two breaths before Mina erupted in choking laughter. ââA littleâ? Yeah RIGHT!â She laughed so hard that tears began to stream down her pink cheeks. After she managed to calm down a bit, she turned to face you fully, laying a hand on your knee. âGirl, youâre lying to yourself.â She told you, tone light yet serious. âWe have all seen the way you look at Shoutoââ the others nod in confirmation. ââand your eyes tell it all.â
You flinched as embarrassment flooded you. âIs it really that obvious?â you asked. You turned to the others to gauge their reactions. âAm I?â They all nodded.
âDefinitely.â
âFor sure.â
âWe could see it from a mile away.â
You gasped. âOh my,â you covered your face with your hands. âDo you think Shouto knows?â
âI doubt so,â Momo said. âShouto is quite intelligent and a formidable force to be reckoned with, but as Iâm sure youâre aware, his experience and understanding of social concepts and cues are fairly limited.â
âIn other words,â Jirou interjected. âHeâs none the wiser.â
You released a sigh of relief. At least he doesnât think Iâm a psycho stalker or something.
âHey, give him some credit, guys,â Ochako remarked. âTodorokiâs more aware than heâs given credit for.â
âMoving on,â Mina said. âHave you thought about confessing your feelings to him?â
You crossed your arms over your chest, shamefully looking away. âNo. . .â
âWhat?!â
âReally?!â Tooru shouted. âBut heâs so hot!â The sleeves of her shirt crossed in front of her. âI would do anything to be his girlfriend.â
You laughed. âWhile you are correct about his handsomeness, I donât even know where I would begin or how I would confess.â
âYour feelings are valid, Y/N,â Asui assured you. âConfessing oneâs feelings for another is a life-changing occurrence.â
âYou gotta do it before graduation in a couple months, though,â Ochako added. âIf not, then you may never get another chance to do so.â
âWhy do you say that?â you asked. âAs Pros, wouldnât we work together often? Why does it need to be before we graduate and turn Pro?â
âPossibly, but with our chosen line of work, there is always a possibility. . .â she trailed off with a grimace.
You understood immediately. âOh.â
âAlthough rare in the line of duty, it does happen.â Momo said. âI wouldnât worry about that though, but I agree with Ochako.â
âPlus,â Mina began, mischief glowing in her eyes. âIf the two of you get together before you make your Pro Hero debut to the world, you wouldnât have to worry about him falling in love with some random civilian he rescues on the street or another Pro.â
You nodded. âYou have a point.â
âEither way, I think it will all work out in the end,â Ochako said, her cheeks widening with her smile. âI think perhaps Shouto returns your feelings, and just simply doesnât know what to do about them or how to address them, therefore you should tell him.â The other girls voiced their agreement.
âYeah, it doesnât have to be some big romantic gesture or anything,â Jirou said.
âJust be honest with him, Y/N,â Asui said.
âYeah, girl,â Mina added, giving you a warm smile when you met her gaze. âYou got this. Besides, he canât reject you. Youâre too hot for that.â
You squared your shoulders as a burst of confidence filled you thanks to the encouragement you received from your friends. âOkay, I will!â you loudly announced. âI will confess my feelings to him!â
The others cheered as you all held up your lemon water in a faux toast. In your happiness, none of you noticed the shadows shift in the stairwell and the soft noise of retreating footsteps on the wood.
You were screwed.
âHow am I gonna tell him!?â you mewled aloud a couple of days later in the cafeteria. You dramatically slumped your forehead on the tabletop, mentally kicking yourself for allowing the girls to convince you that confessing your crush would be an easy endeavor. You felt a reassuring pat on your shoulder. Groaning, you lifted your head from the table to shoot puppy eyes at Ochako. âOchako, help me!â you cried. âHow do I confess?â
The brunette gave you a sheepish smile. âI donât know, Y/N.â She professed, her eyes apologetic. âProclaiming one's love for another isnât really my strong suit.â
âAinât that the truth,â Asui mumbled under her breath before taking a sip of her drink, receiving a glare in response.
âY/N, sweetie,â Mina cooed from your other side. âI think youâre overthinking it a little. It shouldnât be but so hard. Just be honest with him!â
âBut that is hard!â you said, waving your hands in the air. âI canât just walk up to him and say, âhey, Shouto, I think youâre really hot and amazing. Wanna go out with me?ââ
âSure you can,â Momo intoned, trying to reassure you. âMaybe not in those exact words, but when the time comes, you will know what to say.â
âI hope so,â you sighed, slumping your shoulders. âI hope so.â
As time passed, you found that you did not, in fact, know what to say when the time came to confess your feelings to Shouto Todoroki. Whenever you were near him, you became tongue-tied and could barely speak without becoming a stuttering mess. During each interaction, Shouto would give you a long, confused look, his eyebrows drawn downwards as he watched you struggle for words. He wouldnât comment on it, bless him, but he mustâve thought you to be a total weirdo.
Yet, he still accompanied you on the walk back to the dorm every day after classes ended, and he insisted on continuing your training sessions every weekend after he finished his shift at Endeavorâs Agency. The two of you grew closer, to your absolute delight, and yet you still hadnât managed to work up the courage to confess your feelings to him.
Until one day . . .
You were sitting in homeroom during free period, chatting with Midoriya about the latest episode of the rebooted All Might: The Mightiest Man TV series.
âIâm telling you, Midoriya,â you said. âIt doesnât matter how much the animation and special effects have improved, the original will always be better than the reboot.â You crossed your arms and lounged back in your chair, waiting for the forest green-haired male to start sputtering his counterargument. âYou canât change my mind. I will die on this hill.â
âAre you seriously sayinâ?â
A call of your name from a familiar tenor drew your attention. You turned towards the source to meet a pair of heterochromatic eyes. Shouto was making his way to your desk, coming to a stop right in front of you. You had to tilt your head back in order to maintain eye contact. After a moment, he turned his attention to Midoriya next to you. âPardon me, Midoriya, but I need to speak to Y/N in private.â
You and Midoriya gaped at the dual-haired male for a good twenty seconds before you slowly rose from your seat. âO-okay.â You turned to face your green-haired companion. You hoped your eyes were conveying your inner panic as you said, âMidoriya, Iâll be back.â
All he could do was nod as he watched you follow behind Shouto, wondering why you looked so panicked to go with the male. Maybe you were constipated.
As Shouto led you toward the classroom door, Ochako and Mina shot you curious glances. When you met their gazes, they gave you a reassuring smile and a thumbs up, respectfully.
âGood luck, girl!â Mina whisper-shouted.
âYou got this, Y/N,â Ochako said. You tried to match her comforting smile with your own, but it didnât reach your eyes.
You followed behind the dual-haired male, silently wondering what was going on. Once you were outside the classroom, he led you down the hallway to a little corner nook bathed in the golden light of the afternoon.
âShouto, is everything okay?â you asked, anxiously shifting from one foot to the other. âIs something wrong?â At your inquiry, he finally came to a stop in front of a set of windows and turned to face you.
âYes, everything is fine.â He reassured you. âI have something Iâd like to discuss with you.â
You blinked. âOkay,â you said. âShoot.â
Shouto likewise paused at your usage of unfamiliar slang but didnât comment on it. âUm,â he started, but drifted off, not finishing the thought. He opened his mouth only to shut it again after a moment or two without making a sound. You furrowed your brows as you continued to watch him struggle for words.
âUm, Sho?â you prodded. He didnât respond, however, still thinking over his next words. Shouto never hesitates, you thought with a mixture of wonderment and anxiety. Is something bothering him? you thought with growing concern. You felt your heart come to a skittering stop as another horrifying conclusion came to mind; am I the problem?
âI overheard you and the other girlsâ conversation on Movie Night,â he confessed at last, interrupting your spiraling train of thought. He bashfully looked away as if he was ashamed.
âOh, okay?â you responded, absentmindedly going through the events of the night in question. Your heartbeat began to calm down to a normal rate. âWhat conversation?â You couldnât think of anything in particular and were about to ask him to elaborate before the realization hit you like a freight train.
âI like him a little.â
âOkay, I will! I will confess my feelings to him!â
âYeah, girl, you got this. Besides, he canât reject you. Youâre too hot for that.â
Oooohhhhh.
Fuck.
Maybe he didnât hear that particular part of the conversation! You tried to reassure yourself as you waited for Shouto to answer your question. Your heart rate picked back up as panic began to settle in. We were there for several hours. There is so much he couldâveâ
âYou have an admiration going on.â You hate to admit you gawked at him for a couple of seconds before his formal wording translated into modern speech. You have a crush.
FUCK!
âOh my God, I am so sorry!â you rushed out, trying to save face and whatever friendship you had with Shouto. You felt your cheeks burn. âPlease, just forget you ever heard that!â
Shouto snapped his head to you as your words registered in his brain. âWhy would I do that?â he asked after a moment. âWe live in the same building with shared living space, barely anything is not overheard by another.â
Oh God, how much did he overhear?
âBesides,â he continued. âAt our age, it is completely natural for one to harbor feelings for another.â
You blinked at him as his words registered, your cheeks now tingling due to the burn. Gosh, he sounds like a grandpa giving the birds and the bees talk.
âItâitâs j-just,â you stammered. âI-I-Iââ You let out a harsh breath in frustration when your words continued to fail you. Shouto raised a brow before his eyes narrowed. Your heart sank when you saw that.
Oh great, heâs annoyed!
âAre you all right?â he asked before moving so he was right in front of you. You squeaked at the sudden warmth of his body heat as he placed a hand on your forehead. âDo you feel ill? You feel warm, and your face looks to be flushed with some perspiration gathering on your forehead.â His eyes frantically looked you up and down as he examined you for any further signs of sickness. âI should get you to Recovery Girl.â
âN-no!â you exclaimed when he went to sweep you off your feet. âSh-Shouto, IâIâm fine, really. Iâm n-not s-sick.â
âOh?â Shouto blinked in confusion and, adorably, subtly tilted his head to the side. âThen why are you so febrile? And you are stuttering?â
âItâs not because I am sick. Iâm just em-embarrassed.â You whispered the last part, and you couldnât help but look away from Shouto in shame.
âEmbarrassed? Why are you embarrassed, Y/N?â You shut your mouth, refusing to speak. Shouto sensed your hesitation. The light slowly left his heterochromatic eyes and he bashfully looked away from you. âIs . . . is it because you donât want to be seen with me?â he asked. âFor fear that your crush will see us together and not return your affection?â
You let out a gasp in surprise. âWhat? No!â You are quick to reassure himâyour actual crushâof your intentions. âThatâs not it at all!â
Shouto met your gaze again. His eyes lit up with what looked like . . . anticipation? Hope? You werenât sure, but your heart began to race in trepidation. âThen what is it?â
âI like you,â you blurted out. You shut your eyes and covered your face with your hands, trying to hide from your drowning embarrassment. âLike, not even a little bit, but, like, really, really like you.â You whispered from behind your hands.
There was no immediate response from the dual-haired male. You didnât dare to remove your hands from your face to check if he was still standing in front of you.
He probably didnât hear me. You internally slapped yourself upside the head.
Before you could react, Shouto was carefully removing your hands from your face. His touch was gentle, like he was afraid you would crack and break under his fingertips. âWhy are you hiding from me?â he whispered. Your breath caught in your throat as you stared wide-eyed at him.
âIâI.â Despite your efforts, words werenât able to come out of your mouth.
âYou should never feel like you need to hide,â he continued. He let out an airy tsk before he reached his hand up and gently tucked a piece of stray hair behind your ear. You felt your face heat up even more at the action. âEspecially from me.â
What.
âW-what?â you voiced aloud. You blinked a couple times, trying to bring your brain back from the brink of short-circuiting.
Shouto chuckled lowly, moving impossibly closer into your space. âI think you need to get your hearing checked out, love.â
You blinked some more. âWhat?â
âHave I broken you?â he asked, the corner of his perfect lips turning up at the thought. âFirst you forget your words, and now you have lost your hearing. . .â he trailed off as he continued to stare intently into your eyes.
What is he playing at. . .? you wondered as you blankly stared at him.
The two of you stood there and took each other in for quite a while. In reality, it mustnât have been for very longâat most a minute and a halfâbut to you, it felt like hours. You were so close you could see the light reflecting in his heterochromatic eyes and the small streaks of gray in the turquoise-colored one.
âI . . . like you, too,â Shouto suddenly confessed, violently snapping you out of the daze his proximity causes. âI have harbored feelings for you for some time now.â
WHAT!?
âYou . . . do?â you asked, skeptical. You were hesitant to believe his words in fear that this whole thing was some sick prank. Butâ
No. Shouto isnât that type of person, you thought. He barely understands humor as it is, so he must be telling the truth.
âI do,â he confirmed.
âOh, um.â You fumbled again for words, embarrassment flooding your entire system once more. You licked your dry lips, missing the way Shoutoâs eyes locked onto the movement. âCool.â
Shouto blinked at you, one of his perfect eyebrows raising. âCool?â he repeated with a sly smile overcoming his lips.
âMhm.â You dumbly nodded. âCool.â You paused before muttering a small, âDitto.â
He chuckled again, subtly moving the tiniest bit closer to you. He was just about crowding you into the corner at this point. âDitto, huh?â He mumbled under his breath with a widening smirk playing at his lips. âI think I have broken you, dear.â
You grinned. âPerhaps.â Shouto chuckled again before falling silent. The two of you stared at the other, lost in each otherâs gazes.
âCan I kiss you?â He spoke on an exhale, his deep voice somehow even deeper. Before you could internally flip the fuck out and fully comprehend what was happening, you were already nodding. That was all the confirmation Shouto needed before he brought your lips in for a sensual kiss. Fireworks exploded behind your eyelids as you relaxed into him.
You smiled into the kiss. Thank you, chopsticks.
The next day, you and Shouto walked into the classroom holding hands. Everyone collectively stopped what they were doing to openly gape at the two of you as Shouto, always the gentleman, escorted you to your seat. The shocked silence lasted all but three seconds before Mina and Tooru let out ear-piercing shrieks and practically tackled you.
âOh my gosh, oh my gosh, oh my gosh, oh my gosh!â Mina was shouting meanwhile Tooru was holding onto you so tight to the point that she was nearly crushing you into her invisible body.
âAHHHH, I knew this was gonna happen!â she exclaimed before somehow pulling you in closer.
âCanât . . . breathe.â You wheezed out before your boyfriend pulled you away from the two fangirls and protectively held you to his chest.
âI would be grateful if you didnât crush my girlfriend to death, Tooru.â He intoned in his naturally dry tenor. His statement only made them freak out even more.
âAh! Look at the two love birds!â Ochako swooned.
âFuckinâ disgustinâ,â grumbled a deep voice from somewhere in the back of the room.
Before you could turn to shoot Bakugou a death glare, Shouto was already clapping back. âWhat, are you jealous, Bakugou?â
The desks which had surrounded the blond a moment prior were blown to shiverines.
âIâLL END YOU!â
Fin.
â extras: snapshot 1, snapshot 2, fic tag
No plagiarizing, re-uploading, translating, or copying of any kind or on any platform of my writing or inserted into any type of AI generator. Do not recommend my work on TikTok. Do not repost on YouTube.
#shouto todoroki x reader#shoto todoroki x reader#todoroki x reader#todoroki shouto x reader#todoroki shoto x reader#bnha x reader#shouto x reader#shoto x reader#fic: ditto#todoroki x you#shoto x you#shouto x you
3K notes
¡
View notes
Text
COFFEE!
âI think I'm past obsessed at this point, there has to be another word in the dictionary that tops obsessed.â
Synopsis: in which a hopeless romantic falls in love with the man of her dreamsâŚ
Pairings: boyfriend!jeongguk x fem!reader
Genre: established relationship.. non idol au
Warnings: literally the most sappy thing I could have possibly written, was listening to âcoffeeâ by miguel while writing, theyâre such a gentle love, reader is a book worm, Jungkook likes drawing (doodling) plus points when his drawings are about oc, mentions of their first time having sex, usage of book quotes (read nltm, had to use the mia and sebastian line for my own sanity) <3333333
authors note: this is so simple but my book worm hopeless romantic needed this.. wrote this while high so nothing new đ¤
They say falling in love is the most beautiful feeling in the world.
You couldnât explain the immediate sensation, the feeling that spreads throughout your chest as if you were a black-and-white picture that suddenly starts to fill with vibrant colors anytime his eyes lock with yours.
It was astonishing how the universe worksâthe idea that you are destined for someone ever since you are born, and that all the hardships along the way shape you into the person you need to be to meet them.
Your heartbeat thumped loudly in your ears as you watched him laugh from across the room, an oversized hoodie and baggy jeans covering his lean, muscular figureâone youâd memorized to the tiniest detail. You knew every freckle and scar. His head was thrown back, arms crossed, as he paid attention to whatever the guy in front of him was saying.
You scrunched your nose, using your index finger to push your glasses up as you studied your boyfriend from afar. You werenât sure whether to call it pathetic or endearing, the way you noticed every little crease on his forehead and the way he toyed with his bottom lip absentmindedly. You even took note of his long eyelashes, and nearly died of jealousy every time you counted them when he slept beside you.
It was gut-wrenching to imagine anyone else feeling about him the way you did. The thought alone made you want to puke in the nearest trash can.
You were lovesick for this man, and you could already feel the heat rising to your cheeks whenever you looked at him or heard his laugh. Not only did you want to scream and freak out over every little thing he did, but he also had you daydreaming constantly. You found yourself thinking of silly song lyrics that resonated with how you felt about him. Staring at his side profile, you finally understood the meaning behind Suki Waterhouseâs lyrics: âOh, my good looking boy,â echoed in your mind.
Before you could form another lyric or recall a favorite book quote to describe your feelings, his eyes found yours. A small smile tugged at his lips as his gaze scanned your expressions, reading you as if you were an open book. You smiled, tilting your head to the side, trying to hide the makeshift fireworks going off in your tummy.
His gaze softened, and it made your breath waver. You had never understood the meaning of âhis gaze softenedâ in books, but now, you understood every syllable of those words after experiencing it firsthand.
You honestly couldnât think of a single thing you didnât love about him. You loved everything about him, even the parts he claimed were too âbrokenâ or âdamagedâ to be loved.
A few seconds passed before he finally said his goodbyes and began making his way back to you. Your eyes followed every step, catching the grin he wore.
âI donât know, I pretty much think youâre obsessed with me,â your boyfriend teased, his straight teeth on full display as he stopped in front of you, looking down at you on the couch.
âIn your dreams.â You laughed, craning your neck to look up at him.
Instead of getting mad, he let out a low chuckle, leaning down with both arms on either side of the couch, caging you in.
âEvery night, baby.â He whispered softly, pressing a delicate kiss to your lips before moving to your cheek, delivering another soft kiss. You sighed in contentment as his lips ghosted over your skin, the pet name making your head feel dizzy.
He placed a soft kiss on your forehead before standing up straight again, looking down at you. Your eyelids felt heavy as you looked up at him through your lashes. He was already smiling, and you didnât even need to ask âwhat?ââyou already knew. Anyone in their right mind could tell how obsessed you were with him, and it was no surprise to him either.
As you both walked out of the bookstore, carrying a bag full of psychological and romance books (and, of course, the box of transparent sticky notes Jungkook got for you to annotate your books without writing on the actual pages), it was clear this was one of his favorite things to do. In his free time, when he wasnât working or with you, he loved opening one of your books and reading your thoughts scribbled in the margins. Half of his camera roll was pictures of you, but the other half was just pictures of your annotations, scribbles, and drawings.
It was as if he was inside your mind, reading every thought, and he loved it.
He could still recall the first book he opened that sent his heart racing, like a teenage boy with a crush.
âI couldnât see him, but his laugh was unmistakable. I could close my eyes and be in so many places with that laugh. That laugh was the cohesive thread, the little recurring melody that showed up in so many scenes of my life, like Mia and Sebastianâs theme in La La Land. Always there, playing in the background.â
Those words were highlighted in the prettiest shade of pink, with two small hearts drawn beside them. But it was your handwriting at the bottom that got him: âThe feeling Iâve been trying to put into words about how I feel every time I look at him has just been done for me, oh my.â He remembered feeling his heart stop for a second. And when it started again, it was for youâhis heart was for you and only you.
That wasnât all. It had become one of your shared love languages. Jungkook started buying books he thought youâd like. He even asked your little sister what your favorite highlighters were so he could buy them for both of you.
Your heart did somersaults when you opened a book on his bedside table and saw a drawingâa pair of eyes in black ink, long lashes making them look bigger and more innocent. Your breath hitched as you noticed the small freckle just below the eyebrow, realizing it was you.
It didnât help the overwhelming sensation of adoration when you saw his handwriting in the margins.
âYou remembered?â she said softly.
âI remember every second of us.â
The text was underlined, and in small letters, he had written, âGosh, she made me fall so hard that Iâm reading sappy words and thinking âusâ out loud. #sendhelp,â with a frowning emoji next to the hashtag. Before you knew it, you were on page one, reading every single line and note he had left.
Also, the multiple drawings on the pages where there was extra space had your heart thumping hard in your chest. There were so many drawingsâ each one tied to you or him. It was impossible to describe every feeling surging through your chest, every emotion racing in your bloodstream, as your fingertips traced the drawing of you.
This time, it was an image of you on your back, lying on a bed. Only part of your side profile was visible, with your hair spilling across the bed, covering most of your back. At first, you didn't want to assume it was you he'd drawn-being self-centered wasn't your style. But it was impossible to deny it when he'd sketched every freckle, even the small half-moon tattoo on your shoulder blade, matching the real one inked on your skin.
You smiled at the memory but snapped back to the present as your boyfriend instinctively switched you to the other side of the sidewalk when you two turned toward Target. You held tight to his index finger as he squeezed between people, leading you behind him with a soft "excuse me" to anyone in the way.
Automatically, you found yourself smiling as you picked up your pace to match his longer strides. He pulled you in closer, his arm snaking around your waist, his hand resting over your bellyâa little lower than usual, sending butterflies flitting wildly in your stomach. You suppressed a shiver as he gently guided you to the side, allowing an older couple to pass by.
"Us when we're eighty, baby," Jungkook leaned down and whispered into your ear, making you playfully roll your eyes at him. His smile only widened at your reaction.
"Won't be us if you keep watching Young Sheldon without me," you pouted, giving him a playful glare, which only made him smile more.
"Why are you smiling?" you asked, maybe even whining a little as you walked into the store and heard the employee greet you both.
"Because you're so beautiful, and my brain goes in circles when I stare at you," he shrugged casually, giving your waist a small squeeze before untangling his arm to grab a cart.
You tried so hard not to melt, holding onto his bicep as he leaned forward on the cart, making him closer to your height.
"Don't know it you're down, but l've been wanting to learn how to crochet," you said as you glanced around the aisles. Your boyfriend immediately started nodding excitedly.
"Baby, oh my god. I'm so down. We need to make those big-ass blankets," he rambled, looking at your face for a reaction, like a puppy with its ears perked up and tail wagging.
"I think that's knitting, baby," you corrected him, smiling as his eyebrows raised before he let out a small laugh.
"Wait, are those two not the same thing?" His dimple deepened as he bit his lower lip, stopping in front of the craft aisle.
"I actually have no clue," you admitted with a chuckle, raising an eyebrow. "But I know you can crochet a blanket because you once told me about those pattern blocks you saw on your explore page.â
Jungkook's gaze softened as he made eye contact with you, his pupils dilated with so much adoration that it made your heart swell.
"And I remember because I searched them on TikTok to see what you were talking about. I saw people connecting them into blankets. Also, I remember you pretending to sleep so you didn't have to scratch my back anymore-before my one minute was up. You swear you're slick, but I know when you're really asleep," he said with a grin, teasingly biting your cheek as you tried not to smile.
"How do you know I'm not sleeping?" you teased, and he chuckled, ghosting his lips over yours.
"Because every time you fall asleep, you make this little sound, and then slowly, you start snoring," he laughed, watching your cheeks turn a shade of red before burying his laughing face in the crook of your neck.
To be loved is to be seen.
That phrase had never felt more accurate. No one else had ever seen you the way Jungkook did. He knew you so well, down to the tiniest details that sometimes even surprised you.
Your eyes practically turned into hearts as Jungkook kissed your neck innocently before turning his attention to the yarns.
This was the kind of love you had always dreamed of
-better than the movies or books. Nothing could top the overwhelming feelings of gratitude, love, and appreciation that coursed through your body whenever you looked at him. Your brain practically played the instrumental of "Video Games" by Lana Del Rey whenever you spent time with him.
It was as if even a natural disaster couldn't faze you
-so long as you could experience it with him.
The connection between you two was beyond what you ever imagined existed in real life. It felt like something out of a fairy tale. From the moment you locked eyes with him across the room, you both knew there was no turning back.
After checking out and getting to Jungkook's car, he opened the door for you, reaching over to buckle your seatbelt before putting the bags in the back.
Once he climbed into the driver's seat, his hand instinctively found its place on your thigh after starting the car. His thumb rubbed your bare skin, sending sparks flying through your body. It was such a natural gesture for him, but the butterflies never ceased. You bit your lip, trying not to whine when his hand moved closer to your inner thigh.
As he softly sang along to "Creep" by Radiohead, it was just another thing you'd become morally obsessed with-his voice. You had always known he could sing, but everything changed the night you were first intimate.
It was as if your entire perspective on love and sex shifted. Simply calling it "sex" seemed absurd now, because it was so much more. Everything felt heightened, more intense, making your heart pound wildly in your chest.
"F-fuck, baby..." he whimpered into your ear, his hips moving slowly into yours, leaving your mouth hanging open.
His little groans and moans made you dizzy, like notes of a lullaby. The feeling of skin against skin was the most addicting sensation, made even more special by the way he always checked in on you.
"Shhh, I'm sorry. Am I being too rough, baby?" His voice was strained as his hips halted, his breath heavy as he moved your hair to kiss your neck.
He resumed slowly, making your legs shake and grip the sheets, and you couldn't help but moan, asking for more. His chuckle against your skin was the same one youâd hear when he rested his head on your stomach, expecting you to scratch his back or read to him.
"You're sweaty," you pouted at him, both of you basking in the afterglow.
"I know. Do you still want me?" He smiled, mimicking your expression before pulling the covers over both your naked bodies and pulling you in as close as possible.
"Yes, I'll forever want you," you replied, hiding your face in the crook of his neck, savoring the warmth he radiated.
As sleepiness began to overtake you, you felt his fingertips tracing letters and shapes on your hip.
Just before drifting off, he began singing again. It was like entering another universe where only you and he existed
"I want you to notice," he sang softly, "when I'm not around."
"So fucking special... I wish I was special." He pressed a kiss to your temple, the sound of his voice and your matching heartbeats lulling you both to sleep.
You snapped back to reality when the car stopped at a red light.
"Is it bad that I always hope to get red lights so I can kiss you?" he asked, flashing a grin that had you laughing.
Leaning forward, you pressed your lips to his as his eyes fluttered shut, his finger lifting your chin gently.
"Not bad, but a little weird. You want to spend so much time with me," you teased, pulling back to your seat. "Some might even think you're pretty obsessed."
"I'm past obsessed at this point. There's got to be another word that tops it," he admitted, stealing another kiss just before the light turned green.
As you gazed at him, you couldn't help but wish there was another word, stronger than "love," to describe how you felt about him.
#jungkook drabble#jungkook fanfic#jungkook fluff#jungkook angst#jungkook imagine#jungkook smut#jeongguk x reader#jeon jk#jeongguk fic#jeongguk smut#jeongguk#jeon jungkook#jeon jungguk#jeon jeongguk#bts jungkook#bts fanfic#jungkook#jungkook x reader#jjk#fluff#jjk fluff#jjk fanfic#jjk x reader#jjk smut#jk fanfic#jk smut#bts jk#bangtan fluff#bts fanfction#bts fluff
2K notes
¡
View notes
Text
( reaction ) telling them you aren't wearing panties ! ŕ¨ŕ§ ä¸ ě¤í¸ë ě´í¤ěŚ Ő
⸠⸰ â skz reaction to you not wearing panties ăž
boyfriend!ě¤í¸ë ě´í¤ěŚăť fem!reader â â â â â â â â g ăť smut â â â â â â cw ăť no penetration , pet play? , degradation wc ăť â1.2k â â â â| â âclick to library
request. hii I hope you remember mee~ it's okay if you don't tho I'm just here to ask I'd you could do a similar reaction to this one with riize but with skz instead. The one saying their reaction to not wearing any panties on the date. Thank you so much I love you and always remember to stay safe <333
ă ŕ¨ŕ§ authors note ă here you go ! enjoy it love <3
ďš đ : bangchan ďš .á
thought his eyes were deceiving him; surely you would wear underwear with a skirt that short. he didn't say anything until you slid into the booth and he could see your ass poking from under the skirt , he slid right in making sure no one saw you. âwhat the fuck?â he sat down next to your. âwhere are your fucking panties babygirl?â he gritted through his teeth , just as the waiter was about to make his way over to your table. âi didn't wear any.â he could see that , what he couldn't figure is why the fuck were you trying to turn him on in this restaurant right now. âyou're we already paid for the reservations.â he said , kissing your temples because the server was close. âwhat can I do for you guys?â he waited for the boy to leave before turning back to you.
âdaddy is gonna ruin you when we get home , trust baby.â
ďš đ : lee know ďš .á
he knew you were up to something , the fact that you were a little too excited to get out of the car and into the restaurant. âyou must be really hungry huh?â you didn't say anything though , but that glint in your eye and that smirk he swore he saw made him curious. âwhat are you up to?â he said. ânothingâ you smiled âinnocentlyâ and he damn sure wasn't buying it. âi have to go to the bathroom.â you got up leaving the boy alone , not even 2 moments later his phone buzzed , he picked it up , your plans becoming evident. âi fucking knew it.â he cursed. you sat back down to a seething lee know. âfucking slut you aren't wearing any underwear.â you giggled , knowing he wouldn't do anything in public , but you knew you were also done for after the date , he leaned over so you could only hear him.
âlet's see if you find it later when your pussy is battered from cock and you still haven't came.â
ďš đ : changbin ďš .á
you knew changbin couldn't resist praising you. âbinnie , binnie look at my new shoes.â he genuinely wanted to see the shoes , looking under the table , only to be met with your legs widened. his head shot up looking at you with wide eyes. âb-baby.â he was flustered , it made you giggle. âwhere are your panties?â he whispered , you shrugged. âdidn't feel like wearing any.â he was bewildered honestly , turned on but bewildered , he didn't even give a fuck about those shoes anymore not the food. âgive me a minute , gonna pay the bill.â he stood up. âwait what about the food?â
âI'll ask them to wrap it up to go , no way im gonna sit through dinner knowing how wet you are sitting across from me.â
ďš đ : hyunjin ďš .á
you knew your man loved to take pictures of you during your dates , so it was perfect. you waited for him to get up from the seat to âuse the bathroomâ you knew he was just going to pay the bill so you wouldn't try and pay , but you let it be â quickly slipping into his seat , taking your panties off , looking around before slipping them into his jacket pocket. you smiled as you slipped back into your seat as he came back down. âhow was the bathroom?â he smiled , knowing he was caught. âlet me take a few photos baby.â he reached into his jacket , furrowing his eyebrows as he pulled out the lacy material. he smiled, shoving the panties back into his jacket. âyou little minx.â you giggled. âmy favorite pair too.â
âwe should skip dessert so we can get home and i can take some photos of you laid out in bed all pretty for me.â
ďš đ : han jisung ďš .á
you purposely dropped the fork on to the floor, and the poor boy just trying to be a good boyfriend crawled under the table to get it for you â only to be met with your legs wide open , your bare pussy on display. a small âfuckâ leaving his mouth making you smirk as he came back from under the table , his face red as he sat the fork down. âyo-you're not wearing any panties.â he whispered , his hands coming up to his cock , fixing himself. âwh-why.â he whined , upset because he was unable to do anything because you had already denied his request to leave. âi want dessert , don't be selfish sungie.â
âwhy would you show me if you were just gonna torture me like this baby , im gonna cum just sitting here thinking about it.â
ďš đ : felixďš .á
âi think i left my lipstick in the car.â know felix kept a spare always in his pocket for you. âdon't worry baby i go it.â he reached into his jacket pocket next to him. âwhat is this?â he innocently took out the lace , eyes widened as he shoved it back inside. âbaby when did you do that?â he said , he was sure you were wearing them when you left the house , he was in the room when you were getting dressed. âi took the off when you went to pay the bill.â he gulped adams apple bobbing. âbaby fuck it's hard enough to see you dressed so pretty for me , but knowing you're pussy is probably dripping on to the seat is painful love.â
âlet's skip dessert tonight , i got something else sweet i want to eat and i don't think i can wait until we get home.â
ďš đ : seungmin ďš .á
you knew it would piss him off â that's why it was perfect to do it to him. your heart was racing as you hit send on your phone , your legs shaking as you watched him pick up his phone to read the message , his eye lifting up to yours , filled with a lust filled angry glare. he didn't say anything , lifting up the table cloth looking under , quietly coming up. âcan't take a mutt like you anywhere can i?â he growled , you were dripping for him. âi want to go home.â you whined , needing him. âno , you're gonna sit there until the date is over.â he said , you rolled your eyes. âdon't think because we're in public i won't embarrass you , i'll make you kneel right here.â you immediately stopped unsure if he was serious, but you weren't about to test that theory.
âact like a bad dog and iâll treat you like one , let's see how funny you think this stunt is later.â
ďš đ : jeongin ďš .á
was he already looking at your ass? yes , yes he was â but that was besides the point , he could easily tell you were missing your panties through the dress. âsit the fuck down.â he hissed , you pretended to be confused , tilting your head in fake innocence. âare you fucking joking?â he growled , leaning over the table. âyou aren't wearing any fucking panties.â he wanted to wipe that smile clean off your face. âdidn't want panty lines.â you shrugged him off. âwaitress is coming.â he could care less about the waitress. âthen you wear a thong or something , i don't know.â but you wave him off. âthis look is much better.â the waitress coming closer , he leaned over whispering one final threat.
âlaugh now baby , shit won't be funny when your ass is sore and pussy is begging for my cock and you don't get it.â
ŠLUVYENI
#stray kids x reader#stray kids smut#skz hard hours#skz smut#stray kids hard hours#stray kids hard thoughts#skz hard thoughts#stray kids reactions#skz reactions#bang chan x reader#bang chan smut#lee know x reader#lee know smut#seo changbin x reader#seo changbin smut#hyunjin x reader#hwang hyunjin smut#han jisung x reader#han jisung smut#lee felix x reader#lee felix smut#kim seungmin smut#kim seungmin x reader#yang jeongin x reader#yang jeongin smut
2K notes
¡
View notes
Text
âË・âââ・ËâCool OffâË・âââ・Ëâ
âĄď¸ pairing: Zayne x fem!reader
・°â ď¸Â°ď˝ĄMINORS DNI (18+ ONLY)・°â ď¸Â°ď˝Ą
âĄď¸ cw: unprotected sex (oops), office sex, semi-public sex, oral sex (f!receiving), fingering, I think that's it?
âĄď¸ word count: 3.4k
âĄď¸ synopsis: what to do when you "accidentally" flash your doctor?
âĄď¸ a/n: I haven't written smut in like three years. So if you think my writing is cringe, just keep scrolling idk.
âĄď¸ special thanks to my beta reader âĄď¸ @its-de âĄď¸ for reading and helping me with this
banner by @cafekitsune
You finally have a day off and you want to use this free time to run errands. However, it's also a hot summer day and you need to dress accordingly. After cleaning your apartment and stocking up your fridge, you have -
meet up with your friend
shop for some new summer clothes and bed sheets
doctorâs appointment
You'd just skip the last one because you feel fine, even during the hot weather.
But you know damn well Dr Zayne will not be pleased with you if you do that. And he's not only your doctor now (and a childhood friend), but an actual friend who you spend most of your free time with. Circumstances of him being your assigned physician, some other stuff that happened in the last few months, brought you so much closer that you couldn't help but develop a huge crush on him. And how could you not when he's so kind, warm, attentive, always makes time for you, funny in his own way... you could spend the whole day thinking of all the stuff that makes you want to be more than friends.
Actually, you might be more than just friends. Lately, youâve been going on a lot of âdatesâ; visiting festivals, trying new restaurants but also frequenting your favorite ones, dragging him to the arcade⌠heâs started insisting on being the one to drop you off at home after a night out. Just a couple of weeks ago when you were sick, he came to your place and took care of you. Both of you ended up falling asleep on your bed watching your comfort movie â actually, he wanted to read his book but ended up invested in the plot and eventually fell asleep before you, tired from his shift and nursing you back to health. You had enough strength to get up to pull out a freshly washed blanket from the closet and cover him. You lied back down, finding comfort in watching Zayneâs peaceful sleeping face. Thatâs how you fell asleep.
The next morning you found yourself waking up on Zayneâs chest, your form enveloping his. He was gently stroking your back, waiting for you to open your eyes. You donât know whether you were the one that latched onto him during the night, or if heâs the one that pulled you in; nonetheless, it felt surreal to wake up like this. You looked up into his beautiful hazel green eyes, and you just shared a moment of pure intimacy. Then you got self-conscious of him having a close up of your morning face, which made you immediately jump from the bed and sprint to the bathroom. So, he did manage to nurse you back to health in one day.
You really wish he made the first move already. With all the stolen glances, lingering touches, cuddling, you genuinely think he feels the same way. But you are also his patient, so maybe he feels uncomfortable starting anything, like heâs crossing a boundary and abusing his position as your physician? Maybe heâs waiting for you to make the first move?
Or maybe youâre just delusional and ovulating.
Okay, back to the present. Youâre not going to pass up the opportunity to see your crush (this is more than just a crush, honestly) and you add one more task to the list
get some dessert for Zayne
And you want to look cute for him, so you opt for your new backless summer dress.
âď¸ďż˝ďż˝ďż˝âşââď¸ââşââď¸ââşâ
âThank fuck, I look okay.â You murmur as you check yourself out in the mirror in the bathroom of Zayne's office.
It's just before 8pm, your scheduled checkup. Both of you were too busy to hang out for more than a week, and you canât wait to see him. You took this opportunity to leave the heavy shopping bags on the sofa, the bag with dessert on his desk, and quickly freshen up in the bathroom. It was so hot today, still is, but thanks to the dress you didn't sweat that much.
You exit the bathroom the same time he enters the office. You catch how his usually stern gaze behind his glasses softens at the sight of you.
âHey!â You donât waste any time and shorten the distance between you, wrapping your arms around his neck giving him a peck on the cheek.
Zayneâs hands stiffly hover over your waist, stunned by the enthusiastic greeting. You always have a big smile on your face when you see him, but youâre only this forward when you have some alcohol in your system. He doesnât smell it on your breath now though.
âDid you miss me that much, or are you trying to coax me to skip the check up?â
You pull away with a pout and a blush on your cheeks. Feeling a little embarrassed, you go and sit on a chair across his desk, steering the conversation towards the dessert you brought him.
With an entertained smirk, he sat on his chair and indulged in just chatting with you, and making plans for the evening. He feels at ease now that youâre here.
Zayne cuts the conversation short to take care of some paperwork, so you entertain yourself with your phone, checking what cafes are open. You sit there in silence, not wanting to disturb him. The room is air-conditioned and you would think you'd start to cool down, but it's impossible to do so when your crush is right across you. You try to focus on your phone but your eyes keep darting between the screen and Zayneâs handsome focused featuresâŚhis hand holding the pen⌠his long fingers...
âYou need to ask me something?â Zayne peers over his glasses.
Busted!
For like a hundredth time.
You fidget in your seat. âUm, no. I donât wanna disturb you.â
He closes a file and puts papers aside. âIâm done. Go ahead.â
You make up how you wanted to ask him if he wanted to visit the cafĂŠ on your screen, only to for him to point out itâs closed when you show it to him. Not smooth at all.
You nervously scratch your back, and that when it hits you. You didn't wear a bra today!
In your defense, of course you're not going to wear a bra with the backless dress and when it's so hot outside, and it would be okay if this was just a hangout, but the main reason why you're here is because of the check up! Well, now you're getting even more flustered and you can feel nervous sweat forming everywhere. Great.
Zayne's voice fades into focus.
"Is everything okay?"
âYeah, letâs just go find a cafe thatâs nearby!â You prop yourself to sit up and make a run for it, but the seriousness in Zayneâs tone stops you.
âYouâre not going anywhere.â
You wave your hand âI feel great, you don't need to -"
"That's good to hear." He humors you, setting the stethoscope around his neck, eyes not leaving yours.
You engage in a short staring contest, but you never win those with him. You hold back the bratty whine as you get up and walk towards the chair. Should you address this? What would be more awkward â saying that you donât have a bra on or just slipping off the top of the dress, flashing him? But Zayne is a professional; he probably saw plenty of breasts from other patients and didnât bat an eye. And maybe he even noticed that youâre braless.
You sit on the chair next to him and Zayne gives you an amused look. âGood girl.â
It was like a reflex - the moment you heard those words, your hands slipped off the top of your dress. Zayne pauses, his eyes locked at the sight before him. Oh shit, did you manage to make the situation awkward after all? Just when you wanted to open your mouth to say anything, he blinks and proceeds to do what heâs supposed to do. You suck in a breath when the icy cold stethoscope touches your chest spreading goosebumps across your skin, making your nipples hard. Zayne's eyes are focused somewhere to the side, but you can see light redness peppered on his cheeks. The two of you sit there in silence while he checks your heartbeat. You try to compose yourself, take slow breaths, but your heart is giving you away.
When heâs done, he takes off the instrument and places it on the table. He clears his throat âNothing irregular, your heartbeat is a little faster, but the heat is probably to blame.â
Right, the heat.
You hope that the redness, still on his face, and his ears, is not from the sun.
Again, you have two choices â do you pull the top up and act like nothing happened, continue the same âwill they, wonât theyâ routine â or do you want to do something about this, take the first step and find out once and for all if this infatuation is one sided?
You take his hand, making him look at you, âWell, can you help me cool down, Doctor?â
Zayne eyes widen slightly, switching between your hand and your gaze, only guessing where youâre going with this.
You gently place his cold hand just above your left breast âIs this okay?â you whisper.
Zayneâs irises are almost black from how dilated his pupils are. As he gazes into your doe eyes, the hand resting on your chest travels up across your skin and lands on the side of your neck. He takes off his glasses, leans towards you, his lips a breath away from yours, âYouâre walking on thin ice, darling.â
He grabs you by the back of your neck and pulls you into a searing kiss. Zayne is kissing you like a man starved, like he's been waiting for this for so long, afraid that this moment will slip away all too quickly. His other hand wraps tightly around your waist, pulling you closer, pressing your chests together, feeling each otherâs heartbeats. You moan into the kiss, surprised by the intensity of it and the desperation of his embrace. His lips are so soft and tender, just like you imagined too many times. The hand on your waist travels up to grab your breast, the sensation of his big cold hand on your heated skin making you gasp against his lips. He seizes the moment to lick your bottom lip, then slipping his tongue, yours quickly meeting it.
Suddenly, both of his hands land on your shoulders pulling away.
He utters âfuckâ (this might be the first time hearing him say the f word, and youâre embarrassed how excited it made you.) He holds your chin with thumb and index finger, âDo you wish to continue?â
You utter âyesâ and grab him by the black necktie locking your lips again. His hands find the top of your thighs, then sneaking their way down to bunch up your dress over your knees.
âHold onto me.â He murmurs between kisses, and you oblige, catching onto his shoulders. Zayne grabs you by the back of your soft thighs, lifting you from the chair and placing you on his desk, so effortlessly and swiftly, like you weigh nothing.
Your fingers comb through his soft, thick hair, relishing in the fact of being able to touch it like this. His hands cup your face, distancing his lips from yours. You expectantly look up to see his tender, yearning gaze. He looks like heâs about to say something, but then he kisses you again, this time softly, slowly deepening it, stealing your breath away. His soft lips move to kiss and nip at the side of your neck, his hands giving attention to your breasts again. He caresses both of them, and it doesnât take long for one of his hands to be replaced by his lips. His hot tongue teases around the nipple. But when he starts sucking on it, while simultaneously playing with the other one with his fingers, a loud moan escapes your lips.
Zayneâs smirks against the sensitive nipple, âYou need to stay quiet, darling.â
You were so dazed with lust that you completely forgot that there could be people outside his office. You bite your bottom lip and nod.
He nuzzles into the crook of your neck, one hand bunching up your dress more and resting on your hip, while the one on your nipple sneaks its way down, teasing the band of your underwear. You feel his fingers slide down, rubbing you over your soaked panties, making you move your hips, craving more friction.
âFuck.â He breathes against your ear, âYouâre already so wet for me.â
The fingers travel towards the band of your underwear and tug on it, and you lift your hips to let him slide it down your legs. Then he stashes your panties into the pocket of his pants.
He catches you by surprise when he kneels down in front of your cunt, your legs closing on reflex, but Zayne grabs your thighs before they could squish his head.
He gently strokes them, "Let me see you."
Youâre hesitant about it, but you remember that you took extra steps when you freshened up in the bathroom. Slowly, you spread your legs, lifting your feet to rest on the edge of the desk. Cool air against your soaked pussy sends shivers all over your body.
His hands rest on the plush of your inner thighs. His eyes are mesmerized by the sight in front of him. You almost feel self-conscious by the close-up heâs getting.
"Zayne â" You squirm under his stare.
Snapping out of his daze, he meets your eyes "Iâm sorry. Youâre just so much more beautiful than I imagined."
Than he imagined? The statement makes your cheeks even deeper red, your pussy more wet and impatient.
Feeling impatient himself, Zayne starts by placing gentle kisses on your inner thigh. The hand on the opposite side follows the same trail, his slender fingers stopping to tease your wet folds, the contact making you gasp and involuntarily clench your thighs.
"Relax, angel." His breath fans over your pussy, not making it easier but you try anyway.
The digits slowly glide over the wetness, bathing in your juices. Your hips flinch as his fingertips lightly circle your clit, thighs trembling as digits are replaced with his hot tongue. It glides flat over your folds, stopping to circle the sensitive nub. The tip of the tongue flicks over it, circles it, again and again, your cunt dripping with both his saliva and your arousal. His middle finger slides in, ring finger shortly after, curling to reach and rub that delicate spot inside you; he sucks and licks your clit while finger fucking you, and your thighs are now shaking, toes curling, as intense waves of pleasure course through your body.
Your hold onto Zayneâs hair, and roll your hips in the same rhythm of his fingers, chasing your release, "Zayne⌠Iâm gonnaâ"
He locks eyes with you and continues what heâs doing; you come shortly after, covering your mouth with your hand.
Zayne helps you come down from your high, places soft pecks on your thighs again and stands up, pulling you into another breathtaking kiss.
Your hands frantically find his belt and start unbuckling it.
Zayne breaks the kiss, âI donât have any condoms here.â
You shrug âJust pull out.â
âThatâs not very respo â â
âWell, youâre a doctor; you can prescribe me some plan b pills.â you innocently flutter your lashes.
He chuckles and starts taking off his tie and shirt, and you take a moment to gaze at the strong, chiseled muscles of his torso, his arms and those shoulders. Zayne, amused at your dazed and shameless ogling of his  shirtless physique, reaches down to unzip his pants, taking them and underwear off in the same go, his hard cock smacking against his shaved pelvis. You suck in a breath when your eyes land on it. He's long and thick, curved just right, tip glistening with so much precum. You hand wraps around it, stroking and feeling the pulsing veins under your touch.
Zayneâs breath hitches âAre you sure â fuckâŚâ He groans when you press his length against your slippery folds, teasingly moving your hips.
âYes⌠I need you.â
With those magic words, Zayne swipes all the papers off the table, grabs you behind the knees and lifts your legs further, and you lean back to rest on your elbows.
His dick strokes your slit, tip teasing the entrance, but you're so impatient.
'Zaynee-' you whine.
He closes his eyes, jaw clenched. Even though your âfriendâ is the embodiment of calm and collected, right now heâs barely holding onto his composure. His flushed cheeks and red ears, ragged breathing are exposing how badly he wanted, needed, this and how heâs trying so hard not to cum right here before even slipping the tip in.
But he doesnât want to wait any longer; with your needy whines spurring him on, he places his red cockhead against you, your drenched pussy making it easy to slide it in.
His leg muscles tremble, trying to restrain himself from bottoming out the same second; with shallow thrusts, he slowly slides it all the way in. He towers over you, one hand resting on the desk, the other cupping your face. His hips roll at languid pace, his hooded eyes never leaving your face, watching you adjust to his size.
As you get comfortable, you grab him by back of his neck âFaster, pleaseâŚâ You breathe. He leans down, locking your lips into a sloppy kiss.
He slowly picks up the pace, his hand starts playing with your nipples again, and now it's really hard keep your voice down. You keep breaking the kiss in desperate need to catch your breath, but moans escape your lips as well. Zayne grabs your upper arms and pushes you down further. His muscular torso pressed against yours, his pelvis rubbing against your clit.
âZayne - I'm closeâ
âTry to stay quiet, angel.â he grunts, his eyes locked on your face, beads of sweat forming on his forehead. He angles himself so his hand can reach down and rub your clit, and itâs too much for you - you cum a few seconds later and Zayne has to slip two fingers of his other hand into your mouth to keep you from screaming. You still whimper and moan over his fingers. He slows down to help you ride out the orgasm, and pulls out the fingers to kiss your lips.
'Is it okay to pick up the pace now? I'm so close.'
You only nod, unable to form any words. He plants a kiss on your temple and moves onto kissing and sucking your neck. Then he goes back to just looking at your face while he picks up the pace, your legs locking around his waist, pulling him even deeper. You bite your bottom lip, but at this point, you feel it's impossible to stay quiet. And now it's not only you who is making noise, but the desk, although sturdy, is starting to move and creak.
You gasp as he suddenly lifts you off the table with his big arms wrapped around your torso. You wrap your arms around his neck, holding onto him. His hands grabs your ass and starts moving your hips in unison with his, his throbbing dick thrusting so much deeper, all the juices leaking down his balls and onto the floor.
You latch your teeth onto his neck to keep yourself from screaming while heâs panting feverishly into your ear.
âIâm gonna come soon ââ
You meet his gaze âDonât pull out.â
His hips stutter at your words, eyes widening for a second. He curses under his breath and picks up the pace. You pull him into a sloppy kiss, lewd gasps and pants interrupting.
His hands squeezing your ass in a bruising grip, he grunts against your lips, and you feel intense throbbing of his cock; warm liquid filling you up, sending shivers all over your sweaty body.
His slow pumps let his thick cum drip out, making a mess of his pants and the floor. You can feel how fast his heart is beating against your chest. The two of you catch your breath as your lips share a languid kiss, enjoying the warmth of each otherâs bodies.
After pulling out, Zayne sits you on his chair. He kneels in front of you, caresses your cheek, his eyes full of adoration. âI never thought our first time would look like this.â
You lean into his palm, looking at him with sweet innocent eyes, âOh? What did you imagine then?â
âI can show you later.â
#my writing needs to be hornier#guess i'm back to writing#love and deepspace#zayne love and deepspace#zayne x reader#zayne smut#love and deepspace smut#zayne x you#lads zayne
3K notes
¡
View notes
Text
playing it cool / aaron hotchner
[credits to the owners of these photos!!]
word count: 1.9k
pairing: aaron hotchner x f!reader
genre: fluff!!!!!!
cw: sickeningly sweet and soft aaron x reader, so much of aaronâs thoughts because we know that man thinks soo much more than he speaks!!
a/n: hiiii this is my third post so far and tbh i was so nervous to post the first two as that was my first time ever posting any of my writings anywhere!! but iâve been getting so much more love on those than expected and i just really wanted to say thank you so much for all the likes and reblogs <33 i was honestly only expecting less than 10 notes as a newbie and reaching up to 200 is so so so wonderful. and especially for the love of hotch iâ ugh!!!!! i already love u allÂ
The team had worked a straight 5 weeks worth of cases prior, which had warranted Strauss to grant them all a mandatory 3-day rest. This simply meant that for 3 whole days there are no cases, no deadlines, and no new case files. They could come to the office at whatever time theyâd like as long as they finished some reports at the end of the day.Â
Aaron being Hotch the boss man still aimed to arrive at the office at a reasonable timeâ 7:30am. To be fair, this is an hour and a half later than when he usually arrives at the office. And in his mind, the earlier he arrives, the more he can get done, and the more he gets done, the earlier he can come home.Â
This is the only reason why he is up at 6:00am on a supposed rest day. He did expect that heâd struggle a bit more to drag himself out of bed, knowing youâd be keeping him hostage with limbs that wrap around him in ways he canât begin to understand, but to his surprise, you werenât there.Â
Dragging his feet across the carpeted floor, his pajama pants hanging low on his hips and white shirt fitting him oh-so-snugly, he tries to find you. Heâs rubbing the sleep of his eyes as he peeks his head into your shared bathroom. No sign of you.Â
Heâs covering his mouth as he yawns when he quietly opens the door to Jackâs bedroomâstill no sign of you. Remembering his son has been nursing a stomach bug since yesterday, he opened the door further to check on him. No fever. No chills. No sign of discomfort.Â
When heâs sure Jackâs okay, he turns around to go back to find where you went. He even checked the backyard as he passed by a window to see if youâre at your favorite swing reading, that perhaps you just woke up early and wanted to feel the morning sun because you claimed it lightens you.Â
He smiles a little to himself as he treads downstairs, finally hearing your soft murmurs as you spoke with someone presumably over the phone. As he neared the kitchen he realized that the person on the line was your colleague and friend Tilly, and that she was on speaker phone making it easy to listen in.Â
He slows down his steps as he nears the landing and pauses when he gets behind a wall near the kitchen. He doesnât know what came over him. He doesnât usually sneak around to eavesdrop, nor did he ever feel the need to especially when it came to you. You tell him everything, prompted and unprompted.Â
But perhaps it was the haze of the morning or the curiosity of what could possibly get you out of bed this early when youâre usually the one snoozing away as heâs getting ready for workâ he stayed quiet behind that wall and made it his mission to understand the conversation.Â
He clears his mind and strains his ear, going as far as making his breaths slow and far apart.Â
He hears Tilly giggling, âDonât get me wrong, Adam from Finance is really cute but.. isnât he just a little too serious? Heâs always got that frown going on.âÂ
You sigh a little loudly, obvious that itâs a sigh to humor and not of exasperation, âTilly, you know I love you, but every day you complain about being single. And every other day thereâs a decent guy who you always always find that one flaw in that just crosses them off for you forever.â Tilly lets out a sound thatâs a mixture of a laugh and a gasp.Â
âThat is so not trââ âOh, Hughâs just too clean. And Frederickâs too hard, itâs like- scary. Yes, veiny hands are hot but thereâs veiny and too veiny, and Jason was just a double too veiny.âÂ
Aaron momentarily pauses his listening and looks down at his hands, suddenly conscious where he fit in that category. Factoring in his age, his work, and the action he gets from the fieldâ these all show. He tried thinking of a time you couldâve shown any dislike or disgust towards his hands but all he could think of was that one night when he cupped your face and you leaned towards it more, turning slightly to take his thumb into your mouâ
Heâs shaken out of his thoughts when he hears Tilly asking about you leaving, âWhat time are you getting to the office by the way? I just donât want to get there without you. Adam might ask about that second date and I just need you as my bluff, my beautiful girl.â He makes a mental note to message Jessica before you both get ready for work.Â
âRiiiight. Remind me how many guys have I scared off for you now? And how many times have I helped you scare them off? Besides, I canât go today and Iâve already told Bobby Iâm on leave.âÂ
In a slight surprise and panic Tilly whines, âWhat?! Why? Youâre such a traitor. You know damn well I get so bored without you.â Aaron didnât even know you were planning on staying home. You hadnât mentioned anything about it last night which made him even more curious what made you decide.Â
He hears your soft laugh, âDonât be so dramatic. Youâll manage a day without me. I mean you have toâ my son caught a stomach bug yesterday so I just want to make sure heâll recover completely.âÂ
Aaron can hear Tilly responding, something about soup and warm baths, but his heart has just stopped so heâs not really processing any new words at the moment.Â
My son. My son. My son. My son caught a stomach bug.Â
He feels lightheaded. His heart kickstarts again, his pulse is ringing in his ear. He can feel his chest pounding to his heartâs beat. The words that rolled off your lips so effortlessly, so mindlessly, echoes in his head.Â
Jack may be young but he is smart. So so smart beyond his years. And he has grown to understand what had happened to his mom Haley, but not once has heâ and even you allowed Jack to forget who Haley is and how much she loves him.Â
Images of you joining in their traditions of honoring and remembering Haley plays in his head in flashes. You helping Jack arrange a bouquet for Haleyâs death anniversary. You helping Jack make a card for her birthday. You mixing the paint to get the right shades as Jack paints a portrait of Haley for his Mothersâ Day homework.Â
Aaron had told you everything there was to know about Haley and youâve listened. He knows you adore her. You adore her for the same reasons he adored her. You understood the space Haley had in his life and in Jackâs life, and not once were you ever jealous, immature, or selfish about it. Even though he wouldâve completely understood if you were.Â
You were nothing but supportive, and understanding, and loving. Even when he didnât deserve it. Even when you deserved better. Admittedly, there was a point in time when he struggled with coming to terms with falling in loveâ with you nonetheless. Youâre young, ambitious, brilliant, talented, insanely beautiful, and unfairly kind.Â
When the two of you had met, this was his profile: divorced with a kid, recovering from trauma that stemmed from being stabbed multiple times in his own home, emotionally unavailable, annoyingly serious and fatally dullâ which really makes him wonder what made you fall in love with him in the first place, and even more so what made you stay even when he was bafflingly dense about how you felt about him. Â
He didnât know how long he was standing there, like a deer caught in headlights. Replaying your words and his memories over and over again, slowly coming to the conclusion that youâre absolutely perfect and heâs absolutely gone for you.Â
Slowly coming to his senses, Aaron becomes more aware of the silence. The call must have ended while he was having realizations about things. He rounds the corner silently, getting a feel of where youâre facing. Luckily he guesses right, that youâre facing away from him.Â
You were rummaging through the fridgeâ the vegetable drawer if he had to guess, judging by how much youâre slouching and reaching, and the sound of the glass containers you use to prolong their freshness.Â
He quickly surveys the scene- your phone is on the counter, beside it is a chopping board with carrots and onions, a carton of chicken broth, Jackâs favorite dinosaur-shaped pasta, and chocolate milkâ the one drink you both know can make Jack feel instantly better, happier.Â
His heart pinches again. You got up early to make sure Jack had something to eat for breakfast in time for his medicine. You got up early even though you arenât planning on going to work. You arenât going to work because you want to stay with Jack. You called Jack your son.Â
With so many things running in his head, he stands quietly observing you finding god knows whatever vegetable. Maybe it's the intensity of his stare or the volume of his thoughts, or maybe he started to breathe loudlyâ but suddenly you knew he was there. He could tell.Â
You slowly straightened your back from when you were leaning. Your hands have stopped rummaging through the drawer, and he could see the goosebumps on your legs and shoulders from the way the sunlight hits you through the kitchen window.Â
You turn around slowly, as if you were just caught doing something you arenât supposed to be doing, âIâm so sorry, did I wake you?â grimacing as if it was a crime to be hot and cute and gut-wrenchingly-sweet.Â
âNo.â His voice is groggy. Deep and rough given that he just woke up minutes ago and hasnât really used it since. Looking at you through studying eyes, he clears his throat âUhm, I woke up to get ready for work and you werenât there.âÂ
Aaron suddenly feels a little cold. The thin material of his shirt and pajamas doing little to contain what warmth he has left in his body. Or maybe itâs you, maybe his body has sensed that youâre near and is now craving your warmth, making him feel a magnified amount of its absence.
âOh.. Iâm sorry I just wanted to get ahead of cooking so Jack can have soup before he takes his medicine at 8 and since I was also planning to do some work though Iâm on leave, it just made sense to get an early startâŚâ You slow your words, noticing how Hotch is studying you tenfold in the moment, as if you were an apparition, âAre you okay? Did you want soup too? I can pack you some before you go?â
His silence makes you panic a little. You canât really tell if heâs upset about something or if heâs sleepwalking, âOr you can eat here. I meanâ you live here, of course you can eat here. I mean like instead of bringing it to the officeâ not that if you eat here, you canât bring some anymore.âÂ
The longer he stays silent, adoring you, the more you scramble to fill the silence, âIâm justâ you know you can do whatever you want. You can eat here, there, anywhere. Unless you donât want soup. I mean we still have leftover steak, I couââÂ
You pause your rambling because you can see a smile starting to form on his face. A real, big smile. Laugh lines and dimples and all, which makes you smile. Realizing how stupid you were sounding and how funny the situation was becoming, you started giggling.
And just as you think heâs about to join the laughter to make fun of you, his smile softens and he says, âMarry me.âÂ
part 2 here!!!!!
#aaron hotchner#aaron hotch hotchner#aaron hotchner fluff#aaron hotchner x reader#hotch x reader#aaron hotchner x reader fluff#criminal minds#criminal minds x reader#aaron hotchner imagine#aaron hotchner fanfic#aaron hotchner fic#aaron hotchner fanfiction#aaron hotchner one shot#aaron hotchner oneshot#aaron hotchner angst#aaron hotchner x reader angst#hotch fluff#aaron hotchner x you#jack hotchner#aaron hotchner x f!reader#aaron hotchner x fem!reader
863 notes
¡
View notes
Text
it took me by soap-rise
contents ๨ৠâ k. bakugo x fem reader. 4k words â fluff. cursing. slightly suggestive. â of course your public nuisance no. 1 has to hog your favorite shower stall the day you forget your body wash in it.
Katsuki was honestly starting to suspect he wasnât your type.Â
Which one, was something heâd never even bother to consider. Heâs ripped up more confession letters than he can count after three years. Graduation was just around the corner and he still hates social media, but even he knows how popular he is on it because of his classmates whining about it all the damn time. He knows heâs well-liked, and itâs not just his ego talking.
Genuinely it's a thought that would never occur to him, if only Eyebags wasnât lounging around you all the time, casting annoyingly cocky glances at him as he taps your shoulder and leans in to whisper whatever the fuck it is in your ear whenever he passes by the two of you.
Not that he cared.Â
Two, when Dunce Face dared you to say who you thought was the most attractive guy during a game of truth or dare in the common room last year, while he pretended to be disinterested when he very much in fact was not, you had offhandedly answered with that half-nâ-half bastardâs name, who could not be more polar opposite to him.
Again, he really couldnât give less of a fuck.Â
Not like heâs been thinking about it since then. Totally. Not.
Katsuki also hasnât been thinking about how it should be him whispering in your ear instead of that purple haired extra, the endless list of things he could say to make you squirm and blush in your seat.Â
Of course, that doesnât happen because youâre too busy arguing with him, like usual, about the new group project Aizawa just assigned. Something about reconnecting with their roots before graduating. With you two as partners, much to the amusement of your classmates.
âWe should work on the script first!â You insist while he leans back in his chair, observing you get more and more worked up.
It should be irritating as hell, your hand gestures, your matter of fact tone, but whatâs really bothering him is that itâs not. Heâs not sure when that started happening.
âItâs better to prepare the interview questions weâre going to ask our parents when we visit each other's homes.â
He snorts. âWhat are we, some ditzy news report crew? Weâre not gonna waste time doing that, we should just visit your place first, then mine and get it over with.â
You spin away from him before he can open his mouth again, and raise your hand.Â
Aizawa slowly turns to you with a sigh, already knowing what youâre about to ask.
âNo.â
âBut Mr. Aizawa!âÂ
Eyebags casts an amused glance in both of your directions, and Katsuki scoffs.Â
No way in hell was he letting you switch and downgrade to an extra like him.Â
âWhat, youâre chickening out?â
You ignore him. âCan I please switch partners?â
âNo,â Aizawa deadpans.
âButââ
âNo. One more word from either of you and youâre getting zeroes.â
The both of your mouths snap shut, and you glare at each other.
âWhen youâre a pro, you donât always get to choose who you team up with.âÂ
Aizawa rubs his temples.Â
âAnd youâre supposed to be my top ranking students. Youâre not first years anymore, so act like it.â
You hang your head. Like a scolded puppy, Katsuki notes.Â
âYes Mr. Aizawa.â
From the corner of his eye, you flip him off under your desk and his lips canât help but twitch. Does he really still piss you off that much after all this time?Â
Without hesitation, Katsuki flips you off back.
âFucking teacherâs pet.â He mouths with a smirk.
âAsshole.â You mouth back.
Aizawa sighs again, throwing a pointed look at Sero and Denki who are struggling, and failing, to hold back their giggles behind you.Â
This was going to be a long week.
Itâs the day after the group project was assigned, and youâre still reeling from the fact that out of everybody you had to get paired up with, of course it had to be your crush.Â
Hey Siri, does it make you a masochist if for the past three years you've been in love with a guy thatâs laser-focused on his personal development and has zero interest in dating anyone other than his career, ever?Â
Are you a masochist if you kind of find that kind of hot?
Just when you were starting to make a pros and cons list with Mina the night before to try and ick yourself out, too. But even that was getting increasingly hard to do.
His growth was undeniable, and you curse at him for being almost as mature as he was attractive now. Â
Well, towards everybody except you.Â
Three steps away from the door to your room, you freeze in place as your brain stops your usual ramblings of the blond boy to register two alarming facts.
One, the bottle of body wash you usually use was not in your hand like you thought it was.
Two, it was in fact, still in the shower stall you left it in.
Pink house slippers slap against the floorâs carpeting as you race back to the showers with a death-like grip on your towel.
Youâre slightly out of breath as you clutch the doorway of the showers, and just as quickly as you enter you find yourself exiting lightning fast at double the speed, nearly launching yourself against the wall of the hall outside.Â
With your heart racing uncontrollably, tips of too familiar blond hair disappear into the stall you were in moments ago.
Too familiar, for your liking.Â
But that strong jawline you caught a glimpse of was unmistakable.
Your irritating classmate slash crush you were trying to get rid of was taking up your shower stall.
Okay technically it wasnât yours but it was the one you used everyday, each morning and night. Youâd claimed it when you first stepped foot in it at the beginning of your first year.Â
So basically, it was yours.Â
And you definitely donât remember that bastard ever using it until today.
A screech jolts you from your thoughts. He must have turned the water on, which you can hear, but strangely there was no steam wafting out at all.Â
The realization creeps up on you like the sound of running water that trickles down and echoes throughout the room.
Hold on.
What was this idiot doing taking a cold shower at four in the morning?
The all too familiar soothing scent of cherry blossom fills the chilly air, and your eyebrows furrow even more in confusion.Â
And was that your fucking body wash heâs using?
You take a deep breath. Okay, calm down. Heâs bigger than you, probably stronger too, that stupid gym freak, not to mention taller than you.Â
But your fingers were still itching to whip out your quirk and shoot a moonbeam at his crotch.
Because why the fuck was he using your LâOccitane Cherry Blossom Bath and Shower Gel?
Trying to sneak a glance to confirm your suspicions, the obvious shadow of Bakugo is visible through the glass, and you duck back into the hallway.Â
Oh my god, it is him.Â
Taking a cold shower in the morning like a crazy person. Although you hate to admit it, that would explain his perfect skin. Everyday you wake up and see his flawless face, you go to bed praying that he gets a blemish.
The shower turns off, and you let out the breath you were holding. Confrontation wasnât your strong suit, but when it came to your possessions, you werenât about to be a doormat.Â
You cross your fingers and pray that heâs wearing clothes.
âBakugo! Come out here, we need to talk.â
He snorts, already recognizing the chiding voice about to round the corner, and turns. âPicking a fight with me outside of class? Thought you had more self-respect than thaââ
Bakugo is then sharply cut off.
By you hurling into his very naked, very bare chest.
He forces his eyes to not linger on the dip of your collarbone, and as he looks down on you he sees you struggling to do the same in his direction.
You accidentally make contact with his eyes.
The rare, amused look on his face sends something strange and hot down your spine, and you force yourself to turn away so sharply you think you dislocated your neck.
Bakugo smirks. âWasnât nearly this focused when we were working on our project.âÂ
An embarrassing noise escapes from your mouth, and his lips curve ever so slightly on his handsome face at the sound.Â
Heâs never seen you this flustered before.
Itâs kind of cute, he admits this time.
Despite your clearly humiliated state, you point an impressively steady finger at the object in his hands.Â
âThatâs um, thatâs mine.â You awkwardly clutch your towel tighter, suddenly feeling very naked in his presence. Seriously, why didnât you put a shirt on before coming back?
His eyebrow raises and he lifts the bottle slightly. âThis?â
âYeah?â
âUh-huh,â he says disbelievingly. âDonât see your name on it.â
You sigh in exasperation, did he always have to be so uncooperative with you? âItâs mine, okay? Just give it back.â
Bakugo's eyes narrow as he studies you. Like youâre a puzzle piece heâs trying to make sense of.
And as much as you hate to admit it, the focused look on his face was annoyingly attractive.Â
âThatâs funny.âÂ
You open your mouth, your patience is on the last straw and youâre about to yell back âwhat is?â and snatch the bottle out of his hands when he smirks, holding it high out of your reach above his head with his bicep, still gleaming with water from his shower.Â
âBecause this is mine.â
You blink at the water falls from his raised arm onto your nose, not registering what youâre hearing. Looking away from the pink translucent bottle above your head, your eyes meet his again.
âWhat?â
âYou heard me the first time.â
You canât help but stare at him incredulously.
âI donât think I did.â Confusion could not be clearer than glass in your voice.Â
âYouâYou use LâOccitane?â
He averts his eyes from the droplet that falls from your still wet hair and rolls down what skin you have exposed, disappearing into your thankfully tightly wrapped towel.
âDude. You are so not cherry blossom bath and shower gel material.â
He snorts. âFuck is that supposed to mean.â
âI donât know! I thought youâd use like, Dove MenCare or five in one.â
âFive in one? Are you stupid?â
âApparently! ButâOh my god can you stop flexing your biceps for one fucking second.â You groan. âIâm trying to have a serious conversation with you.â
âWhy were you looking?âÂ
âI canât help it! Theyâre distracting me andââ You clap your hands over your mouth, glancing at his slightly amused expression with horrified eyes.
âDistracting you?â His voice is low, and you curse at the way your stomach flip-flops.Â
âUm.â Fuck. Where did that even come from? âI meant, uh.â
âTrying to take it back now?â He smirks. âCoward.â
âI am not a coward!â You glare at him. âAnd Iâm not feeding into your ego.â
âYou just admitted you were staring at my biceps and thinking about what body wash I would use.â
Okay, so youâre just digging yourself a deeper grave. Your cheeks are warmer than the shower you took earlier, and you canât even deny it.
âCreep.â
You huff. âOkay fine, Iâm a creep. Just give me my body wash back.â
âTold you,â he starts walking away, towel still wrapped around his waist. You pointedly look away towards the wall. âItâs mine, dipshit.â
âWhaââ You whip your head around just as he disappears behind the corner, too tired and irritated to even chase after him, and with a sigh you walk into the shower room, heading for the stall you used earlier.Â
Your eyes widen as you stare at it in embarrassment.Â
There your bottle of cherry blossom body wash sits, untouched in the shower caddy.Â
As you head back to your dorm room, the body wash safely clutched in your hand, you wonder.
Was it too late to call in sick for today?
Aizawa did not in fact let you call in sick, and you're painfully reminded of everything that happened in the morning as you complain to Hitoshi about it. Your best friend snickers as students file into the cafeteria behind his seat. Â
âYouâre so stupid.â
You take the opportunity to shove a sweet roll into his open mouth. âShut up! Iâm going to pretend like it never happened.â
Hitoshi snorts, taking the bread out of his mouth. âGood luck with that. But hey,â He leans in with a mischievous grin, and you glare daggers at him. âIsnât this the most progress youâve made since you started liking him since, what, first year entrance exams?â
Your jaw drops. âExcuse me?â
He takes his sweet time eating the roll in his hand instead of elaborating, like the petty asshole he's always been. Your fingers tap impatiently on the table of the cafeteria as you wait while he chews.
After what seems like an eternity, Hitoshi finally swallows.Â
âI mean, youâve never really made a move on him this whole time. Kind of just been a spectator, like a creep.â
Warmth rushes up your neck as youâre reminded of what Bakugo called you yesterday. Creep.
âI canât help it! The only time we ever speak is during class projects, and even then weâre always arguing. I just donât know what to say to him.â
âI know.â Hitoshi raises an eyebrow. âWoop woop. 3Aâs own live little romcom.â
âIâm gonna kill you.â
âOkay, but after I finish this soup.â He blows on his steaming spoon, and pauses as a thought occurs to him.Â
âIf he didnât like it though, he wouldâve told you by now.âÂ
You canât help but perk up at that. âYou really think so?â
âYeah.â He spoons the soup into his mouth. âOh. This is good, why didnât you get any when we were in line?â
â...The red color reminded me of his eyes too much.â
Hitoshi sighs.Â
âFor your birthday, Iâm going to admit you to a mental hospital.â
âItâs not that bad!â You insist and he snorts derisively.Â
The both of you know youâre lying.
The ride to Katsukiâs house after class is awkwardly silent.
Your folks conveniently went out of town to visit some relatives youâve never even heard of yesterday, so the both of you were left with no choice but to interview his parents only.
The train is almost full, and every seat in the car is taken except one.
âIâm standing.âÂ
Katsuki grabs onto the handle above his head, a silent signal for you to take the only seat left and watches with barely concealed amusement in his eyes as you hurry to sit in front of him without a word other than a small âthanks.â So skittish today.
Heâs not sure if he likes it though. You being quiet around him.Â
Youâve said less than two sentences to him since this morning, and he almost misses your snappy quips.
Almost.
He hides a sly grin. Itâs all his fault youâre acting like this, and he's going to enjoy it while it lasts.
Youâre putting your earbuds on, and just before you put the left one in, he snatches it out of your hands and puts it in his ear.
Your eyes widen cutely, too stunned to speak.
"Just don't play anything shitty." He turns his attention back to his phone, ignoring all the smoochy faces the group chat's sent him about you as he sends his mom a quick text to tell her you two are on the way.
With a shy nod, which he can't help but note is so unlike you, you scroll down on your own phone and click on a playlist.
Katsuki's eyes widen in surprise not even five seconds in.
The instrumentals, those vocals. He knows this song.
He loves this song.
"You listen to Pierce the Veil?"
You blink up at him. "Yeah. I do."
He can't help it. The edge of his lips twitch as he recalls what you said to him yesterday, and he mimics your exact tone.
"Dude. You are so not post-hardcore alt rock material."
The expression on your face is priceless.
Katsuki never uses his damn phone camera but he almost wants to snap a picture right there and then.
Except of course, you do the unexpected.
You giggle at him.
He can't help but feel a little proud. Take that, stupid fucking Eyebags.
"I guess you're right," you laugh behind your hand. "Jirou recommended me some songs last year and I've been a fan ever since."
"Then what's your favorite lyric by them?"
"Oh my god." The grin on your lips spreads a warm, sweet feeling across his chest, like strawberry jam on hot toast. "You're one of those people that see someone wearing a band shirt and go 'Oh you like them? Name five of their songs.'"
He scoffs. "I do not."
"You totally do."
Katsuki rolls his eyes. "You trying to distract me from the fact you're a fake fan?"
You fake a little gasp. "Me? Never." There's a thoughtful hum that comes from your lips, and he observes you as you take a moment to think.
"My favorite lyric has to be 'been counting the stars and scars, how Iâm becoming a work of art.'"
The Divine Zero. Fuck, he loved that song too.
"Huh. Guess you know your shit."
You huff proudly, so similar to a dog happily wagging its tail that he resists the urge to pat your head. "Of course! What's your favorite lyric?"
He smirks, staring directly into your eyes.
"Iâm gonna tear out the thread one by one from your skin till your bones feel embarrassed by all the attention."
Your lips fall into a flustered 'o' shape and you turn away when he finishes, nodding. "That's, uh, that's a good one too."
He bites back a laugh as you hurriedly switch playlists, and a familiar R&B tune starts singing in his ear instead.
Mitsukiâs face greets the two of you as she opens the door.
âKatsuki! You're here earlyâoh!"
She spots you.Â
âYouâre one of those cute maid girls from last yearâs cultural festival!"Â
Your cheeks flush as you remember. That stupid day when Denkiâs suggestion finally won the class vote. She was visiting for Bakugoâs role as an oni in the haunted house, and happened to stop by the maid cafe in the class where you and the rest of the girls were working. âYes maâam.â
âI didnât know you were Katsukiâs girlfriend.â
âWhat?â Your mouth drops. âOh, Iâm notââ
âYou brat! You never told me you were going out with a sweet, pretty girl like this.â Mitsuki scolds in her sonâs direction. Your cheeks grow warm as your curious eyes canât resist trailing over to see his reaction.
"She's not my girlfriend, Ma."
Oh my god, was he blushing?
Mitsuki sighs in disappointment. His crimson eyes meet your widened ones for a split second, then he's brushing past the both of you and heading inside the house.
His mother smiles at you apologetically. "Sorry about him, his puberty came late."
You can't help but snort. "It's okay Mrs. Bakugo, I'm used to it."
"I heard that!" A yell comes from down the stairs.
Mitsuki and you share a mischievous glance, and she ushers you inside. You take off your shoes and look around.
So this is where Bakugo grew up.
There's the smell of green tea in the air, and was that a vanilla candle burning somewhere? Framed photos of Bakugo with his parents are on the wall as you walk into the living room, and you can't help but coo at the one where his chubby baby cheeks are smeared in frosting while he blows out a candle shaped like the number three.
The interview flies by in a breeze. You do most of the asking.
Okay, youâre the one asking all of the interview questions. A warm mug of steaming green tea is placed next to you on the coffee table from your cross-legged position on a cushion.
Bakugo sits next to you, unnervingly silent ever since his mom's outburst from before, as he types up his motherâs and occasionally his fatherâs responses on his laptop.
Itâs funny, the way you think he doesnât notice your shivers.
"Ma." He glances up from the keyboard. "Do you need to turn the AC up so damn high all the time?"
Mitsuki rolls her eyes, taking a sip of her tea. "It's warm in here!"
He sighs, eyes flicking over to you, and starts getting up from his spot on the floor.
You stare at the hand he holds out to you. And with great interest, so do Masaru and Mitsuki, who mutters something to him that you better be her daughter-in-law within the next three years.
"Come on," Bakugo says gruffly, tugging you to stand.
You stumble a bit as you walk through the hallway with him and up the first few stairs. "Where are we going...?"
"My room. To get you a fucking jacket."
âNo, I donât need itâ!â You're cut off with a sneeze.
He groans, and shrugs off the black fleece-lined one he's wearing and bringing you into him by tightly wrapping it around your shoulders.
âWhy donât you ever listen to me?â He grumbles. He's so close you can see how unfairly long his lashes are, and you're not sure if it's the sheer nervous adrenaline from him being so near or the scowl in his voice but you giggle, feeling bold.
âItâs sexy to see you prove me wrong.â
His eyes widen, and he quickly recovers.
âYouâre so fucking weird.â Thereâs an unmistakable fondness you catch in his voice as he says that, and you shiver this time for a different reason.Â
"Your jacket's too big on me." You flop your newly acquired sweater paws in his face.
âShut up.â Bakugo snorts as he zips it up for you in one smooth motion. âFucking baby.âÂ
âYou're the baby!" You retort. "I saw your pictures on the wall."
There's a groan from him. "No you didnât.â
"What, they're cute! I'm gonna send one to the class group chat."
Bakugo shoots a glare at you, and you teasingly wiggle your phone screen in his face. "Don't you dare."
"Hmm, okay I won't. Only if you do something for me first."
He smirks. "Fine, what do you want?" Bakugo leans closer to you, and your cheeks burn hot. "A kiss?"
You were not expecting that.
The way your eyes linger hopefully on his mouth looks like he's right. "Um."
"Um?" He huffs a laugh with his face hovering in front of yours. Bakugo's hot breath teases your lips, and you can't think.
Fuck it, you don't even care if he's just joking anymore. If this is your only chance, you're going to take it.
"Yes."
Bakugo cocks his head to the side, irritating to the very end even when you're on the brink of giving in. "Yes what?"
Your eyes squeeze shut as you blurt out, and you can almost hear Hitoshi cheering in the distance.
"YesIwantyoutokissme!"
"Fucking finally." Your eyes flutter open at his murmur, what did he mean by that? But you don't get to spend another second thinking about it because suddenly his soft lips are on yours and your heart skips a beat as you realize Bakugo is kissing you.
It's feels almost scarily natural to lean into his touch, like a gravitational pull getting stronger and stronger the longer you're near him, and you wonder why you didn't sooner. You numbly acknowledge the growing sweatiness of your palms as your nose bumps against his gently.
His comforting hands cup the back of your head, tangling his calloused fingers in your hair as he guides your mouth against his. A delicious little sound escapes from you the moment you break away from him and it only makes him want to close the gap between you again with more hunger, and he nips at your bottom lip like a starved man.
"Knew you always liked me, by the way." Bakugo gives you a wolfish grin, as the both of you pull back for air, leaving a trail of saliva still connected to your lips in your wake. He slyly glances at your dazed self sideways, flashing you a rare sight of his canines.
"Was just waiting for you to stop being such a damn pussy about it."
#it took me by surpriseee the hatred in his eyess#yâall fw lâoccitane cherry blossom bath and shower gel#katsuki bakugo x reader#bakugo x reader#mha x reader#bakugo fluff#bakugo oneshot#bnha x reader#mha oneshot#not this being the first mouth to mouth kiss iâve ever written here lmfaoooo#idk ig physical intimacy means sm more to me than just kissing#but it seems fitting here so#enjoy <3#it might be bc iâm asian and pda seems weird to me LMFAO
1K notes
¡
View notes
Note
Helloooo! I was wondering if you are taking requests for Wind Breaker?
If yes, can I ask for a story or headcanons about Suo meeting and getting curious (and eventually falling for) a f.reader who is like a princess for Shishitoren?
In my head it would be funny to see Suo challenging and interacting with Choji and Togame (who are already threatening Suo to stay away from the reader). I mean, he can be kind of mean when he wants, and still wear a smile.đ
Thanks for hearing me out!
And let me say, I realllyyyy love the way you write!đŠˇ
Shishitoren's Princess (& Her Guard Dog) | Hayato Suo x Reader
Word Count: 7471
ŕ¨ŕ§ Read me before interacting!
ŕ¨ŕ§ Pairing: Hayato Suo x Reader feat. Shishitoren (literally most of them), Jo Togame, Choji Tomiyama, Mitsuki Kiryu, Haruka Sakura, Akihiko Nire
ŕ¨ŕ§ Warnings: mdni, f!reader, manga spoilers, ooc (definitely ooc sorry ah), angst, harassment, swearing, kissing, miscommunication â if Iâve missed one, I apologize + please let me know!
ŕ¨ŕ§ Note: oh my goodness â I'm actually so sorry for how this took me (and how long this is ૮ę°â Ë â ŕžŕ˝˛ęąá). I loved loved loved this idea so much, and thank you for the sweetest words! I really hope this is somewhere in the ballpark of what you were requesting! Thank you again for the amazing idea! I love you!
You hadnât meant to cross over to their territory â truly. Itâs just that Togame had mentioned that his favorite Ramune flavor had been out since last night, and Tomiyama had been going on and on about this new snack that just wasnât available at the usual corner store that you guys frequented, so you found yourself with a mission on your mind and your wallet in your hand.
Pretty, perfect, caring adorable you. With a smile that could heal any scratch and a heart that seemed to never run empty. You were the pride and joy of Shishitoren â their mascot in every sense.Â
You knew everyone by name. If someone asked, you could name at least 5 things about each person from the top of your head. You could name their allergies, their likes and dislikes, and even their interests â all because you listened to them.
You were attentive and warm â quick to lend an ear if someone was having a bad day or offer advice if they asked.
And it was scary how well you could tell if they were in the dumps â it becomes a running joke that you have some kind of emotional superpower when it comes to them. It takes just one look, one look before youâre bringing them to a secluded corner and asking them if theyâve got something weighing on their minds.
You knew their personalities, knew their stories, knew their hearts.Â
The only time anyone avoided you was when they knew they did something wrong â because they knew youâd be pulling them by the ear and scolding them. And, as much as some of them wanted to get mad, they just couldnât bring themselves to â because having someone care for them so fiercely was a feeling that not many of them had ever experienced, and from the bottom of your heart you truly cared.
After every fight, they knew youâd be the one to patch them up. Bofurin had the townspeople, sure, but Shishitoren had you. You, who would set up tables in the Ori with every inch of space taken up by ointments, antiseptic spray, gauze â the works. Whatever injury they had, as long as not severe, was taken care of by you.Â
If it was serious and required hospital attention, you were the one bringing them there â eyes sharp and tongue at the ready to yell at anyone who dared to treat them differently or deny services.
And these boys ⌠they had the utmost respect for you. You, who had nothing but love to give, never expected a single thing back. You cared for them, genuinely, and saw them as your own brothers to fuss over and worry about and love.Â
You were family â and honestly, Togame and Tomiyama were just glad to have met you after their fight with Bofurin.Â
Youâd moved to this side of town just a little after the whole thing, and when youâd gotten lost in the dark alleys with your phone on 1% and tears in your eyes, it was Tomiyama who walked you home. Heâd talked your ear off the whole way, of course, but he was surprised at how you were able to keep up with him. You were actively responding to him, asking questions, keeping the conversation going â and Tomiyama liked that.Â
And when youâre delivered safely to your front door, you ask if you can exchange contact info. His eyes light up, and heâs quickly saying yes and that heâd love to hang out with you again.
He doesnât expect you to reach out to him the next day though, asking if you can give him a thank-you present for going out of his way the day before.Â
And when you show up to the Ori, with a bag of assorted goodies in your hands, youâre met with more men than you could count, all with eyes staring wide at you.
They expect you to run away, honestly, because they know what they look like. They know that youâre probably a sweet girl, sure, but they were a gang â plain and simple. A gang working on reform, sure, but a gang nonetheless. So, if you were to drop your little goodie bag in fear and run for your life, well, it would probably be the most appropriate response.
Instead, what you do is gasp, point an accusatory finger at Tomiyama, and exclaim, âWHY didnât you tell me that there would be more people here?â
You quickly hand him the bag, muttering out an âIâll be backâ, and in less than 30 minutes youâve got your hands full with 5 more bags, packed to the brim with even more snacks.
With Togame, it takes just a little bit longer for him to warm up to you. Not that he doesnât already like you â itâs just that heâs, well, a bit more reserved and a bit more quiet and observing (a lot more quiet if weâre comparing him to Tomiyama).Â
Itâs when, during a fleeting conversation, he mentions that he plays Go with the elderly men at the public bath â and he watches you perk up at his words. Immediately, youâre asking if it would be alright to play with him sometime, and while heâs hesitant, he ultimately says yes at the sight of your bright eyes and wide smile.
He admits that he thinks youâre just bluffing, until you actually plan a day to play, and now youâve got him thinking that maybe youâre good? Maybe, youâre a secret Go prodigy or something? Maybe youâve got a secret or two up your sleeve and â
He wipes the floor with you. Absolutely demolishes you. But youâre happy about it, laughing at the result, and heâs confused because you didnât win? Did you ⌠did you know how board games work?
Youâre quick to tell him that you enjoyed it because you got to spend time with him, got to know who he is as a person because of how he played.Â
You leave him standing on the street, a bottle of Ramune long forgotten in his hand (his prize for winning) and his mouth open in surprise.
And when you notice heâs not next to you anymore, you turn around with a smile on your face as you ask, âDonât you feel that you know me a little bit better too?â
Yeah, they were glad that you got to see them as they were now, with hopes and dreams and emotions. They donât dwell on the idea of you meeting them before then â they donât want to. Because if they thought about it too long, theyâd have their answer.
You deserved to be happy and healthy and protected. You, who filled a hole in Shishitoren that they didnât even know existed.Â
And now you were an irreplaceable part of their lives, so precious and so important that they began to understand Bofurin. They had you â someone that they would do anything in their power to protect â to keep safe from harm.
You were Shishitorenâs Princess.
After that, Tomiyama and Togame were stuck to you like glue. Always thinking about you, always concerned, always wondering where you were.Â
Youâre running late and they havenât got a text letting them know why? Theyâre out on the streets, danger flashing in their eyes and prepared for the worst. However, when they see that youâve been distracted by a stray cat on the road, all they do is let out a laugh and join your side.Â
They hear you sniffling and see that your eyes are shining with tears? Theyâre immediately on you, asking who did this to you, with a promise to make them pay for it tenfold. âYou canât really beat up allergies,â you laugh, before sneezing into a tissue. Immediately, the Shishitoren boys are rounded up, their eyes focused and determined â to get you allergy medicine.
You were everything good in the world, bottled up into someone who could make even the rainiest days seem a bit more brighter and the hardest challenges a bit more bearable â and they didnât want anyone infringing on their happiness.
So when Hayato Suo, from Bofurin, comes across you one fateful day â theyâre absolutely livid.Â
You hadnât meant to cross over to their territory â truly. Itâs just that Togame had mentioned that his favorite Ramune flavor had been out since last night, and Tomiyama had been going on and on about this new snack that just wasnât available at the usual corner store that you guys frequented, so you found yourself with a mission on your mind and your wallet in your hand.
And honestly, you loved them, you did, but the way that they treated you like a delicate little flower sometimes felt a bit too stuffy.
What? Did they think you just patched people up for fun? That you knew how to medically treat someone just short of a nurse because it was your hobby?
Youâre too absorbed in your thoughts to realize where the directions on your phone are taking you until youâve already passed the train crossing border that connects Bofurinâs and Shishitorenâs territory. Youâre spit out onto a street that youâve never seen before, but you shrug it off.
When you find the corner store, you make quick work of your shopping list, even grabbing some items for yourself, before youâre out the door.
Itâs when youâve barely taken a few steps down the street that you feel it â the staring on the back of your head.
While you were in the store, youâd felt their eyes on you, but youâd ignored it, hoping that it was just a fleeting moment of curiosity. Now, you see that it was the eyes of a predator stalking their prey.
You pause, before quickly taking out your phone and sending a quick text to Togame and Tomiyama â they just need one small clue and they can fill in the rest â so you send your location.Â
And when you finally turn to face your stalker, you snap a photo of their face. For insurance, you assure yourself. Just in case.Â
Heâs taller than you, with a smirk on his face and his hands in his pockets. You feel uneasy at his presence, and you look up and down the street to see that no oneâs around.
Damnit damnit damnit.Â
âYouâre really pretty, totally my type. Could I get your contact information?â heâs asking, but the tone that heâs saying it in doesnât leave any room for objection.
âNo,â you reply, simple and straight to the point. Then, you stay standing there, and you wait.Â
âNever turn your back on an enemy.â
Togame had said this briefly, once, while the both of you were watching everyone spar.
When the man takes a step forward, you take one back, maintaining the distance between you and him.
âOh come on â itâs just your number. Donât make this such a big deal.â
Heâs holding himself back and you can see it. You can see the way his hands are twitching by his sides now and the way his breathing is starting to speed up.
âAlways keep an eye on your opponent~! You wouldnât wanna miss anything!â
Tomiyamaâs words run through your mind next, and you will yourself to maintain your facade.
Youâre starting to get just the slightest bit worried now, though. It really shouldnât be too much longer, you think. Any minute now.Â
But a minute passes by, Togame and Choji arenât here, and the guyâs got his hand wrapped around your wrist so tightly that itâs starting to throb.
âPlease â leave me alone!â you yell out, but itâs going through one ear and out the other. Heâs smiling down, dark and sinister, and itâs then that you remember something so crucial that you canât believe you forgot it.
âKick them, um, down there. Itâll hurt, a lot. But thatâs a last resort type of move, alright princess?â
Those self-defense lessons are paying off, Togame.Â
You make a mental note to thank him when he gets here.
You kick the man, hard, and when he releases your arm you step back as fast as you can, but âÂ
The plastic bag you had once held in your hand, now filled with the sloshing liquid and the broken glass of Togameâs Ramune bottle, causes you to slip.
Your hands shoot out and you close your eyes in anticipation of the fall that never comes because strong, warm arms are holding you up.
You let out a sigh of relief â finally. Youâre brought to stand, but before those hands can leave your body, youâre swiftly grabbing them to wrap around your waist and leaning your head on their chest.
âGeez, took you guys long enough ââ
The sight of a black jacket cuts you off. Black, with green embroidery.
You quickly push yourself off, eyes wide and cheeks red because you had just initiated a very intimate hug with someone who was a complete stranger.
âI-Iâm so sorry! Oh my gosh â I thought you were someone else!â you blurt out, hands covering your mouth â and he looks as caught off guard as you are.
His eye is wide, mouth open just the tiniest bit, and â heâs cute.
âWow, I donât get thanked like that too often,â he smiles, and youâre mortified at his playful reaction.
âI â,â You open your mouth to apologize again, but heâs got a hand on your shoulder, quickly cutting you off.
You look up at him, and the smileâs still there, but itâs different now â itâs frightening.
âWould you mind stepping to the side for me? It seems some people just donât know when to quit.â
You hear shuffling behind you, and youâre quickly brought back to the situation at hand. Nodding, you get out of his way, and itâs as soon as you step past him that you hear a sickening thud and a groan of pain.
When you turn, youâre relieved to see that the man whoâd been harassing you is on the ground, and if you were to guess, probably out cold.
âWow⌠You made quick work of him,â you donât try to hide the awe in your voice and Suo finds it both endearing and concerning that youâre praising him.
Concerning mainly because, well, you donât seem to be the type to leisurely enjoy street fights.Â
And now youâre right in front of him, inspecting his face and body to make sure there arenât any cuts that need to be treated or any injuries that need tending.
Itâs second nature at this point â ingrained in your body and soul.
Cute, he thinks, very cute that she thinks he touched me.
âDo you see anything wrong, love?â he jests, enjoying the way youâre so diligently scanning him from head to toe.
âNo, I donât thinkââ
You are, once again, mortified by his teasing. No one at Shishitoren spoke to you like this, and sure they called you Princess, but to you, it held the same value as sister or friend.
âS-sorry, force of habit⌠ah, thank you for saving me! I sent my friends a message but ââ
Youâre cut off by the sounds of two distinct voices yelling "Princess", and Suoâs quick to prepare himself for another fight.
However, when he sees Togame and Tomiyama run around the corner with panic in their eyes and desperation in their voices, heâs just confused.
And when they spot the two of you, with an unconscious body on the ground, it gets even more confusing. Because why are they walking over here and why do they have scowls on their face and â
âPrincess, what were you thinking?â
Tomiyama and Togame are all over you, Togameâs hand gently grasping your chin to move your face from side to side, and Tomiyamaâs got his hand on your wrist, softly thumbing at the bruised skin.
âIâm okay, Iâm okay.â
Suoâs observing all of this, and heâs trying to rack his brain for any information about you. God, he really wished Nirei was here right now.
Heâs never heard that name before or seen your face, so this must be a recent development. But with the way theyâre fretting over you, youâd think that youâd all been childhood friends or something because the way that theyâre worrying over you is definitely not normal.
You try to push their hands away from you, embarrassed that you have an audience, but they donât let up so all youâre able to do is grumble and huff as they inspect you from head to toe.
â... He hurt you,â Tomiyama whispers, and you grab his wrist before he starts stalking toward the body on the floor.
âItâs okay um â oh, I donât know your name, but he helped me out! Everythingâs fine â really! Please, letâs calm down,â you plead, and all it takes is one look at your anxious face for the both of them to ease up.
Now, Suo really wants to understand.
âSuo ⌠thanks for protecting her. This idiot didnât tell us she was crossing over into your territory. Itâs our fault, sorry,â Togame explains, one hand scratching the back of his neck and the other draped over your shoulders.
Suo takes a moment to respond. Who would he be, after all, if not an instigator?
Because â who were you? You â who could turn the Shishitoren leader and his second in command into mere puppies with your sweet voice. You â who had them running like their lives depended on it.Â
âAh, Iâd save a sweet girl like her any day,â Suo says, testing the waters, and he gets the exact reaction he was hoping for.
Togame and Tomiyama stiffen up beside you, as you gasp in surprise at his words.Â
And suddenly, thereâs a shift in the air â and itâs deadly.
You sense it, of course, because who wouldnât be able to feel the heightened electricity and the low hum of buzzing coming from Togameâs and Tomiyamaâs chests?
And you, ever the de-escalating expert, quickly blurt out, âAh, wait! I need to go back to the store! Give me like 5 minutes!â
Before they can get a ânoâ out, youâre already out of their grasp and beelining it for the convenience store.
Itâs silent for a moment, with just Suo, Tomiyama, and Togame looking at one another.
Finally, Togame breaks the silence.
âLook, Sakuraâs a friend ââ
âAnd Ume-chan too!â Tomiyama chimes in.
 â â and I hope weâre not stepping on your toes here but donât get any ideas.â
Suo knows he should stop. He should probably apologize, and let them know itâs not what they think. That theyâve got it all wrong. But ⌠he really canât help it â not with the way that theyâre hissing at him like cats. Itâs adorable â and youâre adorable.
He was never really good with holding back his tongue, anyway.
âI think she can make her own decisions, donât you?â
Togame and Tomiyama do not take kindly to his words, and so it begins â a passive-aggressive verbal war.
âHa, right. Itâs been fun, eye-patch-kun, but we really oughta take her back home. You know, so that we can patch her up,â Togame says, and though there's a smile on his face, Suo understands the underlying message behind his words.
She got hurt in your territory, under your patrol.
Suo smiles back at him.
âAh, sorry! I wasnât quick enough to save her, but Iâm glad I was able to sort this out before things got out of hand,â Suo replies.
All you guys do is blow things up out of proportion â with violence.
âIf weâd been here, she wouldnât have gotten hurt in the first place.â
âHm. But you probably wouldâve gone overboard.â
âWatch it ââ
âAh, sorry!â
Itâs when Tomiyama finally opens his mouth that Suo realizes heâs been uncharacteristically quiet, and when they make eye contact, Suoâs smile deepens â because Tomiyama looked like he was ready to maul Suo into pieces, like a true Lion.
âUme-chan and Furin are our friends,â he says, eyes darkening with every word, âbut sheâs our family â I think itâs best if you stand down.â
Itâs at that moment that you come racing back towards them, your hands full of goodies and a grin on your face as you exclaim, âI got it! I got it!â
You hand Togame his Ramune, Tomiyama his snack, and ⌠you hand Suo bottled tea.
âSorry, um, I wasnât too sure what you liked â but this is my favorite drink! Ah, um, if you donât like it ⌠Suo ⌠I wonât be hurt. But you strike me as a tea lover so ââ
Youâre bouncing on the balls of your feet, hands wringing behind your back as you ramble and Suo canât help the sweet smile and the small laugh that escapes his lips before thanking you.
And as soon as heâs done, youâre being whisked away back to your territory â back to your home.
As you walk through the passing, with Tomiyamaâs arm intertwined with yours and Togameâs arm draped over your shoulders, you briefly turn around, just to catch one more glance of Suo.
Heâs standing there, smiling as he raises his hand to wave at you. You smile back at him with a glossy look in your eyes before Togame softly flicks your forehead.
Your attention is on Togame now, pouty and dejected, before turning your head indignantly as you begin to lecture him about how youâre supposed to thank someone when they help you, and that itâs the nice thing to do.
In the heat of your lecture, you miss the way that Tomiyama and Togame also turn back to look at Suo.
In the darkness of the tunnel, Suo swears he can see their eyes glinting, and his smile only deepens.Â
Their eyes, daring and territorial, only say one thing.
Ours. Ours. Ours.Â
He had to admit, he wasnât expecting this turn of events but he was intrigued now.Â
And, itâs only after the three of you disappear that he realizes he never learned your name â your real name.
So, when he volunteers to take over the patrol where the Furin territory ends and the Shishitoren territory starts, who can blame him?
What Suo doesnât know, though, is that after this little incident, youâre permanently banned from walking alone ever again.
(Of course, youâre not actually banned. But, you are given a scolding afterward â which, in your eyes, is rich coming from Togame and Tomiyama, but sure, whatever.)
đŤ§đźđ˛*ŕŠâŠâ§âËđ
The next time Suo sees you, itâs when he least expects it.Â
Youâre in Bofurin territory, with a small first-aid kit on your lap as you tend to the child in front of you. Youâre smiling at the sniffling little boy as you wrap some gauze around his ankle, your fingers adept and swift, as if youâd done this countless times before.
âSee? That wasnât so bad, was it? Youâre so strong!â
You ask him how it feels, and the little boy beams up at you, the tears in his eyes long gone and instead replaced with immense gratitude.
You smile down at him, playfully scolding him to be more careful as you pat his head softly.
And then Suo sees you hand him a lollipop â a lollipop â and itâs the cutest thing heâs ever seen.
So, really, can you blame him for sneaking up behind you and whispering into your ear?
âWhat brings you to Bofurin territory, princess?â
You yelp in surprise, before turning around so fast that Suo worries if you gave yourself whiplash.
Once your blush has gone down and the surprise of seeing him wears off, you explain that youâre here to get some bread for Tomiyama from the Cactus bakery.
Heâd been saying that he wanted fresh bread, but there werenât any in Shishitoren that you knew of. And as soon as he mentioned the Cactusâs Anpan over on Bofurin's side of the tunnel, well, who could blame you for taking that opportunity to not only do something for him but also for yourself?
Which, of course, was to hopefully run into Suo.
âHe sent you all the way over here to pick up bread for him?â
âHm? No, of course not. This is a surprise for him!â
âI see â I was wondering why you didnât have your guard dogs aroundâŚâ
âMy guard dogs?â
âOh!â you laugh and Suo thinks itâs the most pleasant sound heâs heard in his life.
âYou mean Tomiyama and Togame? No, they donât know Iâm here. It wouldnât really be a surprise if they knew, right?â
Suoâs starting to see it now â why they care for you so much. But he wants to know more, so he asks about the kid you were tending to.
âAh â I saw him playing with some kids and he took a nasty fall. I didnât think it was right to let him go home without care, so I patched him up. I hope thatâs okay?â
Suo finds that he really likes talking to you. He likes how expressive you are, how kind you are, and how thoughtful you are. And he finally learns your name. He likes that about you too â itâs cute.
So, naturally, he offers to escort you to Cactus â purely just to keep an eye on you, he convinces himself.
And when he escorts you back to the border, all your goodies in one hand and his arm in the other, well âÂ
He doesnât care enough to find justification for his actions. He just really liked you â plain and simple.
When you let go of his arm, heâs already grieving the feeling of your body pressed to his side.Â
You were warm, soft, and heâs sure that if he ever got the chance to taste your lips, sweet.
âLetâs exchange contact information! That way, you can be my guard dog when Iâm here,â you say as you pull out your phone, and Suoâs so so glad that he ran into you today.
When he adds your contact to his phone, he puts you down as Princess.
When you add his contact to yours, you put him down as Guard Dog.Â
đŤ§đźđ˛*ŕŠâŠâ§âËđ
After that, you and Suo try to meet up. But⌠wellâŚ
You donât see the point in trying to hide it. You were, after all, your own person. You could think for yourself, make decisions for yourself, and speak up for yourself. You were so open to loving and the Shishitoren boys knew this â so why should you hide it?
And when you had something on your mind, you were determined to make it happen. So, you donât see why it would be any different with Suo. You had met him twice now, and you wanted to keep seeing him. To keep talking to him. To maybe even date him.
But to Shishitoren, this was equivalent to losing you â and they could never let that happen.
So Shishitoren never lets you see him â and itâs not like theyâre barricading you inside the Ori or blocking the entrance to the border (though, theyâll admit that the thoughts crossed their mind in one way or the other).
No. They do it in a way that they know will make you stay with them â by acting like big babies.
The first to fall was Arima âÂ
Youâre about to leave to meet up with Suo when Arima runs into the Ori, cries of pain leaving his lips as he whines at how much it hurts. You drop your bag immediately, texting Suo a panicked text about how something came up and that youâre sorry but youâve gotta cancel today.Â
You have Arima sit down, all your supplies laid out next to you as you ask him what happened and âÂ
Itâs a paper cut.
But heâs babbling about how deep it is and how much it stings and it takes forever to just disinfect it and wrap a bandage around it before you realize that half the dayâs just flew by for a minor injury.
Second was Kanuma â when he got a bad haircut.
Third was Sako â when he suddenly, out of nowhere, began asking you for advice about how you would approach someone who you used to look up to but lost respect for, who you vowed to fight and win against, only to lose against them and have them apologize to you (you, obviously, struggled with what advice you could even give him).
Fourth was Tomiyama â when he lost his favorite pair of sneakers.
Fifth was Togame â when he lost an eating challenge for the first time.
âItâs for the good of Shishitoren,â they say as they prepare the next victim.
Eventually, you find yourself tending to almost all of Shishitorenâs wounds, whether physical or emotional, and you just canât believe that theyâre fighting against you and Suo so hard.
But, in between all of that, you and Suo still manage to sneak in hushed phone calls and sweet texts.
Always asking about how the otherâs doing, always talking about how your day went. He looks forward to it, he realizes, laying in bed as he hears you start to slur the ends of your words, drifting off into sleep.
And you send him photos all the time â it could be of a cat you came across while on the way to the Ori, or a drink that you tried that you liked â and with each text, with each phone call, Suo finds himself becoming smitten with you.Â
You, who would remind him to drink water and to at least eat something small to get through the day. You, who had perfect memory and would follow up with the things that heâd talked about days ago, just because you were interested and curious (heâd mentioned that there was a tea spot that he frequented in Makochi, and it only took a day or two later for you to bring it up again, this time with all sorts of questions and comments like âI looked at what they serve! Which oneâs your favorite?â and âIâd love to go there with you sometime, Suo â if I ever get the chanceâ. Heâd only said the name of this tea shop once, but you remembered).Â
And sweet, kind, loving you â who seemed to know whenever he had a particularly tough day. You were so attentive to him, which was surprising because all your interactions were never in person, but it seemed that you could understand his mood just based on the extra second it took for him to answer the phone or the way he responded to your text. And the thing was that Suo was great at masking his emotions â an expert, even. But you, who could just sense these things about other people, were giving him the chance to open up if he so chose to. You never pressed, never battered him for an answer. Just a simple â âI feel like thereâs something on your mind, but if you donât want to talk about it, thatâs okay! Just know that if you ever need a shoulder to lean on, Iâll be there for you Suo.â
And, above all, you never stop trying. You never stop trying to escape the clutches of Shishitoren to see him â though you apologize every time your plans get thwarted as if you both werenât expecting the same outcome.
But Suo doesnât see you again, for months â not until a huge fight breaks out, and youâre honestly the last one he expects to see rushing onto the aftermath of the battlefield with a backpack filled to the brim with medical supplies and a determined look on your face.
They didnât know Shishitoren was going to get involved and fight alongside them, didnât know that the aftermath was going to be this bad. But if Suo had known that youâd be running to meet everyone afterwards, well âÂ
đŤ§đźđ˛*ŕŠâŠâ§âËđ
He sees you a mile away, and heâs so relieved that youâre not hurt. That youâre up and moving. That youâre here. But heâs also surprised and caught off guard because â why were you here?
Itâs then that he sees your bag, sees the way that youâve got your hair up and out of your face, and the way that youâre scanning everyone up and down so fast that your eyes never stop moving.Â
My little nurse, Suo thinks, rushing to the injured like the sweet princess she is.
Little did you know that as he was fighting, there were only 3 things revolving through his mind â Bofurin, Makochi, and you. He fought to protect those 3 things that were so very dear to his heart, and to be greeted with the sight of you after winning? Well, it couldnât be anything less but a sign of his hard work. A reward, if you will.
He sees you run up to Umemiya, serious and purposeful, as you open your mouth and wait for a response. Umemiya, though very confused, gives you an answer that you seem satisfied with because you nod, then thank him, and now youâre running towards Suo, and you make eye contact, and he canât wait for you to dote after him and take care of him and âÂ
You smile at him, scan his body, nod â and walk right past him. You never stopped for him, actually. You just kept moving. Just kept walking.
And Suo just watches â he watches as you make your way over to where Shishitoren is laid out, watches as they all let out a sigh of relief when they see you safe and unharmed, watches as they start talking animatedly to you as you start setting up for aid.
And youâre standing there with a pained look in your eyes as you nod at their words halfheartedly, more focused on the injuries that theyâre sporting on their bodies than the words coming out of their mouths. Youâre going from person to person as fast as you can, and although Suo canât hear you, he can read your lips as you tell every single person â âIâm here now. Itâs okay. Thank you for fighting. Iâll take care of you.â
He watches as you get to Tomiyama and Togame, and sees the way your eyes start to water as they pat your head and tell you that theyâre fine â even though you have eyes, you can see how hard theyâve fought. Instead, theyâre fondly thanking you for coming all this way just to take care of them.
And suddenly, everything got a bit too real for Suo. A bit too scary.
Because he didnât realize how hard heâd fallen for you, in between those two fateful meetings, the constant late-night phone calls, and the never-ending texts.
It hits Suo like a train. He wanted to be the one that you search for in the crowd. He wanted to be the one that youâre fussing over. He wanted you to patch him up. He wanted you.
He was in love with you.
And he shuts down â completely.
He goes silent, uncharacteristically so, to the point that Sakura and Nirei are starting to get worried.
âWhatâs wrong, Suo-san?â
âSuo, whatâs the matter with you?â
It goes through one ear and out the other â no response, no indication that heâs even present at the moment.
Itâs when youâre patching up the last member of Shishitoren that you feel the heat of an eye on you â and your body reacts before your mind can.
Suoâs name is the only thing running through your mind as you finish up as fast as you can â and youâre off.
Youâre making your way to where all of Bofurin is sitting, just barely slipping out of the grasps of the Shishitoren boys.
Itâs Togame, with his long limbs, who reaches out and puts a hand on your shoulder and itâs Tomiyama, with his fast reflexes, who has your hand in his.
âPrincess, noââ
âLet me find Suo.â
âBut you donât even ââ
âChoji, Jo â let me go.â
They hesitate. Youâd never spoken to them like this before. Never used their first names before. Never been so cold before.
But they werenât fools. Even if you tried to hide it, theyâd seen the way you sneaked off to talk to him or the way you thought you were hiding your phone when you were responding to him. Anytime theyâd bring something up that had even an inkling to do with Suo, you were excitedly adding in your input â all while stumbling over your words as you tried to be mysterious.Â
(Theyâd done a test, actually. All they did was bring up the word tea and you were fighting for your life as you kept accidentally saying Suoâs name when talking about your friend.Â
âAh, Suâ AH, I mean, my friend really likes this type of tea.â
âOh! Thatâs Sâ my friend's favorite place in Makochi!â
They didnât have the heart to tell you because, well â you really sucked at lying.)
And they realize, with heavy hearts, that you were never theirs to lock up in the Ori. You were so kind, so lovable, so sweet, because thatâs just who you are as a person.Â
You were protected, sure, and healthy, sure, but you werenât happy.
You, who were the embodiment of everything that Shishitoren was working to protect, had made a choice and they werenât respecting it the way that you respected them â and they were being, well, selfish.
And when they finally let you go, you sigh in relief. Making your way over to where Suoâs sitting, you yell out over your shoulder, with so much spite, so much anger, and so much love âÂ
âYou act like Iâm never coming back â stop whining like puppies!â
Togameâs and Tomiyamaâs eyes widen in shock before they both laugh lightly at your words in disbelief.
You really knew how to scold them.
â... sheâs talking about you.â
â... nah, sheâs definitely talking about you.â
đŤ§đźđ˛*ŕŠâŠâ§âËđ
When you made your way over to Suo, you were met with guarded and curious stares from all of Bofurin. Too focused and too determined, you brush it off. You knew about the fight that they had with Shishitoren, sure, but you thought that they had patched everything up? And Shishitoren had fought with them for this big battle, so why the curiosity?
If only you knew the real reason everyone was staring at you.
Instead, you find yourself running past all of them with Suoâs name falling from your lips, and when you see him, he doesnât respond.
You pause, dejected, before repeating his name.
No response.Â
Now youâre worried â and scared.
You recognize Sakura and Nirei, based on how Suo had described them briefly, and you immediately begin asking them what happened.
âSakura, Nirei â is Suo okay? Did he get hurt? Does he need first aid?â
Youâre met with silence â and shock.
âH-huh? Do we know you?â
âU-umm â sorry, have we met before?â
You pause at their response, looking at them confused.
You blink once, then twice, then three times â before glancing at Suo.
Unresponsive and unperturbed.
You introduce yourself slowly, giving Sakura and Nirei the chance to remember you â because they mustâve heard your name at least once, right?
They hadnât.
And now youâre standing there with hundreds of eyes on you, as you come to terms with the fact that maybe ⌠maybe youâd been wrong this whole time.
You clear your throat before timidly asking a question that you fear you already know the answer to.
âDid he um⌠did he not tell you about me? Uh⌠about us?â
And suddenly â everything goes to shit.
Shishitoren rises up in arms, walking over to where you are because why did you look so confused and why was Suo ignoring their beloved princess âÂ
All of Bofurin is staring at you with their mouths wide open, processing the words youâve just said â
Sakuraâs spluttering, desperately trying to form words as he continues to just point back and forth from you to Suo with shaky hands âÂ
Nireiâs got his notebook in his hand, flipping through it like a madman because how could he miss something like this, and had Suo ever talked about you? âÂ
Suoâs unresponsive, still âÂ
And then, to top it all off, Kiryu gasps because heâs finally solved it. Heâd seen a text on Suoâs phone, so brief and so quick, but he was sure that the person Suo was texting was âÂ
âOh! Youâre the one heâs been texting! Youâre Princess!â
At Kiryuâs words, you snap.Â
And no one, not even Togame and Tomiyama, had ever seen you this angry, this upset, this livid.
You werenât expecting him to go around screaming your name all over Makochi, but what you did expect was at the very least maybe his friends to know. Was that so absurd? You never tried to hide your feelings for Suo from Shishitoren (They tried so hard to stop it) so why wasnât it reciprocated? Did he not feel the same way? Had you looked too deep into his actions and created a fantasy in your mind? Did you not really know him as well as you thought?Â
Or worse â had he been toying with you?Â
Oh, you were pissed â and poor Suo didnât have a clue.
You go to stand in front of him, eerily calm and sickeningly sweet as you call his name one more time.
âHayato Suo.â
Now that â that brings him back to his senses. You watch him blink in succession as he grounds himself, before his eye darts to you, to Furin, to Shishitoren â and he quickly puts the pieces together before letting out a stiff laugh.
âAh â I was hoping to introduce you properly to everyonââ
âAm I a joke to you, Hayato?â
Suo freezes at your words.Â
How could you, who had unknowingly wormed your way into his heavily guarded heart, be a joke?
But he realizes now â and he feels, for one of the few times in his life, stupid.
Because you love with your heart on your sleeve, and Suo loves with his heart tucked away.
And really, Suo shouldâve known, because youâre you â you who gave Shishitoren something to protect and to hold close to their hearts, safe from danger and harmâs way.
You press on, fighting through the anger and the embarrassment and the fear you feel rising inside of you.
âTell me Hayato, answer me. Was I? Hm? Did you have fun?â
âNo, I ââ
âEvery call, every text â did that mean nothing to you? Was I just being delusional?â
âWait I ââ
Youâre so close to him now, softly jabbing your finger into his chest as your words begin to get more and more shaky.
âDo you feel powerful, Hayato? Making a Shishitoren girl fall in love with youââ
You stop yourself, teary-eyed and vulnerable, and you feel so stupid. Because what hurts more than anything is giving someone all your love, all your time, all your energy â all for it to have been for nothing. You thought he felt the same, truly. But now? All you wanted was to walk away from all of this, walk away from Bofurin, and never ever look back.
He grabs your hand, desperately, as your words sink in. He wants to â no, needs to make sure that heâs not just hearing things. That heâs not just imagining it.
âYou ⌠love me?â
You pause, taking the chance to actually look at him. You see hope on his face, and you furrow your eyebrows in response.
â... is this another joke? Of course, I love you, you idiot. You wouldâve been the first one I ran to but your leader said you guys were all patched up already so I ââ
Everyoneâs eyes turn to Umemiya, who shrivels under the attention and wordlessly mouths an âI didnât know!â
But your eyes are only on Suoâs, and Suoâs is only on yours.
And Suo lets you see him, truly see him, for who he is. He doesnât shy away from your stare, doesn't put on a mask, doesnât push his feelings into the box thatâs been his safe haven for so many years.Â
Your eyes flicker with uncertainty and fear, but you convince yourself to try one more time. Just one last time.Â
âHayato Suo, I really do love you,â you whisper, so slowly, so hesitantly, so scared.
Then, with everyoneâs eyes on the both of you, Suo slides one hand to the small of your back, and the other to cradle your face.
He wanted to learn how to love with his heart on his sleeve â just like you.
â⌠again.â
â⌠I lovââ
His lips cut you off, and honestly, youâre not even mad. Not when heâs pulling you flush to his body, his hand slipping to the back of your neck, and your fingers grasping at the collar of his jacket.
Black, with green embroidery.
âI love you, too â but Iâm afraid thereâs too many eyes here for me to show you how deeply I feel for you, Princess â I hope youâll forgive me.â
Dazed, all you can manage is a soft nod and a flutter of your eyelashes before pulling his lips back to yours.
Suo smiles into the kiss. He was right, you were as sweet as he thought youâd be.
#melody answers (& loves it)#melody writes (& never stops)#hayato suo x reader#suo hayato x reader#wind breaker x reader#windbreaker x reader#wind breaker (satoru nii)#hayato suo#suo hayato#wind breaker
1K notes
¡
View notes
Text
red right hand.
pairing. henry cavill x male reader.
word count. 7.3k.
summary. if there was one thing to give your dad credit for (other than helping create your very existence), it was that he has an insanely hot best friend. it was a universal admiration your neighborhood shared with one another. though, how many actively feasted upon their fantasies regarding that hunk of a man? probably only you, because mr. cavill was more than a crush, he was an addiction. and on one summer day, mr. cavill realized that so were you.
content warning. college!reader, dad's best friend!henry, neighbor!henry, age gap, blowjob (r!giving), degrading, throat-fucking, choking, gagging, spitting, kissing, humiliation, body and muscle worship, rough-play, size difference, dirty talk, verbal, praising, size kink.
The warm wind fanned the sweat off your forehead when you slid your window open. The ledge stained your fingers with particles of dust. Grimacing at the fuzz and simultaneous stickiness, it also provoked a storm of laziness as steel reminders from your dad got caught up in the commotion: CLEAN THE HOUSE.
CAR MAINTENANCE.
STOP ORDERING TAKE-OUT AND COOK.
SORT THE ATTIC.
TIDY GARAGE.
CHECK STOVE IGNITIONS BEFORE LEAVING THE HOUSE.
LOCK THE DOORS.
Ya-dah, ya-dahâŚ
Honestly, how could you check-off any of these tasks with this heatwave currently going on? You were sweating bullets, been sweating enough to bathe in your own salt for days nowâwhich you technically were already doing. It was summer, the long-awaited season after the agony of allergies. A temporary relief to your studies as well, until the humidity hit you like a truck and made you realize that living back in a dorm wasnât so bad.Â
At least the building had a functional air-conditioner.Â
âUh-huh, yep.â Your dadâs voice was going in one ear and out the other as you rummaged through your cabinets for a snack. Cereal; stale. Canned meat; too heavy. Potato chips; not heavy enough. âDad, you know youâve gone on business trips before, right? This isnât the first time Iâve been alone.â
âI know, but Iâm just making sure. Itâs a new house, and Iâve been watching these true crime documentaries about men leaving clubs andââ
âWell, the first mistake was going to a sketchy club in the first placeâŚâ You muttered, peering into the fridge, and then lingering, because refrigerator air has never felt so cooling against your skin. You duck your head to puzzle yourself into the cold box, dumbfounded that the heat had gotten you irritated enough to claim a bag of deli meat as your bunkmate for the time being. The sound of your dadâs frustrated sigh on the other line curled your frown into a smile, and you laughed, âIâm a big boy. Stop worrying, and go enjoyâOw!â You bumped your head against the door on your way out.
âHow can I not worry when you just referred to yourself as a âbig boy?â Not even a man?!â You never realized how theatric the man was. It was like his presence never left the house, exaggerated hand movements and all wafting the smell of his homemade meals whenever he would scold you in his favorite place: the kitchen. You smiled at the fond memories.
âGood pointââ Though they were made at your old house, you were sure that once heâd returned, your dad wouldnât be opposed to creating new memories of scolding your ass off on whatever trouble youâd get into. If you do, that is. Youâve grown since then, finding yourself too tired to socialize.
âRemember, spare keyâs in the birdhouse. Thereâs a compartment at the side of it. Hopefully birds havenât evolved enough to pick it open.â
âIf they have, theyâd be picking at our locks right now to kidnap me and probably feast on my body.â Luckily, the fridge was stocked before your dad had left. You crucified him for being overly-prepared at times, but for this month, it was an exception. You picked at a slice of deli meat and cheese, and stuffed it down your mouth.
âNot funny, (M/N).â
âIâm kidding, Dad. Lighten up! I know youâre nervous about presenting, but they invited you to talk to an audience for a reason. They like you. Just be yourself, and remember not to speak so fast. Have some water on standby too.â And speaking of the devil, you gulped down a glass of iced water to cool down your body as your dad chuckled in your ear.
âI know, I know, thanks.â A muffled sound on the other end filled the silence, sounds of people passing and cars honking passing through your ear. âAlright, my rideâs here. Iâll call as soon as I get to the hotel, okay? You better answerâOh! I forgot to tell you! Henryâs coming over later to look at the car.â
âHenryâOh, Mr. Cavill? Heâs in the neighborhood?â The name rattled a familiar feeling inside of your stomach. Something rather warm, suddenly ravenous when you thought about the last time you saw him.
âActually, he was the one that told me about this house! He lives down the street. But toolâs in the garage if he asks for them, okay?âÂ
âY-yeah, okay. Got it.â You hadnât seen him many times. Only when youâd come home from semester breaks, yet the mere mention of his name had you flustered as if he was a long-lost friend or something.Â
âOkay, gotta go. Love you, and remember, lock your doors! Bye!â
âI will! ByeâŚâ Your phone blinked back to your previous app after ending the call.
You knew he was your dadâs best friend; a divorced father and a bachelor unsurprisngly made a match in heaven.
He was someone that shared your fatherâs interest in tabletop games and comic books. A replacement for yourself you thought earlier on, but he was way more knowledgeable about those interest than you ever were. You grew up on your dadâs nostalgia. For Mr. Cavill and your dad? These memories altered them who they would be in the future.
He was a friend that would help your dad out on building projects, like that birdhouse he had mentioned. He was a charming man that built the PC you currently use after hearing you complain about the previous laptop you had. And best of all, his looks were as abundant as his kindness. Standing over six feet tall, with a chiseled face that matched an equally sculpted body; heâd been a little crush since you first met him, being the only man who was capable of rendering you utterly speechless.
And in present, the only man who had the power to tighten your briefs and shorts with only a passing thought of his body; muscular and athletic in all the right places. If only your dad could somehow muster up a beach day before summer ended. Either way, the image of his bare body excited you, the blood flow immediately rushing south in agreement. Your dick kissed your shorts at the thought water cascading off his hulking body like meltwater over an ice shelf, freezing you in your place to not-so-subtly gawk.
âJesusâŚâ Your body couldnât catch a break, could it? With the ramping heat and the constant sweating, your erection only added fuel to the bonfire that was the pores of your skin. Your cock pulsed madly within the constraint of your briefs, teasing yet begging to be released, to be sheathed from its slick, because it knew you had the key to its relief.
Or rather, Mr. Cavill did.
It was pathetic. Youâd been at this for a year now. As much as you were unfamiliar with Mr. Cavillâs disposition, it was certainly the opposite regarding his physical appearance. Though it hadnât exactly occur to you when this crush of yours had been tiptoeing along the lines of obsession.Â
Wait, was it an obsession..? No, no, it was just a crush.Â
You hadnât done anything wrong. All you had done was browse through his social mediaâhe did follow you, and you mutually pursuedâand stalkedânoâscrolled through his posts. Thank god, he was an avid poster. Pictures of his selfies, his knack for grilling, his love for his pet dogs, his pride over his geeky hobbies, his friendship with your dad and mutual buddiesâall of these pieces attributed to allowing you to get to know him more as you were rotting away on campus, missing life back at home. Like clockwork, looking at his feed brought a sense of comfort, a hope that maybe you could be part of his life as well.
âGod, what Iâd do to ride that mustacheâŚâ You blurted out your thoughts, hyper-aware that you were alone in the house. Youâd been waiting for this. Youâd been surrounded by your roommates 24/7, and then once break started, your dad wanted to insert himself into your schedules as much as he could before the next semester starts.Â
As much as you loved them, you needed space. A space bigger than the privacy of your own room. You deserved the whole house to yourself after enduring months of agony from overdue assignments; stress from bickering roommates that led to chaos within the dorm. You havenât jerked off properly in months, often resorting to a quick session that comforted you on the occasions youâd have to pull multiple all-nighters to get a project done.
You needed relief.
You needed pleasure.
âFuck,â Your eyes had been fixated on Mr. Cavillâs social media feed as you stripped yourself free of clothing. On one hand, it helped your body cool off from the heat building in the house. On the other, you felt vulnerable, like someone could walk in on you any second, and god, was that a turn-on.Â
A grid of his life displayed happily before you, and your thumb scrolled aimlessly in pursuit of multiple pictures ingrained in your brain that had your cock throbbing in your palm. You laid flat on the couch, earbuds fit snug in the canals after briefly switching apps to play your favorite porn in the background of your search. Your stomach sunk deep when the man began moaning in your ears. Hot like the blistering sun outside; you can imagine Mr. Cavill breathing against you like that, as you took his cock in like the video you had playing. Your balls pulled when the man grunted, âRight there,â and you couldnât help but pull at the ache of your cock, then at your balls to fondle at the loose stretch of skin.
âRight there,â you repeated when your thumb paused at the desired video of Mr. Cavill. Another major part of his lifestyle was working out. Strength training, cardio, marathons. You name it, Mr. Cavill did it all, exceptionally well, and the crème de la crème of it all was that he bared his torso for most of his videos. âFuck, youâre so big⌠Fuck, fuckâŚâÂ
It was like watching a warrior prepare for battle. Sweat dripped off the holiest parts of his body as he pumped his muscles with heavy weights. Grunts, heavy and lewd sounds filled your ears while Mr. Cavill powered through his bodyâs resistance. You wondered to yourself if he could take you like that. Force you to take him with brute strength like the weights in his muscular, veiny hands. You were stroking yourself to him, every part of him, palm slick with sweat and spit. Two fingers would get the job done, stretching you out in preparation for his cock. Though, you knew deep down that it would take more than that. Three, or maybe even four, considering the hunk of a man was seemingly built from metal. The video replayed multiple times before you remembered that he had more than enough content for you to jerk off to. You were barely five minutes in, but this was already more pleasurable than whatever you had endured back at the dorms. Your cock felt pleased, spitting out dribbles of thick pre-cum that loosened the stick of your palm as donation to your generosity.
âFuck, HenryâŚâ You rarely referred to him by his first name. It felt unusual. You were much younger than him. Addressing someone closer to your dadâs age felt rude, like you were trying to assert your dominance despite your age difference. You were many things, but disobedient was not one of them. However, you couldnât lie. His name felt polishing to your tongue, something that could improve the taste of dreadful meals if one were to whisper it before taking a spoonful.
His name felt like a miracle.
Your sexual appetite was nourished by the frames of Mr Cavillâs second video. He was completely unaware he was bulging, free-balling in his sweaty shorts while he pursued his vitality through jumping jacks, lunges, toe-touchesâcardio galore that made his heavy cock bounce in rhythm. You could tell he was large, gifted with insane girth to the point where you could make out the shape of his cock just from him stretching. And the smell; sweat sticking on thick curly hairs on his chest, and a happy trail that seemed to promise a world of musk if you ever had an opportunity to endeavor upon your curiosities. You were practically salivating for him, saliva pooling where your tongue sank, while your cock leaked. You pumped yourself quicker and harder at the frustration that your desire to taste Mr. Cavillâs cock would remain a pipe dream.
All that left you was your imagination, and your own musk. Pulling up at your glans, you squeezed out thick loads of pre-cum before swiping it with your thumb and tasting it off with a suck. Salty, bitterly pleasant on your tongue, and satiated enough to not let your libido falter at the disappointment that it wasnât Mr. Cavillâs pre-cum, but rather smolder.
âOh, fuck my mouth⌠I need that cock, Mr. Cavill. Pleaseââ The frames of the third video showcased him flexing his arms and torso. His body bursted with pride, veins surging through every fiber of muscle like they were charging him and his very existence. It was veiny too, wasnât it? His cock. Large and veiny, like how youâd like it. You would struggle fitting him inside of your mouth while his cock veins pulsed with great pleasure knowing that it was Mr. Cavillâs kink that you couldnât take him.Â
No one could.
âFuck, fuck, fuckââ Your eyes rolled back. The slurping sounds from the porn increased by tenfold as you pumped the volume by a few decibels. Lewd, slick sounds you wished you could perform on Mr. Cavill himself violated your ear drums. Pleasure him. Thank him on your knees for being so kind to your father. For building your PC without compensation. For providing you temporarily relief while you were away on campus, and could only jerk off under the blanket. You were grateful for him. For Mr. Cavill. For his thick arms. For his veiny forearms. For his dashing good-looks. For his muscles. For his strong cock. Youâd give yourself to him if you could. Worship every inch of his step, every inch of his body, and that still wouldnât be enough to show your appreciation towards him.Â
Your fist tightened. Your other hand had grown limp by now, dropping your phone to the floor by mistake, but you were too fixated on the pleasure your cock was receiving to retrieve it back. You could watch it from where you were laying, just like this, slickly twisting and pumping your cock to the sound of the porn, to the sound of Mr. Cavill grunting simultaneously as if his thick cock was being feasted on like a hungry beast. âMr. Cavill, pleaseâIâm going toââ
One earbud slipped from the sweat building on your body, but you were close. So fucking close to coming. And when you do, youâd come on your phone.
All over Mr Cavillâs pecs. His abs. His crotch. His face. Anywhere, as long as it was your friendly neighbor, becauseâ
âEnjoying yourself, (M/N)?â
A voice from behind you alerted your body to jolt and whip around upon instinct to defend yourself. Naked or not, you werenât going to die, not in the hands of a burglar.
Though, as soon as you did, you regretted it. You felt like stone. Cold, hard stone as all signs of life seemingly felt like it had been sucked dry out of your body, with your erection taking up most of the produce surprisingly as you confronted the intruder.
The six-feet, muscular, handsome, and familiar man of an intruder.Â
âM-Mr. Cavill?! WhatâWhen did youââ You were flustered. Radiant heat blooming like the season of Spring across several patches of your naked body. It also didnât help that your porn could be heard from earbuds once you took the remaining one out, albeit a bit muffled. And your phone, it was facing the ceiling, looping the video of Mr. Cavill training over and over again. Right before him.
Your body was shaking, physically evident despite your efforts to conceal the tremors as the man stared you down, unfazed by the drama of it all. âFuckââ You didnât know what to turn off first. The porn? The video of him working out? Or maybe dressing yourself should be a priority becauseâMr. Cavill was still staring, blues lingering on your naked body, seemingly outlining every drop of sweat that followed the contours of your figure. There was movement that naturally caught your attention.Â
It was his hand, large and muscular over the center of his shorts. Rubbing, squeezing, fondling at an evidently large mass that made you dry-swallow. You mustered up the courage to finally pause the porn, then clicked your phone off. âH-how long have you been watching?â
âSince the beginning.â He chuckled, stating matter-of-factly. âYour dad told me to come look at your car. Your garage was open. Thought you did that for me, but I guess you really just forgot about closing it consideringâŚâ He nodded towards your cock, licking his lips when it acknowledged him with a throb. âWas coming to get you, and I found you like this.â
âAnd you just watched?!â You sputtered out in distress, hastily dressing yourself back into your clothes, stumbling over your feet in the process. Sweat always made it more difficult to put on clothes.
âWell, I did call you for while I was coming in. You didnât hear me over your video, andâŚme, I suppose.â It was smug. Amusing to him that you were in this state of embarrassment after being caught red-handed. You groaned, burying your head into your knees after sitting back down on the couch. The heat was unbearable, but to face Mr. Cavill after being caught jerking off to his videos, you were overcome with horror at the ghastly spectacle of the situation.
âDonât tell my dad about this,â Your fingers scraped through your scalp out of frustration, but also to keep your head pressed to your knees as they interlaced around you. You refused to even spare one more glance at the man when you felt him practically hovering over you, a gentle smile riding along the coattails of his composure. ââŚplease.â
âI wonât,â Mr. Cavillâs voice sounded clearer, closer than before. Right above you, but still, you maintained your position despite the pleasant scent of his cologne almost breaking away your focus. âJust as long as you suck me off.â
Those final words hit you like a truck.Â
You were astounded, confused by the turn of the situation. It felt like a taunt, and it was treated as such because it worked. You whipped your head up upon Mr. Cavillâs demand, almost insulted because it was how guys on campus used to taunt you.
What you expected to grace your eyes with was his face; charming as ever with a mustache that was reliable in stirring immense feelings inside of you.
Instead, you were met with a face full of flesh, Mr Cavillâs heavy and large cock. It sported a strong curve, throbbing veins to prove its accelerating lust, with thick balls swinging low to entice you into a hypnotic state. If someone was to grade you upon your predictions, youâd score a perfect mark, because god damn, he was huge. Hairier than youâd expected, though just as arousing, if not more, because this was unexpected for Mr. Cavill as well. He wouldâve cleaned himself a bit if he had a plan to meet you under these circumstances.
âIâYouâre serious?â With the string of thick pre-cum dripping from the very slit of his head, it seemed like your question was answered. You could smell him. The musk of his pre-cum. It tingled your nostrils, enchanting you akin to what fresh pastries wouldâve done for you on normal, non-libido provoking circumstances.
âDoes it look like Iâm kidding? Come on, Iâm waiting. You didnât even say âthank youâ to me in person when I built you that PC for Christmas. Itâs the least you could do, right?â Without warning, he took ahold of his cock and tapped the center of your lips with it. Your orbs shook as you looked up at him, hesitant through the tremor of your lips as Mr. Cavill stared back, determined for you to accept his plea offer with some kind of answerâwith your mouth preferably. âBeen teasing me for so long⌠Think I didnât notice the way you looked at me whenever I came over? How you kept massaging your cock under the table during dinner? Always in those shorts too⌠God, you were begging to be fucked with your thighs showing like that.â
âNoâI-Youâre my dadâs friend, I canâtââ Your hand said otherwise with your fingers taking initiative on their own, wrapping over his large cock, right above Mr. Cavillâs fist. It was a two-hander, a fucking two-hander, yet your fingers struggled to close around his girth. âFuck, youâre soâŚâ
âYour dad doesnât have to know, right? I wonât tell. You wonât either. We donât want to hurt him, right?â One of his hands found its way to the back of your head while he took a step closer, bringing his cock closer to your face. Before you could pull away, there was true grit to the palm of Mr Cavillâs hand as he applied pressure to the back of your head, pressing your cheek flush to the underside of his cock. âLook at you, you donât have the heart to say no, do you? Youâre obsessed with my cock, arenât you?â
âY-yes, Mr. CavillâŚâ You were under his control. Locks of your hair bundled under a grip while he ground his cock against your supple skin, making you smell him; his musky cock, the sweat buried in the deep hairs of his pubic area. It was a glorious scene that returned your cock back to its original state of arousal by tenfold.Â
âYouâre going to be a good boy and suck my cock off, right?â Almost in your mouth. You parted your lips open to trap his cock into your mouth with the way he maneuvered your head like a rag doll, a brute strength your nape now, pulling and pushing your head as his cock rubbed against your face, but Mr. Cavill pulled at the last minute, right when you were one lick away from tasting meaty flesh. âClose your mouth. You will open your mouth when I tell you so.â
âIâIâYes, please...â You were pathetic. He held you still, head tilted upwards to face the ceiling and his towering body while his cock and balls laid over your face like a table runner, a perfect heater to warm his meat. A t-shirt remained on his body, and that was a true testament to his appeal, being able to get you off like this half-naked. You reached down, back to fondling at your sore cock, at the blue balls youâd given yourself earlier, sniffing, inhaling the heavy delightful scent of his sweaty cock. Guess his house was having air-conditioning difficulties too.
âI can use your mouth however I want?â He dragged his cock over your face, the head leaking out pre-cum in midst of its journey to introducing itself to every one of your facial features, saving your lips for last.Â
âYes,â You gulped at his rousing speech, breathing in the drying musky pre-cum on the perimeter of your skin. âPlease fuck my mouth, pleaseââ
âIf youâre good, then this can be a regular occurrence, yeah?â You slipped your shorts and briefs off again, jerking yourself off to simply the teasing taunt of his cock, tapping at your skin, brushing over your eyelids, pushing up against your nose. You felt humiliated. Youâd been marked by Mr. Cavill, pathetically as it only took his huge cock to make you submit to him. âYouâd like that? Sucking your dadâs best friend off?â
âF-fuck, yesâŚâ His cock was a wand to your body. Every time Mr. Cavill was seemingly about to push into your mouth, you willingly opened it to no avail, even if it was obvious that heâd pull away. You could only get off on his scent for so long. Heâd draw your tongue out when he squeezed pre-cum out the tip of his cock, right above your pink flesh. It would sink, drip, slowly like syrup, in thick strings, until it wasnât anymore with the sudden obstruction of Mr. Cavillâs finger swooping in to nick the sticky web, and letting it waste away on the carpet. âPlease, Mr. Cavill⌠I-Iâll be goodâŚâ
It was amusing to him, watching you desperately try to taste and watch him in any way you can, to the point of going cross-eyed as he would center his cock in your vision. He waved his cock like a flag as if he had conquered you. Humiliated you with several heavy slaps to your face, thick smacks that you took in whimpering grace because Mr. Cavill had stolen the resources to your insanity.
âThatâs what I like to hear.â
Mr. Cavill didnât waste a single second for you to prepare yourself. The pressure on your nape steeled, bruising to make you open your mouth and whimper, and maybe that was the point, because he seized the opportunity to charge his cock inside of your mouth without warning, making you gag on your own desperation. It was a forewarning. A brief prologue on how you should take his cock as he quickly pulled himself out to properly prepare yourself. In the meantime, he slapped your cheek multiple times with the spit you had already layered him with, cooing at how incredible hard and big he was against your dazed face.
âFuck, your mouth is so warm. Thatâs it, you can take it. Good boy.â Saliva spilled out of your mouth like a popped water balloon when he pushed himself inside of your mouth again. You couldnât control it. You couldnât control what Mr. Cavill had stripped away from you with the strength he had on your neck. Not to mention, the mass of flesh gagging you into oblivion, leaving you completely incapable of stopping him, as if you wanted him to. âCome on, use your hands too. Donât be lazy.â
âMm-mmfâŚâ A compliance that was muffled by a slur of slick sounds, but Mr. Cavill knew what you meant. Amusement played on the corner of his lips as you struggled to fit a hand around the base of his sticky cock, sloppily stroking what was left neglected by your mouth, or rather your inability to take in. You suckled on the head of his cock, plump and heavy on your tongue as it throbbed with every lick you provided him. Stroking its slit with the tip of your tongue, you then dug and slobbered over the salty taste of his pre-cum. âSo big⌠Just like Iâd imagined.â
You pulled away to marvel at the size of his cock, taking your time to lube his cock with your spit from tip to shaft before your fist flushed to his pelvis to slap his meaty cock on the pouch of your tongue, lewdly flinging your spit in the air. It was your favorite move, often reliable in coercing a reaction out of the men youâd sucked off previously. The roll of his eyes, the flex of his muscles, the grunt from his gut; you slobbered all over his cock, worshipping every inch with your mouth, polishing the cock knob clean with your tongue and stroking what you couldnât with two deft hands. Mr. Cavill was no different, he was a man with needs like you, with needs like the rest of the men youâd given head to, and you exploited the hell out of it. You loved making them feel in power, making them feel like you were worth time out of their day, despite their original pleas to use your mouth.
He briefly pulled back to rest a kiss on your lips, one that youâd treasure for the rest of your life. Not only was it because it was your first kiss was him, but because of how delicate he was with you. Warm and inviting like he usually was, his large hands cupped at the end of your jaw, holding you as if you were made of porcelain. âMaking me so proud right now, fuck. Take in more of my cock, would you? I like it when you gag.â
âMm-hmmâŚâ They always do. You mumbled against his lips, no longer needing his guidance to finish what youâd started. Your eyes were glued to Mr. Cavill, aroused by the look he was giving you. A famished stare that demanded to be satiated, by means of sheer persistence as you knew it was going to be difficult to down him with your throat.
Mr. Cavill drove a hand into your hair, cuffing the strands to keep you still, to keep you from pulling away, to dominate you. He watched you without an ounce of kindness, muscles flexing, cock and balls hanging obscenely as you found a better position on your knees with a throw pillow guarding you from bruising. âWant you to throat-fuck me, Mr. Cavill.â
âFuck, who knew you had such a mouth on youâŚâ He sturdied his stance, spreading his strong legs while manhandling your head between them. You licked a stripe over his balls, then the underside of his cock until your tongue reached the scorching skin of his precum-slicked tip. Approaching the end of the journey, your mouth opened wide to welcome Mr. Cavill back into your mouth, and like tugging on a loose knot, you drew out moans from within his gut, his body loosening in turn of your hot mouth. âFuck, just like thatâŚâ
With a thundering heart, and a building pleasure so morbidly big, you sunk and lowered your head lower, taking in Mr. Cavillâs horse-cock like a fleshlight. Crimson rose to your cheeks, to your neck, as you strained to maintain him inside of your mouth. He was too big. Youâve utilized all the tactics youâve learned on campus, on a few buddies, on your roommates. Breathe through your nose, relax your tongue and jaw, let your saliva drip out. Yet youâd barely taken a few inches more than you had done prior before a couple of gags alerted you to take a breather. Your head pulled back, but it was met with violent opposition as Mr. Cavill brought your head back down to further shove himself down your throat.
âMmmâgggrgh!â Your body jolted in defense, stiffening your body into an upright position when you couldnât refrain from gagging on his cock. Your hands braced on his strong thighs for balance, squeezing at the muscly flesh of skin to distract yourself from the uncomfortable stretch your mouth was receiving.
âFuck, yeah. Fuck, fuck, just like that. Youâre taking it like a good boy.â You were making him proud, so fucking proud. You coughed, gagging, almost choked on your own spit, but the stuffing of Mr. Cavillâs large cock simultaneously emptied your mouth of saliva as it all came flooding down your mouth in lewd webs. âShit, look at that. Iâm making your mouth water, arenât I? Fuck, what a waste.â
He yanked your head back, pulling him out of your throat, and you had never felt such relief. Breathing, exhaling and inhaling deep to compensate for the prediction that Mr. Cavill wasnât going to let you spare a second of abandoning his cock like that. Your eyes watered, reddened from straining your muscles to make him fit inside of your mouth. You knew there was a shift in the room when you looked up at him like that, glossy in the eyes, tremors involuntarily making your knees unsteady, coughing as you held onto his thighs. He towered over you, you were beneath him, beneath the ravenous gaze he simultaneously terrified and seduced you with. You couldnât complain now. You did your job. You made him feel powerful like youâd wanted. Dominating, as his cock leaked in your spit, and spit your saliva back onto your face.
âYou were fucking hungry for my cock, werenât you? Look at you. Youâre a bloody messâŚâ With one swipe, he gathered the layers of spit you had generously supplemented his cock with, and smeared it across your face. You took his humiliation with good grace, moaning at your loss of pride with every smear. It deducted the more he messily layered your face with your own spit, but as demeaning as it was, there was immense merit to the satisfaction on Mr. Cavillâs face. âOpen up.â
âM-mm, ahââ Your mouth opened with a vulgar sound. If Mr. Cavill had something to compare it to, it would be like sticking a spoon into a cup of jello, and then scooping its content out. Sweet and glorious to his ears, salty to your mouth as he bought your head forward again, and plunged his cock back down your throat, deeper, and further within the confines of your throat. You squeezed around him, eyes clenched tight while he brought your face flushed to his pelvis, the hairy bush of his public area gentle abrasive against your nose. He smelled as delectable as he tasted. A hint of spice, sweat, salt, you could lick at it if it was made into a popsicle, lap it up if it was in a bowl and you were on all fours, bowing to his feet.
Your cheeks bulged as your mouth churned internally to produce more slime to seemingly ease the slide of Mr. Cavillâs cock thrusting inside of you now. He was careless, half-bent over your head to lock you into a tight embrace while his spit-polished cock rubbed at either side of your cheeks, rut against the roof of your mouth, then thrust himself into the depth of your warm throat. You couldnât have escaped if you had wanted to. He was too strong. Two hands unrelenting around your head while he packed his large cock deep into your mouth, pelting into your gags and whimpers with fast, sharp thrusts, the sound of his wet dick choking you mutually turning you and Mr. Cavill on. You want to quit, yet he was choking you too good. Water streamed down your cheeks. Whether it was your own spit, sweat, or tears, you couldnât comprehend it because Mr. Cavill was uncompromising, refusing to yield for your comfort.
You were fucking grateful. That was what had been missing from your college experience. A man. Someone taking charge for once. Someone utilizing you like the whore you made yourself out to be. Mr. Cavill saw right through you, through your taunts from several breaks ago, and he was fucking furious for making him wait.
âShit, Iâm close,â Fucking your mouth furiously. You could get off like this. Fuck, no. You were getting off to this. Fucking your cock with your fist, doing your best to match the pace of Mr. Cavillâs hips. You wanted to look up, to watch his face morph from admiration to animalistic desire as he utilized your throat at his own disposal.
You blinked away your tears, even if they had stung, and gawked at how captivating Mr. Cavill was for being selfish, thrusting into your mouth with one hand keeping your face free of your hair from obstructing his view. A frown permanently framed his mustache, and his dark brows furrowed at the approaching climax. He wasnât looking at you. Rather, he was scrutinizing your wet mouth as it was jam-packed with his cock. How could a mouth look so pretty while doing something absolutely obscene? How could a throat feel so tight, so addictive, even after piping his cock down its drain several times? How could you let him treat you like this, a complete stranger, completely violate and humiliate you on your knees, like a broken doll whose purpose was to fulfill a manâs deepest desires? Maybe he needed to have a talk with your father. Talk about how broken you were, and that you needed fixing. Spend a nights with him at his house, and he would help you rewire your brain. Heâd fix you. Fix you with his cock. With his lips. With his hands. With his body. Your eyes rolled back at the thought, fisting your cock faster, twisting to his heavy grunts as he was nearing closer and closer to the edge of his insanity.
âMfghm!â Your throat felt raw, the subtlest whimper scratching at your throat like claws on chalkboard. But you persisted, pumping your shaft vigorously, your ears lapping up Mr. Cavillâs constant appraisal for your performance. Good boy. Thatâs it. Youâre taking my cock like how I want it. You want your reward? Fuck, sloppier. Spit on it. Spit on my dick. I like it sloppy.Â
Sweat pebbled every inch of your skin. You couldnât take it. It was coming. Your stomach sank and steeled upon the sudden rise of fulfillment, and you quickly released your grip after a final stroke before coming into the air. Thick ropes catapulted upwards, your cock throbbing with every pulse, and your balls emptying itself more and more with a bounce, a twitch, and a jolt. âF-fuck, ughâŚâ
âFuck, yeah. Look at all of that cum. Fuck. You came that much just from my cock, look at thatâŚâ Your body spasmed as the carpet soaked up your semen. His voice gruff yet gentle at the same time, making your cock twitch once more before softening.Â
âCome on, not done yet. Suck me off.â He spat out, tugging your head forward after a quick breather.
Something in you clicked, and you began sucking his cock off like it was your job. Twisting, stroking at the slick shaft while nipping at the head while you caught up to your breath. Suddenly saltier on your tongue as some of your cum had landed on your hand before it was smeared across Mr. Cavillâs dick. Youâve never tasted yourself before, but it was a found contentment you didnât expect to turn you on.
Then, you took one last breath, cleared your throat, and charged forward. Long, thick inches slid into your throat once more, and youâd hold yourself there upon his final warning, mouth agape, lips pressed into the fur of his pubic hair. Your tongue flattened at the underside of his veiny cock, and your nails dug into the back of his thighs as you felt a thick warmth rush down and coat the inside of your throat. His cock throbbed, and Mr. Cavillâs grunts emptied from his gut with every spill. You could feel every heavy pulse as Mr. Cavill came down your throat in heavy, creamy spurts. You didnât want to swallow. Not yet. You wanted to savor him. Savor the taste of his cum. Youâd pined for it for so long, for all you could know, this could be your last opportunity to properly taste him. Slowly, but surely, his loads rose and pooled in the back of your throat upon barricading it with a tighten of your trachea. The rest of his spurts emptied on your tongue as he pulled himself out, and milked himself to completion.Â
âDonât swallow yet.â
You nodded, panting, awaiting for his nuts to be emptied as he flung his cock a few times, hurling drips of cum and your spit over your tongue and face. When he was seemingly emptied out, his gaze fixated on his cum pooled in the back of your throat; semi-translucent and filthily swimming with your own spit, and then Mr. Cavillâs own saliva, as he then spat into your crowded mouth.Â
âNow swallow.â
You whimpered at the vulgarity of this affair, yet you were highly-aroused by this shame you were feeling. Mr. Cavillâs gaze stilled, anticipating with calm amusement while petting at your cheek. With one clean gulp, you downed your guilt, scrunching your nose when the salty taste of his spunk throttled your tastebuds, and sighed in satisfaction.
âDoes your throat hurt?â He was on his haunches, carefully examining your throat as if he had his hand around you from the outside. It was a surprising return to his normal self, at least, the man that you knew as your dadâs best friend. Caring and patient, as he tended to your neck with apologetic kisses, and a gentle massage around your nape, where he mustâve gripped too hard upon your jolted reaction.
âA little⌠Didnât take you were one to be rough like that.â Your knees gave out, letting yourself fall back onto your butt knowing that the couch would catch your position.
âNot usually, no⌠You just⌠happen to rile me up for some reason.â He was smiling, joining you on the floor, and nuzzling his furry mustache into the crook of your neck as if he wasnât choking you with his cock a few minutes ago. It was unusual, yet charming. âSeriously, donât tell your dad, okay?â He whispered into your ear before turning your cheek to look deep in his eyes.
A meaningful stare, a beat of silence, before you spoke, âOnly if you promise me something.â
âWhatâs that?â Mr. Cavill pressed a kiss to your swollen lips, another apology for stretching your mouth without much warning.
âYou really meant it that this would be a regular thing if I did a good job?â Mr. Cavill scoffed at first. It was almost embarrassing. Were you being naive? Was this too good to be true? Your cheeks flushed red, and you solemnly casted your gaze downwards, defeated because that was that it felt like. The sound of rejection always came with a scoff, everyone knew that.Â
âWell, it was going to be a regular thing even if you had accidentally bit my dick off.â He suddenly laughed at how susceptible you were by the smallest actions, and at this moment, you were surprised that maybe this crush wasnât so one-sided after all. He teased at your frown, kissing the corner of your mouth until it was a smile, and then prodding at your sides when you resisted. âCome on, you couldnât possibly think this was a one-time thing.âÂ
âTemptingâŚâ You snuck a head in between his thighs, reaching for a certain tool that had brought in so much pleasure and pain to your body. âI donât know⌠we donât talk much. I donât know you that well.âÂ
âDonât.â Mr. Cavill teasingly warned, stopping you by taking ahold of your wrist. Though, one step too late, as you already cupped his flaccid cock, tormenting his balls with a few tugs and squeeze of your palm as an act of revenge for your throat. âWell⌠then letâs get to know each other. No problem doing that, right?â
âMm-mm, guess not.â Pursing your lips, you nodded, feeling placated by his words.
He sighed into your mouth, kissing you again, licking at the inside of your mouth, tasting your tongue and then your cheek, to soothe his selfish stain on your body with the work of his mouth.Â
âFirst, I want to hear you say âthank youâ for building that PC of yours before I promise you anything.â
âJesus, weâre still on this?â
âYes! Do you know how long that took me?â
âI didnât ask you to build me oneââ
âGod, youâre an ungrateful brat.â
nouearth. please do not repost, plagiarize, or translate my works. and if you like this story, please reblog and leave a like!
#henry cavill x male reader#henry cavill x reader#henry cavill x you#henry cavill x y/n#henry cavill x m!reader#henry cavill fanfic#henry cavill fic#male reader#x male reader#henry cavill fanfiction#x m!reader#gay reader#bottom male reader#male reader insert#nou.fics
2K notes
¡
View notes
Text
barbie girl.
if life is plastic (and therefore, nonbiodegradable), then itâs so not fantastic. honestly, who came up with that? regina george really shouldâve googled about the new plastics economy.
or alternatively, pretty girls rule the world, and you find out that heâs (not) all that.
pairing :: na jaemin x reader genre :: comedy, fluff, angst ⎠makeover + college au word count :: 24,618 words warnings :: body issues, body image, weight mentions, insecurities, beauty is a social construct, [spoiler] did something bad, people being literal scum, so much gaslighting that you can start a wildfire and j*ke gyll*nh*al should take notes, âif a man talks shit then i owe him nothingâ playlist :: pretty boys (romi) â you canât sit with us (sunmi) â i just wanna know (katherine li) â lie to girls (sabrina carpenter) â look what you made me do (taylor swift) â leftover feelings (regina song) â number one girl (rosĂŠ) + extended playlist here. authorâs note :: sheâs all that is one of my most favorite rom coms ever, but iâve always been ///: at the whole makeover idea and decided to write my own version !! the idols mentioned in this fic are just characters, and how i portray them in this fic do not reflect how i actually view them or their irl personas. as always, much love to miss lana and miss moon for being my biggest cheerleaders ἍᥠⳠpart of the đŻđ˘đđ˛đąđđąđŚđŹđŤ collaboration series.
i. hiya, barbie! hi, ken!
Na Jaemin does not know that you exist.
Good looking, charismatic, and popular â itâs his world, and youâre just living in it. Or something like that. Youâre decently smart, somewhat funny, and not pretty enough to stand out, but not exactly hideous according to societal standards (source: those beauty quizzes in Seventeen magazine that you used to be obsessed with when you were thirteen and in desperate need of flirting tips). If he was the main lead, youâd probably be Extra #6, maybe Extra #2 on a good day.
By your calculations, the two of you should never cross paths, like two parallel lines. Wait, scratch that, you would probably never be aligned with anything that has to do with this guy. You saw him standing outside of the door of your shared accounting classroom during your fall semester, and he spent twenty five minutes editing his picture for Instagram and ended up late for the lecture. And he probably already spent even more time selecting the final photo to edit before you arrived to class and noticed him. Absolute idiot. Absolute handsome idiot, but idiot nonetheless. A grade A himbo with a grade C in financial accounting.Â
Okay, so scrap the parallel lines theory, maybe skew lines are a better way of explaining it. Yeah, that seems about right, the two of you are from completely different dimensions, never meant to interact or run parallel with each other. And once again, by this logic, your paths should never cross.
âY/N!â
You stand corrected.
Na Jaemin does know that you exist.
You suddenly remember that there was that one small group presentation in that very same aforementioned accounting class, and you were assigned to the same group as Jaemin. Armed with this rediscovered memory, you are going to revise your earlier response and say that the correct descriptor for your relationship is perpendicular lines. That sounds right. Final answer. Youâre locking it in.
Your paths should have only intersected once, the two of you should be going in different directions, and even though youâre in another class with him again for spring semester this year (since all freshmen with a business major has to take the same Gen. Ed. classes), not once have the two of you had a proper conversation with each other (He asked you to pass a note one time, but that barely counts). Jaemin should have forgotten you by now, and you should be continuing on with your side character life that youâre very much content with.
So then why on earth is he shouting your name like youâre old friends and causing what feels like every person within a one mile radius to stare at you?
Heâs unknowingly giving you your main character moment, and you very quickly realize that you do not feel like the Y/N in any one of those Gojo fanfics you read religiously at three in the morning when you should really be studying or sleeping.
Instead, you feel like a bug watching its impending doom as a Doc Marten boot starts to descend at an alarming speed and you canât even try to scuttle out of the way to avoid it. Frozen in your spot, you can only watch as your universityâs it boy skids to a stop in front of you after running across the grass and flashing you his million dollar smile. âHey, Y/N, right? We have ECON 13 together.â
Starstruck, your mind to mouth filter is completely shot, and all you manage to let out is a very uncool âUh huh.â
He laughs a little breathlessly, and you feel like all the oxygen has been knocked out of your lungs, too. Sheepishly rubbing the back of his neck, Jaemin tilts his head to the side slightly, the sunlight catching his profile perfectly, and your breath hitches in your throat once more.
âI know this is gonna sound really, uh, forward since we barely know each other and all, butââ
Youâre barely listening to him, your heart pounding in your chest and the blood rushing to your ears. Itâs pretty embarrassing to see how a mere stranger with a pretty face can affect you this much. You really thought you had a much stronger willpower than this, but itâs so goddamn unfair how this boy standing in front of you has the most perfectly sculpted face youâve ever seen. Plus, his eyelashes? Why the hell do boys always get the prettiest, thickest, and darkest lashes?Â
Meanwhile, youâre out here struggling to force your perpetually straight, stubby lashes into a curl that ends up lasting only a couple hours, even when you use waterproof mascara. You still end up with flat lashes and you have to feverishly scrub your eyes to remove the blasted makeup and lose a few cherished lashes in the process.
ââwith me?â Jaemin finishes, and you belatedly realize that you did not catch a single word that he said, too caught up in your inner monologue and too busy ogling. However, your heart flutters in your chest when you catch the last part of his question. Not to be too presumptuous, but it sounds like heâs asking you out. Why else would anyone randomly stop you like this and talk to you for this long? Youâre positively giddy at this revelation. This is your moment, the one youâve been waiting for your whole life, like Rapunzel waiting in her tower for the one to come and save her from her horribly mundane, repetitive life.
âOh! Um⌠yes?â Itâs a 50/50 chance between yes or no, and you hope thatâs the correct answer heâs looking for.Â
Jaeminâs face immediately brightens, and he turns his smile up another kilowatt, nearly blinding you. You grin back at him, squinting a little. This must be how Icarus felt when he flew towards the sun.Â
âOh shit, really? Youâre really agreeing to tutor me? Hyuckâyou know, our classâs peer TAâsaid I was a hopeless cause, and I would need way more one on one lessons outside of his hours and all that if I wanted to pass. And yeah, I know I could probably bitch at him until he caves since weâre kind of friends, but he would also hold this over my head, but he said you had the highest score on last weekâs practice midterm, so I thought, âhey, why not shoot my shot?ââ He directs another smile your way, pausing for a quick breath. Your mind is racing a mile a minute, and his smile isnât helping whatsoever as your heart decides to join in this race as well until it sinks when you finally process his words.
âWait, Donghyuck said that about me?â you manage to get out, a little dazed, and Jaemin confirms before eagerly continuing on with his chatter, but all you can do is stupidly nod as the word âTUTORâ spins around and around in your mind in bold, italicized, underlined mocking red letters in Times New Roman font, size 12, double spaced, MLA format, the whole shebang.
Of course, he only wants a tutor. What made you think that a boy like him would look twice at a girl like you? The only other time a guy has ever expressed interest in you is to share homework answers for Calculus back in 10th grade (For the record, all of his answers were completely wrong, but Sungchan was a cute distraction. Actually, the two of you became very good friends once you very quickly got over the fact that you were firmly placed in the friendzone. Heâs even dating one of your best friends now).
âAnyways, can I have your number? I can text you to match our schedules and figure out the times to meet up for the next couple of weeks before our next midterm.â You remain wide eyed, gazing at him like a deer caught in the headlights and still attempting to fully understand everything that has just happened.
Jaemin looks at you expectantly, his hand outstretched towards you with his phone tucked between his fingers. The device dangles there for an additional ten seconds that probably isnât socially acceptable. Grab the phone, you scream at yourself silently, but your body doesnât seem to want to cooperate. You blink slowly once. Then twice.
âOr, I can just⌠uh, type in your number if you tell me,â Jaemin says awkwardly, his smile wilting slightly as he shifts from one foot to the other under your unwavering gaze and slowly retracting his hand. Finally, you come to your senses as you quickly spring into action and snatch the phone from him, tapping in your digits and adding in your name and shared class before saving your contact.
âHere,â you mutter, returning his phone, and he gives you a relieved grin. You clutch onto the strap of your backpack a little tighter, cursing the way your heart skips a beat. âI should be free most weekday afternoons since I prefer to take all morning classes, but let me know when youâre free and we can work something out.â
âAwesome! Thank you so much, Y/N, youâre a life saver.â Jaemin beams at you, touching your shoulder briefly and you feel that very same place on your body erupt in flames as your face heats up in a similar manner. âIâll text you tonight, yeah?â
You can only numbly nod, subconsciously raising your hand and waving at him, and Jaemin chuckles, flashing his pearly whites at you again, before he saunters off and blends into a group of other equally pretty and popular students, a few of whom look over at you with vague interest before turning their attention back to the boy who just joined them.
What have you gotten yourself into?
ii. you want to go for a ride?
âIâm getting sus vibes from him.â
Flicking her long dark hair over her shoulder, Lana takes a long sip of her wintermelon milk tea with honey pearls, a spitting image of that one infamous Starbucks meme of your schoolâs alumni, Hyungwon (His picture can still be found floating through discord chats, and youâre ninety percent sure your school used it in one of their recruitment brochures at one point). Sheâs sprawled out on the beanbag in the corner of your shared apartmentâs living room, her HP laptop covered in sailor moon stickers balanced across her thighs (She swears HP is the best laptop brand, but you donât trust electronics advice from anyone who canât even use a toaster properly).
âHave you even spoken to Jaemin? How exactly are you getting sus vibes from him?â Moon jumps in, glancing over the top of her MacBook as she takes a quick break from her latest coding project regarding polynomials, matrices, and a bunch of other math terminology you rather not think about. You left all that arithmetic jargon back in high school after you got a 5 on both AP calculus exams and got to skip all required math classes for your accounting major (Sungchan wasnât so lucky).
âHeâs a fratboy finance major.â Lana rolls her eyes.
âPoint taken, but werenât you into that senior, Jaehyun? Heâs one of them. You called him your soulmate,â you interject, and she splutters for a few seconds before putting her hand up in protest.
âListen, I was going through a perpetual mental breakdown at the beginning of this semester. It doesnât count. You try being a pharmacy major. Thank god I switched out to English. My mental state was compromised, and I wasnât thinking straight.â
âWhat do you mean not thinking straight? Lana, you literally chose the straightest, most heterosexual man out there.â Moon jibes, closing her laptop now with an air of conceding defeat. You have to give her props for trying to work on some assignments, but you already knew no one was going to get any work done tonight. Itâs a Thursday night anyway, which means you have until Tuesday to get all the homework assigned today done. You can always work on them on Monday night and inevitably curse yourself for not getting it done earlier when you end up pulling an all nighter and show up to your 8 a.m. international marketing tactics class with raccoon eyes.Â
âThis is bullying, and we are on an anti-bullying campus,â Lana complains, giving the two of you the stink eye before leaning over and lightly shoving the snoozing boy sprawled across the floor next to her. âWake up, Yang. Moon and Y/N gang up on me when youâre not awake to absorb all our gentle bullying.â
The boy in question sits upright, bleary eyes and the drying ink from his notes now decorating his cheek, a lasting reminder of the makeshift pillow for his impromptu nap. Yawning, he stretches his arms, rubbing his face and making an even bigger mess of smears. âWhatâd I miss?â
âWe were just discussing Lanaâs tragic crush on Jaehyun last year,â you say, and she makes a strangled noise next to you. âWere you up late sewing again?â
âYes,â Yangyang grumbles, âYou would think Kaneki would be so easy to cosplay since he wears all black, but the mask is taking forever to make.â
âCanât one of your sugar daddies buy one for you?â
âWhat sugar daddies? If I had one, I wouldnât be stuck in here trying to balance equations,â he moans, crumpling up another sheet filled up with scribbles and his latest attempts at answering the second to last problem for organic chemistry.
âMy bad, I thought you would have some from your cosplay account.â Moon shrugs, rummaging through her large soccer mom purse for a snack and triumphantly pulling out a box of green tea Hello Pandas. âYou have like 100k followers on there.â
âMy audience demographic is weebs.â Yangyang deadpans. âHow many weebs do you know who are rich enough to send five thousand dollars every week to a struggling college student?â
âWait, weâre going off topic right now. What do you know about Jaemin, Yang?â Lana cuts in, and Moon nods in agreement (You try not to look too interested, but fail miserably, no doubt).
âJaemin Na? Iâve never talked to him personally, but thereâs always stories about him and his friends. Jeno is on the baseball team and notorious for his body count. Heâs the one that takes up like 30% of our universityâs anonymous confessions Twitter account. This is his insta, but heâs not really active on social media.â Yangyang passes his phone around for the three of you to see Jenoâs Instagram. Thereâs a whopping total of fourteen posts, and every picture of him with someone of the opposite sex features a different girl. Instant red flag.
âLia is pretty big on Tik Tok,â Yangyang continues, grabbing his phone to pull up her account to show all of you. âSheâs pretty and is actually really good at singing, but she's basically trying to be the next Addison Rae. Jimin models, and sheâs going by Karina nowadays. I heard she tried to trademark that name or something. She posts dancing Tik Toks. She and Yeonjun collab a lot. He walks for New York fashion week and has a Tik Tok for dancing, too. Iâm like 70% sure theyâre only dating to boost their views. Somi is the most popular one out of them. Sheâs the blonde one. Sheâs pretty talented and I heard she signed onto the same company as the Blackpink House. Sheâs even done a makeup video with Vogue recently.â
âAnd Jaemin has a pretty large social following. He takes decent pictures, and thatâs what he insists his insta is for, but letâs be real, the majority of his followers are there for his face. You should see his TikTok. He literally just recorded himself looking at the camera and put some generic caption, and he racked up like seven hundred thousand likes,â Yangyang grumbles, pulling up his account to show you all the video in question. âLike literally, what the hell is this? I have to put in so many hours making my outfits and editing my videos and all he does is smile and paste âDonât have a valentine again⌠hope this will change soonâ on top, and the preteens are foaming at the mouth.â
âWow, jumpscare warning next time you show me him please.â Lana wrinkles her nose at the repeating offensive clip. Yangyang merely shoves his phone even closer to her in response, and she flips him off.
âHey, youâre the one who asked about him. Why are you suddenly interested in him? Is this your Jaehyun 2.0 phase starting up?â Yangyang grins, and Lana flicks his forehead in retaliation.
âShut up, when are you guys gonna let that die? Besides, itâs Y/N whoâs interested, not me,â Lana retorts, and immediately, the spotlight is back on you. You cough awkwardly, feeling a bit uncomfortable with all the attention.
âUh, he just asked if I would tutor himâŚâ
âAnd you said yes?â Yangyang sounds scandalized and utterly betrayed. âWhy would you willingly fraternize with the enemy like that?â
âWhat enemy? I didnât even know he knew I existed until this very recent development occurred.âÂ
âInfluencers like him are instant enemies to me, and as my friend, heâs your enemy by association. I can't believe youâre helping the competition,â Yangyang sniffs.
You donât have the guts to tell them all that the only reason you accepted his tutor proposal is because you got ahead of yourself and despite all the odds and signs, thought Jaemin was asking you out. You know your friends wonât make fun of you (too badly), but that is completely humiliating, and you will be taking that to the grave.
âItâs just tutoring, donât be so dramatic,â you scoff, making a face at him. âHe texted me yesterday, and weâre meeting up at the library later today, and I reserved a private study room for two hours.â
âOooh, so itâs a study date?â Moon teases, and your cheeks betray you with the amount of heat now emanating off of them.
âShut up, itâs literally just tutoring. Weâre going over supply and demand curves.âÂ
âNo, back up, he texted you yesterday and you didnât tell us about him until today?â Lana interjects, holding up her hand and putting on a faux offended expression. âWhat kind of friend are you? Weâre supposed to tell each other every nitty gritty detail about our love lives! Like Sungchan texts Moon good morning texts at eight in the morning, and by 8:30 a.m., weâre already getting a play by play about it in the group chat!â
Moon turns pink and opens her mouth before deciding against it and quietly shuts it. Yangyang silently laughs next to Lana, his shoulders shaking (You decide that you shouldnât tell them Jaemin actually asked you in person to tutor him three days ago or else, Lana will chew you out even more).
You protest, flailing your arms around slightly in exasperation. âThereâs literally zero development in my love life! I have nothing going on in it, and I can guarantee you that he does not see me in that light whatsoever.â
âYeah, okay, sure.â Lana looks wholly unconvinced, and your two friends look back and forth between the two of you like two kids watching their divorced parents fight. âSo⌠Do you need help picking out an outfit for tomorrow?â
â⌠Yeah.â
iii. sure, ken. jump in!
âHey, Y/N!âÂ
Jaemin loudly whispers a little breathlessly as he drops his bag onto the table and slumps into the chair next to yours, his chest heaving slightly. Startled, you jerk up in your chair, heart skipping a beat when you realize heâs here. You were supposed to be in a private study room, but there was a group of boys already in there, and as the most non-confrontational person to walk this earth, you decided to cut your losses and take a table nearby.
âDid you wait long? I got caught up outside the library when Somi stopped me and completely forgot,â he says apologetically, pulling out his textbooks, and you shake your head, giving him a shy smile.
âNo, itâs alright. I was already here anyway, and I got some extra studying done.â You gesture towards the papers and notebooks strewn across the tableâs surface, covered in your notes from todayâs classes. âShould we start with todayâs lesson? How much did you understand in class today?â
âMaybe the first five minutes of it only.â
You pause, glancing over at him. âProfessor Hwang was ten minutes late to class.â
âExactly.â Jaemin nods, and you stifle a laugh. He grins at you. âI donât think you realize how much of a hopeless cause I am when you agreed to tutor me.â
âWe can start from the beginning then. You have four weeks until the midterm, and we can go through every lesson weâve had so far. Iâll make up a study schedule if you give me yours. And if you continue to go to Donghyuckâs tutoring hours too, you should hopefully be able to catch up and do well on the midterm.â
Jaemin wordlessly pulls up his class schedule on his phone, and you plug them into a Google calendar that you quickly share to his email. âSo, I color coded your classes in green, and my classes are in pink. Do you have any other things that we need to work around?â
He peers over at your screen, scanning the contents. âI have my weekly frat meetings on Tuesday nights and mandatory events on other nights.â
âAlright, you can put them in and weâll figure out meeting times,â you say, pushing your laptop towards him and he starts to add in his extracurricular activities.
 âParty from 8 pm to 1 am?â you read skeptically, your eyes scanning over the event he tacked in under this weekâs Friday.
âYeah, canât miss it,â Jaemin says, typing in more events and making sure to color code them in blue. âDonât you have things to do on Friday night too?â
âUh, maybe grab a poke bowl from the dining hall to go and watch another Banana Fish episode,â you say awkwardly, fiddling with the small Gojo keychain you have attached to your pouch.
Jaemin stops, looking over at you. âYou watch Banana Fish?â
Your cheeks grow warm. â⌠Yeah, why?âÂ
His eyes light up and he asks eagerly, âDid you see the latest episode? When Golzine leaves Arthur in charge?â
The two of you continue discussing the plot as he finishes up adding in his schedule for the next four weeks, finally nudging the laptop back towards you. âDo you need to add in your stuff too?â
âMm no, itâs fine. I already put in my classes, and Iâm not in any clubs or sororities,â you answer, making sure to input Donghyuckâs tutoring hours as well before scanning over the calendar and pinpointing areas where heâs free for at least one to two hours. âOkay, should we start with meeting three times a week?â
âHuh, you memorized Hyuckâs hours?â Jaemin notes, giving you a sly smile as he moves closer to look at the schedule.
âHuh? No, donât you always know your professorsâ and TAsâ office hours?â you ask, looking up and are immediately startled after underestimating the proximity between you and the beautiful boy next to you.Â
âNo, Iâm not a nerd,â he snorts lightly, and you laugh awkwardly, trying to steer the conversation in a different direction and put a little more distance between the two of you before you go into cardiac arrest, âRight, yeah, well, anywayââ
âYou were also interested when I said Hyuck mentioned you before,â Jaemin says suddenly, sitting up straight before a wide grin spreads across his face as he loudly exclaims, âYou totally have a crush on him!â
âQuiet down!â You immediately shush him, the tips of your ears burning as everyone within a 40 feet radius in the library is now staring at the two of you. Youâve never received this much attention before, and you very quickly realize that you absolutely hate it. You loudly whisper-protest, stumbling over your words in a panic, âIâI donât have a crush on him!â
âOh, come on, your face is getting hot and youâre stuttering. You do too like him,â Jaemin laughs softly, propping his elbow onto the table and resting his chin on the palm of his hand as he gives you a once over. âI could totally make you into his type.â
âWhatâs that supposed to mean?â You ask hotly, cheeks burning even more when you feel his eyes graze over your figure.
âOh, itâll be so much fun. We can go to the mall and pick out some cute clothes for you, and then swing by the hair shop. Youâre definitely using the wrong conditioner and shampoo,â Jaemin continues, eying your hair for a quick second.
âWait, wait, weâre just here for tutoring, what are you even talking about?â You ask, bewildered before grasping a stray strand of your hair between your fingers. âAnd what do you mean Iâm using the wrong shampoo?â
âAnd conditioner,â Jaemin pipes up, picking up his phone to search up some better brands he would recommend. âWhat have you been using? 2 in 1 Head and Shoulders?â
âNo,â you huff softly, your ears growing even warmer at the accusation. âI just use whatever my mom buys in bulk at Costco.â
âOkay, well, you should use this instead,â Jaemin says, showing his phone screen to you, and your eyes widen slightly when you note the price tag.
âI cannot be forking over nearly seventy dollars on shampoo and conditioner,â you say incredulously, pushing his phone back towards him and waving your hand dismissively. âAnd thereâs no way Iâm going to spend even more money on new clothes.â
âOkay, fine, I think I have some unopened bottles from sponsored deals that I can give to you,â Jaemin sighs, opening up his text messages to find his friendsâ group chat. âOr my friends would have some good ones, too. Maybe we can get you some of their free clothes from sponsorships, too.â
âYou guys just get free clothes?âÂ
âYeah,â he shrugs, glancing over at you. âOn second thought, Karina and Lia arenât the same size as you, so you wonât fit them. We can just order some basic pieces online or something for starters.â
âWeâWe arenât doing this,â you loudly whisper back to him, hyper aware of the other students around you who keep glancing over at Jaemin. âLetâs just focus on making this schedule and helping you pass your midterm.â
âOh, please, doll, itâd be fun. Just think of it as a payment for your tutoring,â Jaemin persuades you, scooting closer to you and pressing his thigh against yours lightly. Your breath hitches in your throat at the pet name and his touch. Youâve never been this close to any boy before, let alone one as attractive as Jaemin.
âYouâll look so pretty, I know the perfect outfits to make for you. And I can teach you how to get Hyuckâs attention, too,â he continues, nudging you lightly, and youâre still dazed, unable to get over the fact that heâs impossibly close to you, close enough for you to count the pretty lashes framing his even prettier eyes. You wonder what itâs like to be that beautiful, what itâs like to have people falling at your feet, what itâs like to mesmerize everyone the second you walk into a room.
Honestly, if Jaemin asked you to jump, your only response would be âhow high.â
âIf I agree to this, will you finally pay attention?â you sigh, and Jaemin instantly brightens up, nodding and giving you another one of those smiles that makes your stomach flip flop. Your Achillesâ heel is one very persistent boy who goes by the name of Na Jaemin, and he has hit you with a direct bullseye.
âYes, Iâll be a model student, doll.â
You hesitate for a split second before relenting. âOkay, fine, deal.â
iv. iâm a barbie girl in the barbie world.
Jaemin is easy on the eyes, but currently proving to be very difficult for your nerves during your fourth tutoring session. Your wardrobe has increased in style and size by now, and youâre dressed in a pretty lilac top that wraps around you and accentuates your curves and hides what needs to be hidden perfectly. Your jeans may dig a little more than youâd like into your stomach, but itâs your fault that you chose to wear your photo jeans instead of your sitting jeans. Also, your hair has never looked better, all thanks to the boy seated next to you.
âNo, when there is a low supply, thereâs a high demand. They directly affect each other,â you try to re-explain to the boy next to you, drawing out the line graph once again. He stares down at the familiar graph before looking at the written practice problem in front of him. Professors must have an insane amount of patience, you silently think to yourself.Â
You sigh. âLetâs put it this way. You and Jeno want to buy the same shirt, but thereâs only one left in the right size. So thatâs two people who are demanding the one shirt. And the store only has one shirt in its supply. So how would you describe this situation?â
âOh.â The look of realization flashes across Jaeminâs face as your example easily snaps the puzzle pieces into place for him. âThereâs a high demand and low supply. Too many people want the shirt, but thereâs not enough shirts.â
âYes, you got it!â You cheer quietly, mindful of your location at one of the libraryâs tables. âNow try reading through the practice problems and draw the appropriate supply and demand graphs for each one.â
 âAnd when Iâm done with this, we can take a break, and Iâll teach you how to do makeup. My friends will help,â Jaemin says idly as he reads through the first problem again.Â
Your stomach lurches slightly at that, and you hesitate. âYour friends?â
âYeah, you know, Jeno, Karina, Lia, and Yeonjun. Somi, too, but sheâs been busy. I can teach you basic skincare and makeup, but the girls will have to help you with the rest,â he says casually, scrawling down his first answer and the corresponding graph.
You swallow hard, your voice croaking slightly before you hastily clear it. âAre you sure? Do you think theyâll like me?â
âYeah, donât worry about it, doll. Youâre like a puppy, and everyone likes those,â Jaemin mumbles idly, eyebrows furrowing as he rereads the second problem.
âA puppy?â You donât know whether to be offended or not yet.
Oh, you know, just that youâre cute and all,â Jaemin laughs lightly, starting to write down his next answer, and your heart nearly stops in your chest. You force yourself to breathe regularly again.
âOh, I see,â you start to answer coolly, but stuttering on the last word, internally cursing your tongue at the last stumble. You try to sit calmly and relax for the rest of the tutoring session as Jaemin slowly makes his way through the practice packet, but the knot in your stomach continues to tangle even more, growing ever bigger. Maybe you should just tell Jaemin that lunch didnât agree with you and cut this meetup short.Â
But that means less time spent with Jaemin. Maybe it wouldnât be so bad. Jaemin is nice, so his friends should be as well, you reason with yourself. Thereâs no need to be nervous. Even if theyâre all incredibly beautiful, hot people with the most unapproachable aura you have ever encountered.
Like honestly, how is someone like Karina even real? Her face could start a modern day equivalent of the Trojan War. She is literally the face blueprint for every main female character you play in your otome games.
Turns out, Karina is even more gorgeous up close. Ridiculously close with the way sheâs inches from your face as she swipes on some blush on the apples of your cheeks. You never thought youâd see the resident it girl here for you, standing in the middle of your dorm room, let alone have an actual conversation with her that extended beyond a polite hello when she stops by for Giselle. Itâs already been 45 minutes, and your nerves still havenât calmed down.
âYou just need to apply a little bit here and here on both your cheeks,â she instructs you, pointing towards your cheekbones and carefully applying the rosy powder to the same areas. She pauses in the application momentarily so that you can type out a few notes into your phone covering her directions. âYou can go heavier if you want the cute sunburn, Sabrina Carpenter look, but if you do too much, youâll end up looking like my ex.â
âWhat?â Youâre startled, glancing over at her and nearly getting blinded once again by her lethal face card. She laughs lightly, giving you a slight smile. âA clown.âÂ
âOh, got it,â you chuckle, albeit nervously, shooting her a quick smile. âIâll make sure to not do that.â
âRelax, itâs easy. Just a bit of makeup here and there, and youâll be fine. All I do is some mascara, falsies, and a good lippie when Iâm lazy, and Iâm out the door in ten minutes,â Lia jumps in, holding several different tubes of lip tints.
âAre you sure? Thatâs really it?â You ask hesitantly, glancing over the various makeup products strewn over your desk. It looks a lot more complicated than what she had just described.
âWell, maybe you might need a bit more, like concealer and foundation. And some bronzer and heavy contouring. But just stick to the skincare routine and itâll help lessen it,â Karina sighs, dabbing some highlighter to the tip of your nose before seeing the uncertain look in your eyes, adding hastily, âBut itâs so worth it, trust. Youâll look so pretty, and it comes with so many perks. Girl math is knowing you can go out with no money and just your face card.â
âHey, youâre friends with Yangyang?â Lia pipes up, noticing the photo strip you have pinned on your corkboard, nestled between the various Mystic Messenger Seven fanart and Zorro art prints.
âHuh? Oh yeah, I am. You know him?â You answer, and she nods before leaning in and evenly applying a thin layer of periwinkle tint on your lips. âYeah, weâre in the same German class. Do you know if heâs seeing anyone?â
Well, you definitely canât tell her about the raging heart on he has for his best friend, but itâs not like he really is seeing anyone either. You do vaguely remember Yangyang saying Lia was pretty and talented during his quick 5 minute minute class to Jaemin and his friends, so itâs not like he hates her either.
âNo, heâs not,â you answer, hoping you made the right choice, and Liaâs face visibly brightens. âOh, really? Thatâs great.â
âOkay, weâre done.â Karina announces, stepping back and holding up a mirror for you. âNot bad, right?â
âOh, wow,â you suck in a breath, nearly gasping in surprise as you peer at the glass. You almost donât recognize yourself. The contouring lifts up your face, slimming it down, and the blush gives you a pretty pink hue that makes you look sun kissed. Your lower lashes have nearly doubled in length with the mascara, giving you a pretty babydoll look. Karina had perfectly applied a set of falsies for you, framing your eyes delicately, and the shimmery eyeshadow and soft winged eyeliner accentuates your eyes even more. Your lips are the prettiest shade of pink, tinted and glossy.
You canât believe it is your own reflection staring back at you.
âNow put this outfit on,â Lia says with a knowing smile, placing a shopping bag in your lap. âJaemin picked it out.â
âOh, really? Alright,â you manage to mumble out, dazed and still admiring yourself in the hand mirror. Karina laughs softly, nudging Lia before moving towards your door. âWe have to get to a sorority meeting now, but I hope you like it, doll. And make sure to practice.â
âI love it,â you say breathlessly, grazing your fingertips against the cool glass, still in disbelief. âAnd I definitely will practice.â
âMm, good, text us if you need any help! And send progress pics! We want to see how itâs going,â Lia answers, waving over her shoulder before the two of them exit your dorm. Sitting there alone, you stare at your reflection for a little longer, admiring yourself. You feel so pretty.Â
You finally remember the paper bag on your lap, and you immediately dig into it, pulling out a flowy floral sundress. Itâs beautiful, and you quickly tug off your jeans and tshirt before going to your drawers to dig around for the appropriate bra for the dress. You manage to find it, snapping on the bra around yourself from the front before twisting it until the clasp is against your back. You hastily push your arms through the straps, tugging on either side until itâs on perfectly. You suck in a quick breath, internally preparing yourself for the battle with the next piece of clothing, a.k.a. your worst enemy: spandex. Youâve familiarized yourself with the awkward jig you have to do around your dorm until youâve wriggled into the tight elastic enough so that it sits in the correct spot and sucks in all the right places.
At last, you won the war, but you feel sweaty now, flopping back onto your bed for a quick break. You flap your hands in front of your face, thanking whoever decided to invent setting spray. You grab your deodorant spray and douse yourself in a heavy dose of it before picking up the sundress and slipping it over your head. To your great relief, it slides on perfectly, and you quickly shuffle over to the full length mirror hanging on the back of your door. You straighten out the dress and quickly pat down any strand of hair knocked askew from your latest struggles before giving a smile to the mirror.
Dare you say it? You look pretty.
Youâve never looked this pretty before.
You happily take out the dainty gold heart necklace you had carefully tucked into your top desk drawer, struggling for a few seconds before you manage to clasp it around your neck. You quickly pull the pendant towards the front before slipping on the strappy sandals you left next to your desk. You grab the cute purse you bought last week, now packed with the perfect essentials, and give yourself one last once over.
You have nowhere to go, but you decide to take a walk to the dining hall. After all, youâre dressed up so nicely, makeup done so perfectly, you canât waste it on another night stuffing your face with hot Cheetos and rewatching the first season of Haikyuu!!. Opening your door, you step out and nearly run into someone.Â
âOh, finally, youâre done, doll. I thought you died in there or someâŚâ
His eyes widening in utter shock, his next word dies on the tip of his tongue when Jaemin sees you standing in front of him. His mouth falls open slightly before he quickly closes it to swallow harshly, his throat running dry. Heâs never seen you like this before, never imagined that youâd be this pretty. He inhales sharply, stiffening slightly as his eyes rake over your figure, seeing how the dress perfectly accentuates your figure, and settles on your face.
âJaemin? What are you doing here?â Your eyes widen slightly before your cheeks grow warm when you notice his stunned reaction.
âUm,â he croaks out, voice cracking before he quickly swallows again, silently cursing when puberty decides to make a belated appearance. âLia texted me that you were done, so I wanted to see how it went. You look⌠wow.â
Your cheeks heat up even further, and you laugh a little nervously, tucking a stray strand of hair behind your ear. âR-really? Itâs not too much?â
âNo!â He immediately blurts out before his cheeks flush carmine. âIâI mean, you look really good. You should dress like this more often.â
You canât stop the smile spreading across your face, and Jaeminâs heart flip flops in his chest. âReally? Thank you, I will then.â
âOf course, really. I picked the dress myself after all,â He tries to joke before hastily clearing his throat. âDo you have somewhere to be?â
âOh, no, I donât. I was just going to go to the dining hall and grab some food,â you answer awkwardly, shifting your purse over your shoulder slightly and tightening your fingers around its strap.
âLet me take you out for dinner.â Jaemin blurts out, a little high pitched, mentally facepalming at how he sounds. âI mean, we can go over some of the harder problems in that packet since I probably need more studying anyway, and Iâll teach you a couple more dating tricks.â
âSure, okay, that sounds good.â You give him a wider beam, and Jaemin feels his heart beat a little faster. Maybe you donât need that much teaching from him after all. Seems like youâre a quick learner.
v. life is plastic, itâs fantastic!
âThe only thing youâre fucking is stupid.â
âShut the hell up, Yeonjun. At least Iâm not sticking my dick in crazy.â
You watch the light argument going on between Jeno and Yeonjun in amusement. You and Jaemin had just finished your ninth tutoring session two hours ago, and you think heâs getting on track to actually scoring a decent grade for the next midterm. You were initially going to head towards Lana and Moonâs dorm for your weekly anime show marathon, but Jaemin insisted that you stop by the Alpha Sigma Psi house for a small party. Giselle and Karina are both part of that house, so you figured it couldnât hurt to make a quick appearance. Good thing you spent some time touching up your makeup before todayâs tutoring session.
âHey, doll! Join the photo,â Jaemin calls out to you, gesturing you towards the area he and the rest of his friends are standing. You see another really pretty girlâMinjeong, was it?âstanding on the side, holding up a phone and preparing to take the picture.
âOh, no, itâs okay, I can just take the photo instead,â you laugh awkwardly, extending your hand out towards Minjeong, but Jeno gently nudges you forward, âNo way, you never take pics with us. Just one, come on, Y/N.â
âYeah, join us!â Jaemin says brightly, tugging you towards him and you stumble slightly, falling forward into his chest. You quickly catch yourself, hands suddenly pressed against his chest, and the blood rushes to your face.
âOh my god, Iâm so sorry,â you start to babble, trying to push yourself away before Jaemin quickly wraps his arm around your waist. âNope, youâre staying here, itâs just a few pics, please, doll?â
âIâI mean, I donât reallyââ
You start to say before Minjeongâs voice cuts through the air. âOkay, Iâm taking it in five seconds now. So get ready and pose or be ready to live with the consequences on Insta forever.âÂ
Everyone immediately shuffles around, and youâre squeezed even tighter against Jaemin, and you just know that he can feel your heart pounding rapidly against his chest.
âSmile, doll,â Jaemin laughs gently, squeezing your hip lightly and you inhale sharply at that, your heart rate spiking and increasing exponentially. You muster up a few shaky smiles as the flash starts to go off.
After a few more pictures, you manage to untangle yourself from the group and hurriedly go towards Minjeong. âI can take the pictures, you should join in.â
She immediately brightens up at that, giving you a kilowatt smile as she hands you the phone and slips into your original position in between Jaemin and Karina. âOh, thanks, Y/N.â
You wait a few moments for everyone to get readjusted before you begin to snap some photos, having already mastered this from the previous hang outs youâve joined and knowing how to take the best angles for everyone, including all the 0.5 zoom out ones. After taking some additional group and solo photos for the girls, youâre finally free of your duties. Your eyes widen when you check the time on your phone, and you hurriedly make your way over to Jaemin.
âHey, I need to get going now. I have to get to Lana and Moonâs dorm, so Iâll see you later,â you say quickly, already beginning to brush past him as the realization sets in that itâs been over an hour when you told your friends that you would only be fifteen minutes late.
âWait, what? Hey, hold on, doll.â Jaemin reaches out to you, but you slip past him, calling over your shoulder. âSorry, Iâm late!â
He strides over, soon matching your pace as you speed walk back to the freshman dormitories. âCanât you slow down a little bit? Itâs not like you all havenât seen these episodes before, plus we watched a few of them together after our last tutoring session.â
âYeah, but Iâm over an hour late,â you stress, slightly frazzled now as you hurriedly type out an apology to send to the group chat.
âJust breathe, okay? Youâll be fine. Theyâre your friends. They should understand,â Jaemin reassures you, grabbing your hand and you freeze slightly. He notices your stop and teases lightly, âI said slow down, not stop. Whatâs wrong?â
âN-Nothing,â you stammer out a little too quickly, your heart thumping wildly in your chest. Heâs holding your hand. Na Jaemin is hand in hand with you, fingers intertwined. You almost want to pinch yourself to see if youâre dreaming.
âWell, alright then, come on, let me walk you back,â Jaemin laughs before tugging you along. âYou can help me pick out which pictures to post on Insta along the way, too, yeah?â
âOh, sure,â you say breathlessly, your heart rate quickening to an embarrassing speed when he squeezes your hand gently, and you nesrly trip over your own feet.
âPerfect, so what about this one?â He holds up his phone to show you the picture you had taken for the group earlier, and you falter slightly. Why are you feeling a little disappointed with his choice?
Jaemin notices your hesitation and says a little softly, âI know youâre a private person. So I thought youâd prefer if I posted the group photo you took. You always take the best pictures for me, too. You know my good side the best. And itâd be weird if Hyuck saw, too, right? But did you want the other photo? I mean, if you really want it, I can..?â
âNo!â You hurriedly say to reassure him, squeezing his hand lightly. âNo, youâre right. I donât want my picture out there. And um, yeah, that definitely wouldnât be good if Hyuck saw.â
Jaemin gives you a relieved smile. âYeah, exactly. Youâre not upset, right, doll? We still have that fun pic of us and our homemade pizzas from earlier that I posted on my finsta. I didnât know making pizzas would be that easy.â
âOf course not, donât worry about it,â you laugh softly, continuing to walk back to the freshman dormitories, and Jaemin swings your joined hands between the two of you freely.
âMm, Iâm getting free cooking and tutoring lessons in exchange for dating tips. Two for the price of one is quite the good deal for me, right?â Jaemin teases lightly, and you let out another laugh.
âYouâre right, it is. You better step up your game then.â
âOh, just you wait, youâll get dating tips and a boyfriend, so weâll be even,â Jaemin chuckles softly, squeezing your hand, and the butterflies erupt in your stomach once again, and you muster up the courage to say something a little more teasing.
âIs that a guarantee?â
âWell, you have a demand, and I must supply, right?â
ââŚI donât think thatâs how it quite goes, Jaemin. Maybe you need a few more tutoring sessions.â
âAll I hear is that you want to spend more time with me,â Jaemin laughs, giving you the prettiest smile, and your cheeks warm up even more, heart stuttering in your chest. Speechless, you let him continue on, his chattering filling the air as you listen with quiet content, your hand securely tucked in his for the remainder of the walk back.
vi. you can brush my hair.
Jaemin sits on the edge of his chair across from you at the table in the dorm common area, anxiously tapping his fingers against the flat surface. You are down to the last page of the mock exam packet, carefully going over his work with a red pen. You made minimal marks on the papers, a stark contrast to the very first practice exam he had worked on near the start of your tutoring. At that point in time, he didnât even get to the end of the exam.
âAmazing.â
You say in awe, scanning through the last problem Jaemin had completed before tallying up his final score and calculating his results. âI canât believe it. You got an 87.â
âNo fucking way,â Jaemin is wide eyed, staring at you in disbelief, and you give him a wide smile, sliding the packet over to him, so that he can look over the exam and notes youâve written for the problems he missed.Â
âYes fucking way.â
âHoly shit, this is insane,â Jaemin breathes out, carefully reading through each page, and to his utter amazement, he understands every note and explanation you had added next to each incorrect question. He looks up at you, beaming, âI really got a B+?â
âYou did,â you confirm, smiling back at him. âAnd who knows? It might become an A if the exam gets curved.â
âOh my god, I owe you my life,â Jaemin chuckles, staring down at the graded exam in front of him, still in disbelief. âSeriously, doll, thank you so much.â
âOh, of course, anytime,â you laugh sheepishly, twisting the rings adorning your fingers around nervously before averting your attention elsewhere, standing up to go towards the adjacent communal kitchen and carrying your filled tote bag with you. âAâAnyway, I brought some things to celebrate a job well done so far.â
âAnd how did you know I wouldâve done well? What if I completely bombed that exam?â Jaemin teases you, standing up and following after you.
âI donât know, I guess I just believed in you,â you stutter out, cheeks warming up as you set down your tote bag on the counter, unable to look him in the eyes, and he freezes, mulling over your words silently.
You believe in him? Someone whoâs a hopeless cause? He honestly didnât even believe in himself, he thinks to himself, his chest constricting uncomfortably, a foreign feeling making its entrance known to him, constricting around his heart. He inhales sharply, shoving it away with an easy going smile. âIs that so? Well, thanks, Y/N. And what are we doing now?â
âMaking pancakes,â you answer, busying yourself with pulling out the ingredients from your tote bag. âYou need to be well fed before the midterm. Your brain needs food. And the class is at 8 am, and neither of us are not morning people, so this is as good as itâs gonna get.â
âPancakes?â Jaemin echoes after you, glancing at the various items strewn across the counterâs surface. âDoes it really take this many ingredients? Isnât it just the box mix and water?â
âThatâs the short cut way. Weâre making pancakes from scratch,â you laugh softly, taking out a mixing bowl and whisk along with the measuring cups and spoons.Â
âBut why? Itâs so much easier the other way.â Jaemin whines softly, and you chuckle lightly. âTrust me, itâs worth the effort.â
You hand the one cup measuring utensil and bowl to Jaemin and nudge him towards the flour. âHelp me measure out two cups of flour.â
âAlright,â he sighs, opening the bag of flour and carefully scooping out the first cup, scraping off any excess before dumping it into the bowl before repeating the process. âWhat next?â
âFour tablespoons of sugar,â you answer, handing him the sugar and appropriate measuring utensil before working on measuring four teaspoons of baking powder and a quarter of a teaspoon of baking soda. You pour those to the mixing bowl as Jaemin quietly measures the sugar and adds it in as well before waiting for your next instructions. You quickly drop in half of a teaspoon of salt before pushing the bowl towards him. âNow whisk this together gently, please.â
Jaemin busies himself with combining the dry ingredients as you take out half a stick of butter from the fridge (The one labeled with your name, of course. Youâre no food thief, unlike someone whoâs been stealing other peopleâs leftover takeout). You microwave it to get four tablespoons of melted butter before making your way to Jaeminâs side.
âOkay, now make a well in the center of it,â you say, and Jaemin clumsily makes an indent in the dry mixture before looking towards you for approval.
âPerfect, now add in two teaspoons of vanilla extract and crack the egg into it there,â you instruct him, and he obediently follows your directions. You measure out one and three quarters cups of milk and add it to the well before also pouring in the melted butter.
âDo I just whisk it together now?â Jaemin asks, picking up the whisk again, and you nod.
âYes, mix it all together. Itâs fine if thereâs a few lumps, but it should be smooth overall.â Your eyes trail over his face, and you stifle a small laugh. âYou got a little something on your cheek.â
âWhat?â Jaemin looks up, pausing in his whisking and you canât help but giggle, staring at the flour dusting his cheek. âThereâs flour on your face.â
âOh, really? Can you wipe it off for me?â Jaemin laughs softly, attempting to brush at it with his shoulder but failing to reach that high.
âOh, s-sure,â you stammer slightly, your hand quivering slightly as you outstretch your fingers and gingerly brush your fingertips against the apple of his cheek. His sun kissed skin is warm beneath your fingertips, and your breath hitches in your throat before you gently wipe away the remaining residue. You can feel his gaze searing into your face, but you refuse to look him directly in the eyes.
âThere, all done,â you murmur, hastily pulling away and taking a step back. Jaemin lets out a breath he didnât even realize he was holding in. He clears his throat, setting down the bowl. âI think this is all done, too.â
âOh, great, thatâs great,â you say, immediately focusing on the bowl before carrying it with you towards the stove, turning it on. âLetâs set this to medium-low heat. And Iâll add some butter to the pan, so the pancake wonât stick.â
Jaemin hands you the leftover butter and pan for you to set onto the stove. You use the spatula to move around a pat of butter, coating the pan nicely. Once the stove is ready and the butter starts to sizzle slightly, you pour a quarter cup of the batter onto the pan, expertly flicking your wrist to rotate the pan and cause the batter to form a perfect circle. You pull out a small container of blueberries, sprinkling some of them on top.
âWoah.â Jaemin watches you, impressed. âTeach me how to do that.â
âThis? Itâs easy,â you laugh softly, checking on the pancake until its underside is golden and small bubbles start to form on the top. You quickly move the pan, flipping the pancake onto its other side. âYou can try making the next one.â
âYeah? Will you wrap your arms around me and give me the one on one experience?â Jaemin jokes lightheartedly, and you nearly choke. âI meanâI donât think that's completely necessary.â
âRelax, doll, Iâm just kidding,â he laughs softly, nudging you gently, and you let out an awkward laugh. âOh, totally. Just a joke.â
Once the pancake is golden on both sides, you carefully slide it onto a plate Jaemin pulled out from one of the cabinets. Your heart rate finally returns to its normal state, and you manage to say calmly, âMaple syrup and whipped cream are in the fridge.âÂ
Jaemin takes out the aforementioned toppings, generously slathering on some butter before pouring the syrup and spraying whipped cream onto the pancake. He cuts out a small piece and quickly spears it onto his fork before taking the bite, nearly moaning in delight at the first taste.
âHoly crap, this is so fucking good.â
âMy secret recipe,â you say proudly as you start to pour the batter for a second pancake, evenly spreading it on the pan. âWas it worth the effort?â
âYes.â Jaemin swallows, almost immediately going for another bite before he gazes at you, giving you a genuine smile, and your heart rate again increases to an alarming speed.
âDefinitely worth it.â
vii. undress me everywhere.
You finish the midterm in forty five minutes, being the first one to turn in your completed exam. This means you finished twenty minutes before the class ends and consequently, either failed it spectucularly or knocked it out of the park. You really hope itâs the latter.
Despite being rather preoccupied with other matters a.k.a. your suddenly thriving social life, you managed to cram in some studying here and there because your mother would absolutely kill you if you lost your provost scholarship. Gifted kid burnout? Whoâs that? You never heard of her before (Just kidding, youâve had plenty of breakdowns and cry fests over calculating bond values and stock prices).
Now outside of the classroom in one of the open study alcoves, you drop your Longchamp bag on the empty chair next to you before tugging at the back of your jean skirt before carefully sitting down. You make sure to readjust your bra straps, tucking them under the ruched fabric of your white shirt. Tapping your fingers against the scratched surface of the table, you briefly admire the shimmery gold ombrĂŠ manicure adorning your nails that Jaemin had chosen last week. You pull out a compact from the inner side pocket of your purse, carefully checking your makeup to ensure it is still in pristine condition before quickly swiping in another layer of your Buxom plumping lip gloss in the best shade: fir royale.
The flurry of text messages pinging across your screen quickly catches your attention, and you tuck your mirror and tube of lip gloss away before scrolling through them, letting out a quiet scoff at Karinaâs latest melodramatic outburst in the clout chasers group chat:
[ 11:46 a.m. ] karebear â¨: guys, gals, and yuckjun
[ 11:46 a.m. ] choi YJ đŚ: what tf ??? why are you calling me out
[ 11:46 a.m. ] karebear â¨: shut up or else I wonât make out with you anymore
[ 11:46 a.m. ] choi YJ đŚ: đ¤
[ 11:46 a.m. ] jenaur đ¤ş: are you that touch starved bro
[ 11:47 a.m. ] karebear â¨: anyway as i was saying
[ 11:47 a.m. ] karebear â¨: this skank in my marketing class has been copying my outfits and posting them on her insta and she has like 10k followers now
[ 11:47 a.m. ] princess lia đ: time to tear a bitch apart
[ 11:47 a.m. ] karebear â¨: like look at this shit
[ 11:47 a.m. ] karebear â¨: sent {10 images.jpeg}
[ 11:47 a.m. ] karebear â¨: my followers are gonna rip her apart
[ 11:47 a.m. ] karebear â¨: sheâs downgrading my brand
[ 11:47 a.m. ] princess lia đ: dw girl iâll do a response video so my followers will see too
[ 11:48 a.m. ] princess lia đ: she canât get away with this
[ 11:48 a.m. ] karebear â¨: loved a message
[ 11:48 a.m. ] somi amor đ: idk⌠theyâre similar styles but thatâs what popular rn
[ 11:48 a.m. ] karebear â¨: itâs gonna be song jia 2.0 watergate
[ 11:49 a.m. ] karebear â¨: just say youâre broke and go
[ 11:49 a.m. ] karebear â¨: if sheâs gonna plagiarize me, she better do it right like bffr walmart versionÂ
[ 11:49 a.m. ] somi amor đ: you have proof theyâre fake?Â
[ 11:49 a.m. ] karebear â¨: i mean fake bitch fake bags right
[ 11:49 a.m. ] jenaur đ¤ş: idk sheâs kinda hot
[ 11:49 a.m. ] karebear â¨: shut up jen be like your hairline and fall back
[ 11:49 a.m. ] jenaur đ¤ş: HELLO ?! back me up yeonjun
[ 11:50 a.m. ] choi YJ đŚ: um
[ 11:50 a.m. ] choi YJ đŚ: đ¤
[ 11:51 a.m. ] choi YJ đŚ: if you wanna be fucking stupid then knock yourself out
[ 11:51 a.m. ] karebear â¨: loved a message
[ 11:51 a.m. ] karebear â¨: hey my place tonight jun đĽ°
[ 11:51 a.m. ] jenaur đ¤ş: are you gonna listen to your own advice yj
[ 11:51 a.m. ] karebear â¨: excuse me ????
[ 11:51 a.m. ] jenaur đ¤ş: đ¤đ¤đ¤
[ 11:51 a.m. ] jenaur đ¤ş: proverbs 26:11
âHey, doll, whatâs so funny?âÂ
Jaemin appears next to you, and you let out a startled squeak, jumping in your seat, and he laughs, quickly placing his hands on your shoulders to steady you. You look at him wide eyed for a few seconds, his question not yet registering in your mind, and he waits patiently for your answer.
âOh!â Your eyes light up, and he smiles at the endearing sight. âJust Karina ranting about something and Yeonjun being whipped.â
âAh, so the usual?â He reaches for your bag, slinging it over his shoulder, and you stand up, pulling your skirt down once more to ensure youâre covered. The two of you start to make your way out of the Langley Hall.Â
âYep. How was the midterm for you?â
He brightens up, opening the door for you and you thank him. âIt wasnât too bad at all! I actually understood like 90% of the questions and for the others, I was able to narrow down the answers between two choices, so 50/50 chance, fingers crossed I picked the right one.â
You beam when you hear that, and he returns the smile, eyes crinkling in the corners, and you pretend to wipe away faux tears. âI feel like a proud mom.â
âI think my mom actually will be proud,â he says, eyes scanning the cars parked on the nearby street before finding his. He grabs your hand, tugging you along. âCâmon, we gotta go celebrate that our misery is over until finals week. Plus, we gotta prep you when you talk to Hyuck.â
âWait, what?â You abruptly stop short, and he nearly loses his grip on your hand. âWhen am I talking to him?â
âThis Saturday. Youâre coming with me to the Nu Chi party, right?â
âSince when? I donât go to parties,â you protest, âTheyâre too loud and noisy, and beer is gross andââ
âYou went to the Alpha Sigma one a few weeks ago though?â Jaemin interrupts, and you shake your head. âThat was a small party though. This one is the party of the semester. What if I embarrassed myself in front of the entire school?â
âParties are the prime time for meeting people and getting to know them because alcohol makes everyone friendlier and people donât stay within their friend groups,â Jaemin interrupts. âDo you really believe that youâll get him to like you by, I donât know, one day, your eyes will meet across the classroom, and heâll fall madly in love with you? This isnât one of your fanfics, Y/N.â
âShut up,â you grumble, letting go of his hand on purpose, and he frowns, bottom lip jutting out in a pout before reaching out for your hand again. You swiftly dodge him, and he whines, quickly snatching your hand up and lacing your and his fingers together.
âI hope this isnât how youâll treat him on your date. Thank god weâre doing a trial run right now.â
âA trial run?â you echo him, and he nods, flashing you that favorite smile of his that never fails to make you weak in the knees.
âWell, we have to make sure your first date goes perfectly so there will be a second, right? Practice makes perfect,â he says matter-of-factly, and you nod slowly in agreement. The logic makes sense somehow.Â
âOkay, so where would you pick for a first date?â
âMaybe a cute cafe? Oh, thereâs that one place: Cloudy with a Chance of Boba!â You brighten up, thinking about that boba shopâs menu you spent a good half hour scrolling through on Yelp last night.
âMm, the most popular place right now is that ramen place on the end of Maisie Street. Itâd probably be best to go there,â he muses, tugging you along via your intertwined hands. You nearly stumble in your heeled sandals but swiftly catch yourself.
âO-oh, okay, so are we going there now?â
âNah, letâs do the ice cream place next door to it. Not really feeling noodles at the moment.â He stops to look over his shoulder at you, and you run into his back, causing him to let go before quickly reaching out and grabbing your arms to steady you. âWoah, be careful.â
âSorry.â Youâre flustered, your cheeks now growing hotter than a furnace. Jaemin reaches forward, his finger carefully swiping at the smudged lip gloss on the corner of your lip. âWhereâs your lip gloss? You should reapply this.â
Eyes widening, he then shifts and peers behind him, craning his neck to the side in all attempts to look at the back of his shirt. âThereâs not a mark on my shirt, right?âÂ
You quickly rub off any shimmery residue. âItâs fine, your shirt is dark blue, so you canât see it anymore.âÂ
âOh, good. Wait, whereâs your lip gloss?â You fish through your bag, pulling out the tube and handing it to Jaemin. He uncaps it, giving you the lower half of the gloss before gently grasping your chin with one hand. He leans forward and tilts your head towards him, his eyes focused on your lips. The butterflies in your stomach erupt in an instant. You try so hard to stand still, fidgeting with one of the rings on your finger behind your back.Â
Jaeminâs face is so close to yours that you can count every single long dark eyelash that frames his pretty eyes. His lips are the prettiest shade of carmine, and you wonder what itâs like to be Aphroditeâs favorite child. How lucky you are to already be basking in the attention of her favorite; imagine how much luckier he is to be her favorite.
The beautiful boy in front of you carefully applies the gloss for you, fully concentrating on coating your lips with a pretty sheen once again. When he glances up, heâs almost blown away by the way youâre looking at him.Â
You look stunning, pretty as a picture in VOGUE magazine. Not quite the cover page, but youâre nearly there. A swell of pride runs through his veins, like an artist admiring his latest masterpiece on show in MOMA.
âAnyway,â he clears his throat, handing back to you the lip gloss. âLetâs go. Weâre almost there.â
âAlright.â You follow behind him like a lost puppy, and he reaches back to grab your hand and interlace your fingers. Your heart nearly skips a beat as your cheeks grow warmer once again, and for a split second, you wonder if he feels the same way.
âWeâre here,â Jaemin announces, letting go of your hand to open the shopâs door, the bell above it jingling faintly as he gestures for you to go inside.
You enter the pretty shop, marveling the clean and simple interior with circular white tables and matching garden iron chairs surrounding each one. Thereâs bright greenery and plants decorating the edges of the shop, and the wall is covered in mismatched frames of paintings and pictures in various sizes and colors. The cheeky neon sign displayed near the front read, âItâs not gonna lick itself!â, and you laugh softly when you see it. The display of different colorful ice creams at the front are absolutely enticing, and youâre already struggling to decide which two flavors to pick.
You finally decide on a Vietnamese coffee and honeycomb swirl, accepting it from the cashier before you start to pull out your wallet. Before you can even pull out your card, Jaemin taps his phone against the screen, paying for both yours and his.
âNever pay on the first date,â he chides you lightly, picking up his ice cream. âAlways let the guy pay for the first date.â
âOh, but shouldnât we at least split it?â You ask sheepishly, walking towards a table near the back that he gestures towards. He follows behind you, picking up some spoons and napkins.
âIf the guy is so broke that he canât pay $7 for your ice cream, then he shouldnât be out dating anyway. He should be getting a job,â Jaemin retorts, tugging your chair out for you before sitting across from you and handing you a spoon and napkin. âDonât you watch that Shera lady? Sprinkle, sprinkle and all that jazz. Maybe you can split for the future dates, but if the guy has any basic decency, he would pay for the first one.â
âAlright, Iâll keep that in mind,â you sigh, taking a hefty scoop of your ice cream and having the first bite. Itâs delicious, and you make a mental note to buy a pint and bring back to your dorm to share with Giselle later.
The two of you continue to discuss various appropriate topics to broach on a first date (âHey Jaemin, you like cheese? My favoriteâs Gouda.â â⌠Please do not ask that.â). You quickly jot down bullet points in your Notes app, your fingers flying over the screen as Jaemin instructs you on good conversational starters and body language.
âSo you just need to touch him on his upper forearm and then pull away. Stoke his ego and say heâs funny or some shit like that. At least you donât have to force yourself to laugh with him though because Hyuck is naturally funny anyway. And heâs good at keeping up the conversation and a people person, so it wonât be awkward even for your first date,â Jaemin continues as you nod, rapidly typing what he says.
âAnd at the end of the date, touch his shoulder again, glance down at his lips for a brief second before making eye contact. If heâs bold enough, heâll go for the first kiss. But then just immediately smile and say you had a great time before he can lean in. After that, he wonât stop thinking about that moment, and itâll drive him crazy, and heâll be texting you for a second date within the next day.â
âMm, okay, I think I got it,â you mumble absentmindedly, engrossed in writing down the last few bullet points and Jaemin leans over to take a closer look at your phone, his eyes flitting over the screen.
âSo for the last point, do I have to deny the first kiss then? Smile and walk away before he leans in andâŚâÂ
You start to ask until you look up, and your breath hitches in your throat at the close proximity, your and his noses almost brushing. Jaemin is so pretty, even prettier when you can count the few freckles dotting his face, can clearly see the mesmerizing golden flecks dotting his irises, can admire the way his lips look so soft and curve into the picture perfect smile. Your heart thumps wildly, nearly falling onto the floor along with your jaw when you glance up from staring at his lips and see that heâs already looking back at you with the softest expression on his face.
âYou donât have to,â Jaemin murmurs, and your heart stutters in your chest as he moves in closer, his lashes brushing against your cheek, and suddenly, his lips are pressed against yours. Theyâre pink and soft and slot perfectly against yours in a way that has your heart skipping beats and stomach doing cartwheels.
Eyes widening, you freeze up, letting out a quiet squeak of surprise, before he pulls away, giving you an amused smile. The lingering warmth on your lips makes your cheeks heat up, and you have to break eye contact, stammering over your words as you gently graze your fingers over your lips in wonderment.
Jaemin laughs softly as he leans back in his chair. âWeâll have to work on this too then. Youâre kissing like itâs a Park Shinhye kdrama.â
Youâre still dazed, cheeks growing even warmer as you avoid his gaze, fiddling with the loose thread on the hem of your skirt. âThat was my first kiss.â
Jaemin pauses at the realization, his cheeks flushing slightly before he clears his throat, giving you a half smile and a light chuckle, âOh, really? Thatâs cute, doll. Well, Iâll teach you some tips, so youâll be better at it by the time you ask Hyuck out. At least you got a decent first kiss, right? No big deal.â
âYeah, no big deal,â you echo softly, your heart still racing at breakneck speed. You pretend to focus on the remnants of your ice cream in the bottom of your paper cup, fingers gripping around the container tightly.
Jaemin was right.
You donât think youâll be able to stop thinking about this moment anytime soon.
viii. come on, barbie, letâs go party!
âAre you sure you wanna do this?â
Moon asks worriedly, helping you with your makeup as you sit, perched on the edge of your bed. She uncaps your eyeliner as Lana fusses with your shirt, smoothing out any of the wrinkles. âActually, I canât do it. You do it, Yang. Youâre an expert at this.â
âAlright, give it to me.â Yangyang comes over, grabbing the eyeliner and expertly draws on the wing above your right eye. âYears of cosplay have finally come in handy. Although, I still canât believe youâre putting in all this effort for Jaemin.â
âI need to look pretty. He usually does my makeup for me, but heâs busy right now,â you mumble, twisting the ring around your finger anxiously. âItâs my first time going to a party. I canât embarrass him when heâs a ten.â
âYeah, in rupees,â Yangyang scoffs, and Lana frowns at you, stopping in her tracks. âDon't talk about yourself like that. Youâre already pretty, and if anything, you should be embarrassed to be seen with that slime ball. I canât believe he doesnât even have the decency to pick you up. Why are you the one going to his place?â
âHe has some frat meeting right now,â you answer, glancing down at your newly manicured nails. The pearl color shimmers under the light, and you canât help but admire it even more. You wish they were a little shorter, but they really do look quite pretty.
âWhat meeting? Weâre in the same frat. Also, hold still,â Yangyang huffs, holding your chin as he draws on the left wing over your eye. âWe need them to look like twins, not cousins twice removed.â
âI donât know, he just said there was some meeting,â you mumble, holding perfectly still until he finally finishes. âMaybe it was a one on one meeting or something, who knows?â
âI still think heâs shady,â Lana grumbles, and Moon nods as well. âYeah, like the first kiss thing?â
âItâs no big deal,â you wave your hand dismissively, hopping off of your bed and taking a look at yourself in your mirror. âBetter to get it over with, right? I mean, imagine being this old and not having your first kiss yet.â
âIs that what he said to you?â Moon huffs, affronted, and you shift in your place uncomfortably. âNo, of course not. Itâs justâeveryone gets their first kiss when theyâre like fourteen or fifteen, right?â
âThatâs not the point,â Lana says indignantly, tucking your hair behind your ear carefully. âYou wanted it to be special, didnât you? It just feels like⌠he took something away from you.â
âHe didnât. I wanted this,â you answer loudly, ignoring the way your stomach flip flops as you try not to think back to that moment. He kissed you, he really does like you back, he might have not said it out loud, but he knows how much it means to you (Wouldnât he?).
âOkay, as long as youâre happy,â Moon gives in, and she and Lana exchange a worried look that goes unnoticed by you. But what can they do? They can continue to try convincing you, but it will never work when it falls on deaf ears.Â
âI am,â you insist, avoiding your friendsâ gazes and staring at yourself back in the mirror. Moon attempts to lift the mood again, offering you a tentative smile in the reflection. âThis whole thing is like a whole emotional rollercoaster, and Yangyang is definitely not tall enough to ride.â
âShut the fuck up, Iâm literally almost six foot tall,â Yangyang shoots back, and you laugh, relaxing once more as you watch your friends start to bicker again.
âListen, you canât be delusional and short. Pick a struggle.â Moon counters, and Lana agrees, handing you your phone to tuck into your pocket. âSheâs right. You carry yourself with the confidence of a much taller man.â
You smile fondly as the bickering between your friends continues. You miss them, you realize with a jolting pang of regret, you havenât been hanging out with them as often as you used to. In fact, the majority of your weeks are spent with Jaemin and his friends.
Itâs your first cold dose of reality, and youâre hit with a startling truth. You havenât been a very good friend lately.
â
Lana drove you to the Nu Chi Theta house, and you felt like a kindergartener being dropped for her first day of school. Your face feels hot as a wave of embarrassment rushes over you as you notice the amount of glances you receive from the insanely pretty girls and boys already on the front lawn and streaming out from the front door. You quickly exit the vehicle, hurriedly waving good bye over your shoulder before making your way into the house, almost tripping over the raised walkway.
You wander around the house, searching for Jaemin and quickly sidestepping a through the couples and other students dancing around, nearly getting bowled over by someone you recognize from your schoolâs football team. He gives you a quick once over before offering a half apology, eyes set on another girl on the other side of the room. You take a deep breath before pushing your way into the next room, finally spotting Jaemin with his friends, minus Jeno and Somi, by the staircase and letting out a sigh of relief.
âHey,â you say breathlessly, squeezing through two couples busily making out in the doorway and wincing slightly when you jostle both of them, causing them to give you dirty looks before resuming their activities.Â
âOh, hi, Y/N!â Karina says brightly, giving you a perfect smile and reaching over to squeeze your arm gently. âWe didnât think youâd make it.â
âMy first frat party? Of course, I wouldnât miss it,â you laugh, tucking a stray strand of your hair behind your ear nervously before fiddling with the hem of your shirt. Jaemin gives you a small smile, and you return it with a slightly shaky one, your eyes flickering towards the fading pink, glossy lip mark staining the collar of his shirt. The color is much too dark to be Jaeminâs, and your stomach churns slightly.
âYou look so pretty, Y/N, I love the confidence,â Lia chimes in, gently pinching the fabric of your skirt between her manicured fingers. âI love this, youâll have to let me borrow it sometime.â
âOh, of course! You can borrow it anytime,â you agree quickly, flashing her a slightly forced smile before glancing over at Jaemin again, unsure what to do.
âWhere do you shop?â Yeonjun asks, glancing over at your outfit. âThe shirt is nice, too.â
âOh my god, yes, we have to go shopping together sometime, and youâll have to show me all the good places,â Karina cuts in, nudging you gently before letting out a sigh, looking over at Lia. âGod, Iâve been feeling so fat lately, like freshman twenty might be getting to me.â
âNo, same, Iâve been extending my gym sessions and doing Pilates,â Lia huffs softly, and you remain silent, switching your weight around on each foot, glancing over at Jaemin helplessly.
âI need another drink. You coming, Y/N?â Jaemin finally speaks up before brushing past Yeonjun, and you hurriedly follow behind him, careful not to fall behind or get swept away. He quickly pushes through to the kitchen, finding a spot next to the counter covered in various bottles of cheap alcohol and stacks of red solo cups dispersed in between.
âYou want one?â Jaemin asks, extending a shot of vodka he just poured out towards you, and you shake your head before he gives a wry smile. âYou sure? Itâll help with the nerves. You were shaking back there.â
Your cheeks grow warm. âYou noticed?â
âEverybody noticed,â he snorted, handing you the cup, and you wince slightly before holding your nose and downing it in one go. âGive me another then.â
âAtta girl,â Jaemin hands you another shot and you take that one just as quickly, making a face that causes him to smile subconsciously. As he pours himself a cup of beer, he spots Donghyuck by the pool out back, and a knot settles in his stomach uncomfortably. He almost doesnât want to tell you, and he doesnât know why. Itâs just because he worked so hard to make you look this good, and his loudmouth friend gets to reap all the benefits, he tells himself, taking a swig of his drink, Donghyuck doesnât know how lucky he is.
Ignoring all the stop signs and whistles going off in his head, he gestures towards Donghyuck outside, clenching the red cup in his hand a little tighter than normal. âThereâs your chance. Gotta do it before the alcohol wears off.â
âOh, um, actually, I wanted to talk to you,â you stammer out, tucking a strand of your hair behind your ear again (Itâs one of your habits when youâre nervous, and he thinks it might be his favorite). He pushes down the growing knot in his stomach.
âWeâll talk later, yeah? You canât miss this,â Jaemin insists before nudging you in the direction of the pool outside despite your soft protests.
âW-wait, IÂ jusââ you say desperately, but Jaemin merely waves you off before disappearing back into the party inside. You let out a sigh, shoulders sagging slightly. You wouldnât want to disappoint him after all the effort he put in these past four weeks.
Youâll tell him later.
â
âOh? Whereâs your little Barbie doll, Jaemin?â Karina simpers as she lazily taps her pretty manicured nails against the half filled red solo cup in her other hand when Jaemin returns to his original spot. âHave you gotten bored of playing with her yet?â
âItâs not like that,â Jaemin answers hotly, âSheâs⌠fun. She makes me laugh.â
âHow? By looking at her?â Yeonjun snorts, chugging his own cup before crinkling it in his fist. Jaemin wants to throw up. âWe thought you just did this because youâve been having a dry spell and were bored. Where is she anyway?
 âSheâs talking to Hyuck right now,â Jaemin mumbles meekly, shoulders slightly hunched over as he stares into the depths of his own solo cup.
âReally? I mean, is she even his type?â Lia asks skeptically, straightening up in her spot to see if she can spot you or Donghyuck anywhere. âIf anything, I thought her friendâthe pretty English major oneâwould be his type. How is she anyoneâs type?â
âHey, he turned her from a four to a solid eight. She might even go up half a point once you introduce her to an exercise and diet plan.â Karina says offhandedly, raising her cup towards him in mock salute before taking a sip.
âYeah, how are you going to do that? Itâs not like you can even sugarcoat it for her because then sheâd eat it too,â Yeonjun throws out with a smirk, and Jaemin feels sick to his stomach, the nauseating feeling growing exponentially and gnawing at him as his friend continues, âI mean sheâs probably already on the seafood diet because she sees any food and just eats it. How can you even stand her, Jae? The way she just follows you around like a puppy. Isnât it annoying?â
âGod, I know, the way she basically chases after us like a lap dog is so pathetic. At least she takes good insta pics for us though, so sheâs somewhat useful. But we had that one really good group photo at that last party, and she totally ruined the picture. You canât even crop her out because she had to stand next to you, Jae,â Lia complains, rolling her eyes, and Karina laughs, taking out her phone and scrolling through her photos.
âOh my god, I know the exact photo youâre talking about. Itâs this one, right? She practically threw herself into your arms,â She flashes her screen towards the group, and Jaemin wants to shrink and crawl into a hole somewhere and die. Was it the best photo of you? No. Was it the worst? Maybe close to it. Youâre standing sideways and still taking up more space in the photo than the others, and the flash photography did not do any favors for you. You stand out even worse than Will Smith in the sunflower costume meme. He cringes inwardly, noting the way your skirt had rolled up and youâre smiling a little too widely. He makes a mental note to help you practice better, more flattering poses later on.
âYou know that famous baby hippo? Moo Deng? I think we found her twin from the future,â Yeonjun barks out a laugh, reaching over and zooming in on you as Karina smirks before putting away her phone. Lia giggles and glances over at Jaemin, scrutinizing his reaction before a sly expression makes an appearance on her face, saying coyly, âYou have a crush on her, donât you?â
Jaemin flushes, embarrassment coating his cheeks, and he immediately snaps, âShut up, I might be lonely, but Iâm not desperaââ
âOh, Y/N!â Lia says loudly, effectively cutting Jaemin short. âHow did it go? Are you and Hyuck gonna be the new couple on campus?â
Immediately, his heart drops even further to his stomach, and Jaemin whirls around to see you standing a few feet away. Did Lia know you were there? How long were you standing there? Did you hear them? Did you hear every horrible thing they said about you?
âOh, Donghyuck said he wasnât interested, but he was nice about it,â you say, offering a vague smile in Jaeminâs direction, and he nearly breathes a sigh of relief as his heart starts to slow back down to its normal rate. A part of him is glad that Donghyuck rejected you, and he nearly misses what you say next, too caught up in this unfamiliar feeling.
âI think Iâm going to head back to my dorm. Iâm a little tired. Thank you for inviting me.â
With that, you turn away and walk off, but something still doesnât feel right to Jaemin. Itâs a split second decision but for once, he puts his heart over his mind and chases after you, ignoring the increasing whispers from his friends and their eyes searing into his back.
ix. raise your hand if you have ever been personally victimized by na jaemin.
Jaemin is right on your heels the entire time you walk back to your dorm. All he receives is stony silence from you that he fills with babbling nonsense, asking you whatâs wrong to no avail. When you finally enter your dorm, you turn to him at last, and he perks up. However, the two words that come out of your mouth have him deflating faster than Yangyangâs ego when Alice called him a shitty kisser with too much saliva (âYouâre supposed to make me wet down there, not up here. Honestly, dude, if I wanted to drown myself, I wouldâve jumped into the ocean.â).
âWeâre done.â
You decide to bite the bullet.
After freeing your feet from their pointy death contraptions, you peel off each layer of clothing one by one, unzipping the mini skirt and kicking it away before tugging at the spandex, unleashing the breath youâve been holding in since 8 a.m. to fit into it. Thereâs still indents marking the dips in your waist and your thighs, a lasting reminder that stays like an embarrassing stain. You fling that abhorrent piece of elastic elsewhere, and it falls near the end of your bed, out of sight behind the pile of textbooks you havenât touched for the past three days.
âHold on, what are you talking about? We made so much progress. You wanted to do this,â Jaemin protests, following after you and picking up the discarded garments you threw haphazardly. He waves around the skirt like a white flag. âYou wanted to be in the popular crowd, and you got it. Youâre this close to dating Hyuck. Yeah, he mightâve said no now, but weâll come up with a new planâYou can bounce back from this! Why are you quitting now?â
Removing the off-the-shoulder pink top that restricts your arm movement, you quickly slip on an oversized sweater before reaching back and unhooking the strapless bra whose underwire has been digging into your ribs for so many hours, a sigh of relief escaping between your teeth. You toss it onto your chair without another care in the world, and it lands next to the shirt in a heap.
âBecause this isnât me. This isnât what I like.â
âOf course, it is. This is still you: just new and improved,â he insists, frantically attempting to hand you your discarded shirt and pleather skirt. You ignore them, opting to pull out and put on your favorite pair of stretched out gym shorts from middle school that you had shoved in the back of your closet to make room for all the flashy clothing Jaemin picked out for you. âWeâre having fun. Youâre popular and pretty now. Youâre almost dating Donghyuck. You have everything that everyone wants. Youâre the girl the boys want to be with, the girl all the other girls want to be.â
You shake your head, reaching for the packet of makeup wipes near your sink. âItâs not what I want.â
Jaemin scoffs, âDonât be ridiculous. What are you talking about? This is what you asked me to do.â
You throw him a scathing glare, and he takes a step back. âGod, Jaemin, for once in your life, take off the stupid rose colored heart shades, and youâll finally see all the red flags around you.â
âWhatâs that supposed to mean?â Jaemin asks defensively. He thought everything was going according to plan; heâs going to pass macroeconomics, and you got to talk to Donghyuck and are this close to scoring a date with him. People notice you wherever you go, the two of you receive compliments, his friends like you, everyone likes you.
âI have to pretend to like things I hate and hate the things I like. I have to do things a certain way, act a certain way, pretend this is all effortless. I donât know if people are being genuine or pretending like I am. I hate thisâthis fake version of me.â You spit the words out like fuel to a fire, and you stand there in all your blazing glory, ugly uniform shorts and all.
âMy thighs keep chafing. My feet have blisters everyday from these boots. This foundation makes me break out even more, and I canât type up my notes in class or write fast enough because of these nails, and my grades almost took a plunge. Iâm basically freezing my tits off out there in a shirt I donât like. The lashes make my eyes itch, and this skirt is so short that I have to keep pulling it down every five seconds before I end up flashing someone.â
You donât recognize the girl in your mirror anymore. You pluck off the falsies lining your eyes, scrubbing furiously at the layers of expensive brand name makeup covering your skin. You wipe off every inch of it until your bare face stares back at you, slightly puffy, blemishes, faded acne scars and all. You feel like you can breathe a little better now.
âDid you really think itâs easy being one of us? Do you think people will notice you if you show up in sweats with Cheetos stains?â Jaemin stares at you incredulously. âThis is how it is. I donât get why youâre throwing it all away like this.â
âAnd yet, you were all for it when I threw away everything before.â
âBecause you asked for it! You asked me toâto make you into someone Donghyuck would date!â
âYou donât get it.â You whirl around on your heels to face him instead of the mirror, and the anger and intensity laced in your voice nearly blows him away. âI like myself the way I am. I never hated myself. I may be insecure about how I look sometimes, but who isnât? Yeah, I like wearing cherry lip gloss and mascara sometimes. Itâs fun trying out new hairstyles and clothes and learning to do better makeup. I like getting dressed up for special occasions. I like doing these things on my own terms. But this? What Iâm doing to myself right now? This isnât the same. Am I supposed to keep up this charade for the rest of my life? If I do eventually go out with Donghyuck, am I gonna have to keep lying to him? To everyone? I want people to like me for me. To actually know me.â
âIf this is how you feel, then why would you keep doing this?! If you hate it so much, then why?â Heâs frustrated, carding his fingers through his hair as he canât wrap his mind around the fact that youâre angry over this. You look gorgeous, so whatâs the problem?
âBecause I liked spending time with you!â you burst out, âI never liked DonghyuckâI liked you. I wanted it to be you. It was fun at first, I did like it at first, but I canât keep doing this. I canât keep pretending to be someone Iâm not. I canât be friends with someone whoâs ashamed of me.â
Thereâs a jolt in his heart when he hears your confession, but the second jolt comes quickly afterwards at your last words. Denial is the first stage of grief, and he pales at your final declaration. âWhat are you talking about? This whole thing is so that Donghââ
âOh, please. You can drop the act. This isnât about Donghyuck anymore. This is about you being too embarrassed to be seen with someone who doesnât fit your aesthetics.â You air quote the last word for emphasis, and his jaw tightens at that. âYouâd rather drop dead than go out with a four like me, right?â You smile sardonically at him. âI may be a four on a seafood diet, but my ears work perfectly fine, Jaemin.â
You heard it all, and Jaemin feels like he is going to throw up. All he can do is scramble and grasp for the last remaining straws, protesting vehemently, âI wasnât the one who said any of that!â
You laugh humorlessly, âIs that supposed to make it better? Youâre better than them because you didnât say it out loud? You didnât deny it or defend me either, so whatâs your point?Â
His mouth goes dry, and he opens and shuts it several times. Swallowing harshly, he barely manages to croak out a weak reply. âThatâsâ I didnât meanâI only really thought that before I knew you.â
âAnd thatâs just it, isnât it? You already judged me before you even knew me based on how I look. Even now, you still judge me.â He starts to open his mouth again, but you merely shrug as if youâve accepted this for all your life, and he closes it meekly, shifting from one foot to the other uncomfortably, unable to meet your eyes
âThatâs okay. Iâm used to it. Thatâs how it is for people like me. I know Iâm not someone people fall head over heels for immediately. Iâm the one who reaches out to people first. Guys donât fall over at my feet, wanting to carry my books to class for me. The pretty girls ask me to take their Insta pictures for them. I donât get free drinks at the bar or invited to all the parties. Iâve never been asked out by a total stranger, and no one writes their number on my cup of coffee,â you say matter-of-factly, a resigned smile on your face, and it has him curling into himself internally, his conscience slowly eating away at him.
âAnd you know what?â you continue, âThat's life. Thatâs okay because Iâm happy with who I am. I like who I am. If I have to give myself up to get Donghyuck or you to like me, then heâsâyouâare not the one. I shouldnât change who I am for a boyâor anyone for that matter.â
âThatâs notâWe were doing this for you. You wanted⌠you wanted this makeover. You wanted this.â Heâs desperately clutching onto the end of the rope, and youâre holding the scissors to cut it off. You show him another half smile, one that doesnât quite reach your eyes.
âIt stopped being about me. It started being about what you wanted, what you liked, what you wanted me to be. I was your charity case, your little Barbie doll.â
You tilt your head to the side, studying the boy in front of you and he silently squirms under your scrutiny. âTell me one thing, and be honest. Did you even know I existed before Donghyuck mentioned me as a tutoring option? Before you needed me for a grade booster? Would you have liked me then?â
Would you have liked me then? Your question echoes in his mind, and Jaemin freezes, dropping the clothes in his hands. You know. You know he likes you, and the embarrassment creeps up on him in the form of carmine dusting his ears and cheeks, like spilled wine on white linen.
âThere are over one hundred students in the class,â he objects. âSorry for not fighting my way through all of them to find you and have a crush on you sooner.â
Jaemin seems to not realize that he just confirmed his feelings for you aloud, and perhaps, if he had told you this a few weeks ago, you would have been ecstatic and called up Lana and Moon the second he was out of earshot. But this is now, and youâve grown exponentially since then.
You give him a wistful smile, and as the dread piles up in the pit of his stomach, he knows this is the start of his downfall (or perhaps, heâs already been falling this entire time). He slipped from the pedestal already long ago, and itâs only a matter of time before he hits rock bottom. The higher the pedestal, the harder the fall from grace.
âI sat in front of you diagonally. You asked me to pass notes to my friend. You know, the girl who sat next to me? Alice? The one you asked out and went on a few dates with at the beginning of the semester?â You state the facts calmly, and his eyes widen at that. âItâs okay. But you mustâve remembered that we were in the same group for a presentation last semester, right?â
Jaemin stays silent, and you have your answer. Itâs one youâve known deep down in your heart all this time, but that doesnât mean it doesnât hurt any less. After all, someone can announce theyâre going to punch you, you can even see the strike coming to your gut, but simply knowing doesnât do anything to ease the painful aftermath.
You chuckle humorlessly, fingers uncurling and recurling into fists as your nails press moon shaped crescents into your palms before you look him straight in the eyes. âI donât fit into your cookie cutter life or match your rose colored Instagram filters. I donât have the perfect model figure or the perfect face. I donât look like the girl of your dreams, and I know that it just fucking kills you inside that you fell in love with me.â
Jaemin flinches, curling in on himself when he finally meets your gaze and finally sees the absolute hell fires of fury and repugnance ablaze in your eyes. You know that he loves you, and heâs ashamed that youâre right. Youâre absolutely right.
Why is he so afraid of loving you?
He loves how smart you are, how witty you are, how funny you are, how genuine you are, how you understand every obscure Haikyuu!! reference he makes, how you laugh at his jokes, how you dm him the funniest memes on Instagram, how you wear your purple scrunchie around your wrist during every exam for good luck and how you let him borrow it too. He loves how you treat him as more than just a pretty face, how you actually listen to him and make him feel like what he says matters, how you make him feel differentâspecialâlike he doesnât have to compete with all the other Barbies and Kens out there. Heâs much too vain, much too superficial, much too selfish, much too proud to admit it out loud, but heâs in love with you, and yet, he canât bring himself to love every single part of you.
And the truth of that matter is the ugliest of all.
But there are standards that he has to uphold, why canât you understand this? He lowered his standards for you, and you still couldnât meet them. You have the personality already, you are this close to being the ideal girl, and well, you both have to make changes. Itâs the prince and princess who live happily ever after, not the prince and the pauper, or god forbid, the ogre (No offense, Shrek). This is real life, and society has unspoken rules. He sacrificed so much for you, he put his reputation on the line, so why couldnât you do this for him? After all, love always has some sacrifices.
Right?
But when Jaemin looks at you now, thereâs everything, but love staring back at him. You look at him like heâs a repulsive piece of chewed gum stubbornly stuck to the bottom of your Steve Madden heel. It strikes a nerve and completely eats him to the core, but he pulls himself upright because nobody talks to him like that, nobody looks at him like that, certainly not someone like you. He invented you, he made you into the next Princess Mia, the next Cady Heron, the next Serena van der Woodsen, and this is how you show your gratitude?
âOh, youâve got to be shitting me. You act like Iâm the first person to judge first based on looks. Everyone does it. Am I supposed to strike up a conversation with every girl on the off chance sheâs everything I want? Do you think anyone would fall for you immediately when you looked like that? The saying is âlove at first sightâ, unless youâre one to believe in the whole âlove is blindâ idea, which you clearly do,â Jaemin snaps, sneering as he eyes you up and down. His heart and mind are screaming, crying, begging for him to stop, but his pride dropkicks him headfirst into the hole he dug for himself, raging for him to get the upper hand again.
âHow is it my fault for not knowing youâre the whole package when the wrapping doesnât match the contents?â
The unfiltered words slip out of his mouth, and he immediately regrets it, closing his eyes, but itâs too late. He sees the instant look of devastation that appears on your face, and it hits him like a boxerâs punch to the chest. He starts to backtrack to no avail. You play stupid games, you win stupid prizes.
âI am never going to be enough for you, am I?â you whisper, your breaths stuttering in your chest as your initial sarcasm turns into quiet truths now that eat away at him. âIâm either too much or too little. Thereâs always going to be something youâll want to change, something you want to fix.â
âY/N⌠I⌠Iâm sorry, I didnât mean that. It was an accident. I justââ
Jaemin canât continue on, his voice trailing off as he doesnât know what to say. He wants to keep apologizing, heâll do anything it takes to take back what he just said, but the damage has already been dealt. Heâs always known heâs an asshole, sure, but this is beyond anything heâs ever said or done in the past. He just secured the seat of honor in Dante's ninth circle of hell, and thereâs no return ticket.
âYou just what? You thought it would be okay to say anything to my face just because itâs not up to your standards?â
Jaeminâs face pales. âN-no, Iâthis isnât how it's supposed to go, I justâIt just slipped out, can we start over?âÂ
A public rejection from any boy or girl would hurt infinitely less than the words Jaemin spat in your face. The things that his friends said before within earshot? You could take it because you couldnât care less about them at the end of the day. But this? This was coming from someone you trusted, someone you care about, someone you lovâNo, you donât even want to think about that.
Jaemin never loved you. He never even liked you. The harsh reality slaps you like a cold shower in the middle of a winter night, and you want to curl up into a ball under your covers and cry until you fall asleep.
And yet, you will not let him humiliate you any longer. The spell has been broken. Cinderella is back to her rags, and her Prince Charming is nowhere to be found. Sheâs stuck as a toad thatâll never change. Eyes watering, you inhale sharply, laughing quietly in disbelief before you straighten up and your face hardens.
âAre you actually listening to yourself? You think we can start over? You treat people like theyâre disposable, like theyâre nothing, and once they donât match with your theme of the week, you toss them even faster than the time it takes for you to choose an outfit.â Your chest is heaving, and the tears threaten to fall, but you push on, swallowing the lump in your throat. He reaches out for you, and you take a step back, shaking your head.
âYou canât hurt people and expect them to just let it go. I get it, I know Iâm not the thinnest, or the nicest, or the funniest, or the smartest, or the prettiest. I know that Iâm hard to love. I get it, Jaemin. Iâve always known that.â
You choke on the last sentence, swallowing hard to stifle the hiccup that bubbles up in your throat. âBut that doesnât give you the right to treat me like shit.â
Rapidly blinking back your tears, you march over to your door and throw it open with such force that the doorknob could have left a dent in the wall. You donât want to cry, youâve always been an angry crier, and you desperately want the tears to stop. You refuse to give him the satisfaction of seeing you cry and hearing your confession. He doesnât deserve any of that. Jaemin doesnât deserve your tears, and he certainly doesnât deserve your love.
âGet out.â
Jaemin stares at you, mouth agape like a fish on land. You gesture heatedly towards the outside, choking slightly. âWhat are you waiting for? I said get out.â
âY/N, Iââ
âAm I a joke to you?â you quietly ask, and his eyes widen.
âNo! No, Y/N, youâre not, I jusââ
A single tear manages to escape despite your best, frustrated efforts, and Jaemin instinctively reaches out for you. You swat his hand away, angrily swiping away the stray droplet with the sleeve of your sweater. His heart wrenches in his chest as his hand dangles limply by his side. Youâre crying because of him. He caused that, and he feels like the biggest piece of shit in the world.
You refuse to let any more fall, glaring at him through the unshed tears and entirely disgusted with the boy standing in front of you. âDonât touch me. Iâm not crying for you. Iâm crying because Iâm so angry I wasted all my time on someone who never cared about me.â
Thatâs not trueâI love you, he wants to say, but his mouth refuses to form the words because his pride wonât loosen its grip on his heart. He loves you, heâs in love with you, why canât you see that?
You steel yourself, taking one shaky breath before looking pointedly at the door and repeating yourself, âGet out. Leave me alone.â
Numbly, he makes his way over to the door, ears ringing. You glower at him, the intensity searing and digging into the side of his face. When he stands outside of your dorm, he struggles to turn around and face you helplessly. Your eyes soften for a moment, and it shoves the dagger deeper into his chest when he recognizes that look. Itâs the same look he wore when he first saw you, and the shame that emerges nearly chokes him. The mixture of pity and disappointment painted across your face revolts him entirely, and he feels like heâs going to vomit. Jaemin is utterly humiliated.
Your gaze intensifies once more when you stand up to your full height, stare unwavering and chin raised up. Gripping the doorframe tightly, you drive the final words into his heart like a stake.
âI am too good for you, Jaemin, and I will never love someone like you. I deserve better.â
And for a split second, you almost convinced yourself when you said that.
You shut the door in his face.
Jaemin calls your name through the door several times, desperation ringing clear in his tone, but it falls on deaf ears. Apologies are a foolâs best friend, and youâd be a fool yourself to believe them. Holding your breath, you wait until you hear his footsteps echo down the hallway, until the solitude greets you like an old friend. And at last, you drop the facade and let yourself cry. Back pressed against the door and head bowed, you finally let go until all the tears are gone and youâre gasping for breath, the quiet hiccups and sobs bursting forth and breaking the silence in the same way he broke your heart over and over again.
You love him.
Thereâs no one to blame, but yourself. In the end, itâs all your fault that you were in this mess. How can you be so stupid? You can put lipstick on a pig, but it would still be a pig. Built up insecurities will bubble up to the surface no matter how much mascara and blush you apply. The warning signs were all there in flashing technicolor, but they were all tied up with shiny ribbons and deceiving perfect smiles. They lit up your usual drab life of blacks, whites, and grays, and you were blinded by the glitz and glamorâ blinded by him. It is hard to see the red flags and stop signs through the rose colored Instagram filters. You trusted him and gave him your heart when you shouldâve known itâd end like this.Â
You got greedy and tried to steal the spotlight, and you received it, front and center. You are the joke. You are the punchline, the comedic relief, the center stage of a slapstick comedy show. This is what you get for going off script.
Because you love him.
You were supposed to continue to delude yourself into thinking that you donât want to find love, that you enjoy being on your own, that you enjoy being single, that you are perfectly content with never experiencing romance instead of facing the cold harsh reality head on: no one sees you as desirable or dateable. And when your friends tell you that youâre not missing out on anything with dating, you were supposed to nod and agree, when secretly, you desperately wish you can experience that for yourself instead of living vicariously through your friendsâ love lives or the 3 a.m. scrollings through cheesy romance fanfiction on Tumblr. Youâre been fine all these years, havenât you? You were doing so well living on your own.
But you love him.
Itâll come when you least expect it, thatâs what they tell you every time, but what are you to do when you canât help but expect it your whole life? What are you to do when you so desperately want to know what it feels like to be loved in that way? God, when is it going to be your turn? When is it your turn to daydream about someone and know that theyâre daydreaming about you too? When is it your turn to have someone walk you home? When is it your turn to hold hands with someone? When is it your turn to feel the giddy butterflies and experience a good night kiss? When is it your turn to be kissed in the rain? When is it your turn to experience the romance you can only dream about?
How much longer will you have to be patient? How much longer do you have to wait, living in denial over the soul crushing reality of it all? How many more stars do you need to wish upon until you learn to accept the painstaking truth? You werenât meant to be loved in this lifetime.
God, you love him.
Itâs embarrassing when it shouldnât be. You just want to be touched by hands that care, loved by a heart that beats for you, desired by someone who thinks you are enough. Itâs the way you would give up ten years of your life in a heartbeat to experience being the prettiest girl in the room just once and have people look at you. The overwhelming shame washes over you when you never had your first kiss until now with a boy who never cared about you, never went on a date before, never had a boyfriend before, and you have to lie and say itâs by choice when itâs not. Itâs not. You have so much love to give, you have so much space in your life to share, you have so much time to spend with that special someone, but the grains of the hourglass are spent waiting and longing for a stranger who will never come.Â
The thought of it all just makes you sick. It makes you sick that you wish so terribly that someone would just look in your direction for once. For once, you want to be looked at in that way like all the female protagonists experience in the movies. And you know your value shouldnât be based on desire and objectification, you absolutely know it, but it still hurts when you go out with your friends and youâre the one dancing alone or sitting back and watching the purses. Youâre the one standing there by yourself, while every single one of your pretty friends is being approached by someone. It still hurts so fucking bad when you try to put yourself out there, but guys have already moved past you or donât even acknowledge your existence simply because of your face or a number on a scale. And when he came into your life and gave you one measly ounce of attention, you ran with it when you should have run away. Itâs absolutely exhausting, leaving you out of breath and on the verge of throwing up, to chase after someone who never even looked at you, to chase after their attention, praying to god that theyâll one day make you feel like you are worth it, that youâll finally feel some sort of value.
Forget ever being loved, you werenât even wanted.
There is no such thing as happily ever afterâs for the extras. Girls like you donât get to star in love stories. Why did you ever think it would end differently?
You love him.
And he ruined you. Even worse, you let him.
You wish you never met Na Jaemin.
x. i canât go out tonight. *fake coughs* iâm sick.
You would like to give a formal apology to Bella Swan for not understanding why she was so depressed over Edward leaving her for six months and making fun of her. In your defense, you were like nine years old when the movie came out, and you were more interested in Barbies back then (Plus, you were Team Jacob because you wanted a pet dog at the time).
You didnât even go through a break up, but it sure as hell feels like one.
You probably would continue to wallow in your misery for weeks, clutching onto the only two men you could ever trust in your entire life: Ben and Jerryâs while watching every iconic 90s and early 2000s rom-coms on repeat if it werenât for your best friends. But enough is enough, and you get that you shouldnât be spending weeks crying over a boy who hasnât even spent one second thinking about you. Itâs just hard to take that first step back up again when you feel like you tripped and fell all the way down to rock bottom.
And so, you finally let your friends into your shared dorm room, and you definitely do not miss the poorly disguised look of disgust and shock when they see the giant mess on your side of the room (Youâre very grateful that Giselle has been staying at her boyfriendâs place for weeks now). Itâs an intervention at this pointâone that you desperately need, and you know it.
âOkay, give it to me straight,â you sniffle, still wrapped up in your comforter like a giant burrito and clutching onto the ice cream carton like a lifeline. You know that your friends will just rip it off like a bandage, and you have mentally prepared yourself for it. Your voice comes out wobbly still from the tears, and you hate it. âI know I was stupid for letting a guy walk all over me like that. I know if any of you were in this situation, Iâd tell you that youâre better than that and to get over him, but itâs just so hard to do it.â
âHe who shall not be named is a scumbag, and Iâm gonna kill him the next time I see him,â Lana states, pursing her lips together. âI hope he has a bad hair day every single day because I know heâd be screaming, crying, throwing up if he could never get a perfect selfie ever again.â
You choke back a sob, giving her a watery smile. âThat would destroy him.â
âGood. Fuck him. Metaphorically, not literally. Why should you care if you are the girl of his dreams or not? Be the girl of your dreams. Youâre gorgeous, smart, and funny and heâs just some guy who still doesnât know how to use the correct âyourâ in an Instagram caption.â
You can write down a thousand and one reasons why he was the most horrendous, most awful, most vile person to ever grace your life. But at the end of the day, why does it matter? What good would it do? You still love him, and thatâs the worst pill to swallow.
âI justâIâm having a hard time believing that.â
âY/N, if you believed that Jaemin wasnât a shitbag for the past four weeks and all the time before that in his life, then you can believe in yourself right now for two minutes and listen to me,â Lana says firmly, clutching onto your shoulders and forcing you to look her in the eye as she continues on, âRemember the Barbie movie? Heâs just Ken. Ken doesnât have a good day unless Barbie looks at him.â
âYeah, like channel your inner Gina Linetti. Listen to Chelsea Peretti. âMen used to hunt.â Whatâs Jaemin doing? Heâs pushing twenty and doing aegyo on camera,â Moon chimes in, and Lana nods furiously in agreement before elbowing Yangyang in his rib not-so-subtly. âContribute to the conversation, Yang.â
âHold on, Iâm thinking,â Yangyang says, pausing in the middle of your room and placing his hands on his hips.
âOh congrats, I didnât know you could do that. But stop because youâre not good at it at all,â Moon says, completely ignoring the dirty look he throws at her immediately. The little exchange brings a small smile to your face and it feels nice to laugh. Youâve forgotten how to do that. You miss your friends. Youâre grateful for them for not giving up on you when you already have.
âCome on, letâs go see âCrazy Rich Asians.â Itâll be fun. We can watch Lana fangirl over seeing her favorite actor,â Moon encourages you, and Yangyang nods in agreement. âYeah, she picked a better man after the Jaehyun fiasco.â
âOh my god, let it go. I didnât like him that much,â Lana huffs softly, grabbing one of your spare pillows and launching it square into his face in retaliation, and he lets out out a high pitched shriek that makes you giggle.
âWerenât you gonna go see it with your best friend, Yang?â You ask, glancing over at him and he shakes his head, a slightly sour expression on his face. âNah, sheâs going with Dejun already.â
âSo unfortunately, weâre stuck with him now,â Moon says solemnly as Yangyang immediately throws her a dirty look. The look on his face makes you laugh, and it makes you feel a little better and your heart a little lighter.
You shouldnât have to beg someone to love you; the right person will never make you beg. The right person would never chip away at you, erasing different parts of you, until you fit their picture perfect mold, until thereâs nothing left of you. You would never have to call your friends at 4 am, drunk and crying for their validation, praying to whatever higher being is up there for them to take you back. Your friends have never looked at the scars and freckles dotting your skin and suddenly deemed you as unlovable. Your best friend wouldnât call you fat and point out every single one of your insecurities. You are not unlovable because you decided to eat a third taco or decided to not wear makeup today or didnât shave your legs. You may fight with your parents and siblings, but never once have you felt unloved by them. Never once did you have to get on your knees and plead for them to love you back.
You know you are worthy of love because your friends and family make it look so easy. They have shown you what love is really like time and time again. Youâve been a shitty friend these past few months, prioritizing a boy over the ones who really matter. Theyâve been so patient with you this entire time, and with an open heart, you realize that it is time you finally start properly loving them and yourself too.
You are loved.
xi. thatâs so not fetch!
Jaemin slinks out of the lecture hall, noting the dirty looks your friends have sent him from the other side of the room. Heâs been standing outside of the classroom before the session starts for the past few weeks in hopes of catching you, looking like a complete creep (and definitely feeling like one). But whatâs he to do when you wouldnât return any of his texts or calls? Itâs humiliating, and he feels smaller than an ant under a microscope.
He pretends to leave class early, staking out in the bathroom across from the classroom. Counting down the minutes, he sees the first wave of students pouring out from the classrooms and finally spots you. His heart jumps to his throat, and his hands begin to grow clammy.
Youâre back to wearing your loose jeans and basic t-shirts, your favorite purple scrunchie wrapped around your wrist and an old Jansport backpack slung over your shoulder, decorated with pins of all those familiar characters from his favorite anime. Your face is bare, aside from tinted lip balm, and youâre smiling. Youâre laughing at something your friend next to you says, and with a sinking heart, Jaemin realizes that perhaps maybe you are pretty in the slightest way.
He finds himself taking one step towards you, then another, maneuvering around the other students rushing to leave. Heâs getting closer and closer, if he called out your name, you would hear him. But you wouldnât stop for him this time. He knows that.
Jaemin is getting closer, just a few more steps until he can just stretch his hand out and tap your shoulder, and his heart is pounding so hard in his chest until a pretty manicured hand grabs his upper arm lightly.
âJaemin? What are you doing here?âÂ
He pauses, turning around and seeing Somi staring back at him in surprise as she continues, âI thought you donât have any classes at this time.â
âYeah, Iââ he hesitates, glancing over at your retreating figure and Somi follows his gaze, her eyes softening as she lets go of his arm.
âOh, were you waiting for her? Sorry about that,â she apologizes, pulling away and he shakes his head, shrinking back. Maybe it was for the better that you got away. Itâs probably a sign from the universe telling him to let it go.
âNo, itâs okay. She doesnât want to talk to me anyway,â Jaemin admits at last, starting to slink off, and Somi furrows her eyebrows, a puzzled expression gracing her face as she hurries slightly to catch up with him, matching his pace. He exits the building, crushing the graded economics midterm with a red 89 circled at the top in his fist and shoving it haphazardly into the side pocket of his backpack usually reserved for his water bottle.
âWhat are you talking about? The two of you are practically glued at the hip. She adores you,â she laughs softly, tilting her head slightly as she glances over at him. He ignores her look, continuing on his way off of campus and towards his safe haven: a small dog friendly boba shop snug in between a bookstore and a 24 hour laundromat he frequents more often than he likes to admit.
 âI honestly thought youâd ask her out at some point.â
Jaemin winces at that, her light response rubbing salt into his open wounds, stitches torn and bleeding, and he spits out the next words defensively, his pride rearing its ugly head again. âNo way. I never liked her like that. Sheâs not my type at all. Have you seen her?â
âWhat is wrong with you?â Somi frowns at him, stopping in her tracks, and he halts, unable to look at her and throwing out a dismissive âWhat?â In her direction.
âWhy are you talking about her like that? I thought you liked her,â she answers, staring at him in disbelief, and he curls his fingers into fists, gripping tightly as a multitude of conflicting emotions war inside of him. He starts to walk again, barely glancing over at Somi.
âShe was just my tutor. I passed my midterm, so I donât need to be around her anymore.â He responds weakly, uncurling and recurling his fingers into fists as he desperately tries to stay calm.
It was so much easier to pretend around his other friends. Aside from Jeno, they always took his words at face value, never one to pry. And Jeno would never push him, knowing that he would eventually come to him at his own pace. But Somi? Heâs forgotten about how she can be after sheâs been so busy with her schedule, missing out from the majority of hang outs for her social work and events, and their class schedules never overlapped. She can spot a lie a mile away. She actually cares. In a way, she reminds him of you, and he canât bear to meet her gaze anymore.
âSheâs your friend,â Somi retorts, following him into the boba shop, briefly stopping to pet the adorable Samoyed wagging its tail near the entrance. âYou spent more time with her than any of us, except maybe Jeno. And you werenât just studying in the library. Iâve seen her on your finsta and close friend stories.â
âOkay, and now sheâs not. Sheâs not my friend anymore,â Jaemin answers sharply, punching his order into the self service machine. âIt happens. People stop being friends. So back off, Somi.â
âJeez, what is your problem?â she snaps back, following him towards the back, settling on a pillow in one of the comfortable nooks converted into a small seating area across from him. âI caught you following Y/N, and now you say youâre not friends?â
Jaemin hesitates, fiddling with one of the decorative pillows in his lap. âWe got into an argument.â
âYeah, but friends fight. You can apologize, right?â
Jaemin is silent.
Somi stares at him, and he wants to curl into himself. Itâs the very same look you gave him before you shut the door in his face, and he feels the bile in his throat already. Her voice is quiet. âJaemin, what did you do?â
âIâ,â he whispers, breaking off and clenching his fists. He is already replaying that moment in his head, seeing the look of utter devastation on your face, and he wants to run away. The ugly truth is front and center, and he is unable to ignore it any longer.
 âI fucked up, okay? Is that what you wanted to hear?â Jaemin bursts out, burying his face in his hands and unable to face his friend. He closes his eyes, sucking in a deep breath. âI said some shitty things to her, some really fucked up stuff.â
âLike fucked up as in messy drunk thoughts or fucked up, fucked up?â Somi says softly, hesitantly, as if she doesnât want to believe her friend is the worst of the worst. Jaeminâs heart sinks even lower than rock bottom as he continues to hang his head low.
âIâŚâ Jaeminâs voice is less than a whisper as he finally confesses the horrible truth to someone for the first time. His voice cracks as he recalls every single disgusting thing and insecurity he flung back into your face.
âI said that it would be stupid for her to believe in love at first sight, that she wasnât up to my standards, that itâs her fault, that I was ashamed of her, ashamed that I even liked her because of the way she looked.â
The silence is deafening, and Jaemin feels the same wave of humiliation wash over him as it did on that very night. Somi is speechless, and he canât bear to look at her, one hundred percent knowing that there would be a raw look of utter disgust and horror on her face because that is the exact way he would look at himself. He sits there in silence as the guilt and shame pile up even higher; he is past the point of wallowing in self pity, already drowning and gasping for breath.
âJaemin⌠she was your friend,â she murmurs, gazing at him, mouth agape as the shock finally settles in, and he flinches slightly at the past tense. âShe actually cared about you. She made you happy.â
âI know,â he says softly.
âShe was the best thing that ever happened to you.â Somi continues quietly.
Jaemin sucks in a sharp breath, biting his bottom lip. âI know.â
âThen why?â
Because I was stupid, he thinks silently, Because I am a coward. Because she embarrassed me. She made me feel small. She made me feel insignificant. She made me look at myself in the mirror, and for the first time in my life, I absolutely hated what I saw staring back at me.
âI donât know,â Jaemin whispers, staring down at his lap in resignation and unable to swallow the truth.
He knows.
xii. you canât sit with us.
You continue to avoid Jaemin in Macroeconomics, choosing to slip into class at the very last minute. You see him waiting in front of the classroom every session for the past three weeks, searching for you, but you opt to go to the professorâs office hours every time before class and end up walking with her to class as she answers your questions about the assigned readings and problems. Alice saves you a seat in the front row, and you never told her but youâre grateful when you realize she must have asked her other friends to sit around the two of you, effectively barricading Jaemin from any attempt at sitting next to you. Finals week comes and goes with the winter break following suit, and you think he has finally given up on any attempt at reaching you.
But life has an unfortunate penchant for bringing up thingsâor peopleâyou wish to forget when you least expect it. It was supposed to be an ordinary Thursday four weeks into the spring semester, and youâre exiting your last class of the day, tucking your laptop into the cute tote bag you bought from the New York Strands bookstore as you walk across campus.
âY/N.â Jaemin appears in front of you, and suddenly, all the air in your lungs seem to have been sucked out. Itâs almost embarrassing how two months of self progress can be toppled over as easily as a house of cards. Your brain says to hate him, but one glance at him still has you weak in the knees. You take a deep breath, counting to three before walking around and ignoring him entirely.
âPlease, can we just talk for five minutes? Iâm sorry.â He desperately reaches out for you, and you can see some people starting to take note of the two of you, their gazes on your back.
âLeave me alone, Jaemin.â You continue to walk away, hiking up the strap of your bag higher over your shoulder, desperately trying to quell the stupid colony of butterflies in your stomach that have laid dormant for so long. âI donât want to talk to you.â
âPlease, just five minutesâthree minutesâand Iâll leave you alone forever. Listen to me,â he says in a quiet tone. It was an order, a request, and a plea all at once.
You pause, scrutinizing him for a few moments before grabbing his arm and dragging him away from prying eyes. You stop on the secluded side of the building underneath the magnolia trees before dropping his hand. âYou have two minutes. Talk.â
âIâm an idiot.â
âGood to know youâre self aware. Youâre finally experiencing some character growth.â
Jaemin grimaces at your stony expression. âOkay, that was deserved. I truly am sorry, Y/N. Itâs my fault, I shouldnât have lashed out at you, and Iâm an asshole who took advantage of you. You do deserve better. You deserve someone better than me. But I want to be that person. You make me a better person.â
You stay quiet, and Jaemin fidgets around. âIs that⌠is that okay? I know itâs selfish of me, butââ
âYouâre right, that is selfish of you.â
Jaemin falls silent at that, face flushing before he speaks up meekly, âCanât we start over? Try again?â
In that moment, you truly pity the boy in front of you. The lost expression on his face tells it all as he desperately clutches onto whatever lifeline youâre willing to toss out. But heâs causing you to drown, and you need to cut the cord and put yourself first for once. Maybe you can change him. But you canât do this to yourself again.
You take a deep breath and pinch yourself, reminding yourself that this is the same boy who broke your heart because it wasnât pretty enough for him. âThere is no trying again. You never tried, and Iâm done trying for you. Jaemin, you donât love me. Youâve never felt that way towards me.â
âYes, I have! I do! I really do,â he protests, and you shake your head, taking a step back. He starts to take one step forward towards you and hesitates, staying in his original spot. Your gaze is cold, and he finds himself wishing that you would look at him in the way you used to.
âYou love the idea of me: the one you built up in your head,â you say, tone growing quiet. âBut Iâm nothing like her. To some degree, I think I might be the first genuine connection you ever made with a girl. You liked the way I felt about you and how I acted for you. I changed everything about myself for you, I wouldâve followed you anywhere, I wouldâve done anything for you, and you took advantage of that. You took advantage of the fact that I love you.â
You may not truly know what love is, but you know itâs something he never gave you. It stings, knowing that even after all of this, you still secretly, desperately long for the type of love you know will always be out of your reach. A part of you wants to believe him, but this time, you listen to your mind instead of your heart.
Jaeminâs head shoots up at your confession, eyes widening in belated realization, and you curl your lips inward, biting your lower lip. You love him. You love him, he now knows, and to your surprise, it didnât hurt as much as you thought it would. Three steps forward and two steps back is still one step in the right direction.
âOne day, youâre gonna find someone whoâs finally enough for youâsomeone whoâs worth making pancakes for,â you say wistfully, pausing for a minute before gathering the courage to continue.
âAnd youâre gonna fall in love with them. Like really love them. Youâre gonna love them so much that youâll try your hardest to be enough for them. Youâre gonna try so fucking hard to be the one they want, the one they love, that youâll do anything for them. Youâll even change yourself for betterâor for worse.â You grip the strap of your tote bag even tighter, a dull pang in your heart making its appearance, and Jaemin winces, lowering his eyes as the regret and guilt pools into his stomach.
âBut sometimes, it wonât be enough. Itâs not going to be enough,â you continue, swallowing hard. âAnd itâll never be enough for them. Youâre willing to move heaven and earth for them, but they wonât notice. Or maybe they donât even care. No matter how hard you try to love them, it wonât matter unless they want you. Unless they choose you. And itâll hurt like hell. Itâll hurt every single time you see them, every time you hear them, every time you think of them.â
Your voice softens, shaking slightly as you take in a wavering breath before pushing forward. âAnd when it hurts, youâre going to think of me. Youâre going to remember me because thatâs when youâll understand what it feels like. Thatâs when youâll know how I felt. How it feels to not be enough. How it feels to have your heart ripped to shreds by someone you care aboutâsomeone you love.â
His heart drops, and you give him a wistful smile before it quickly disappears, and your expression schools into one of indifference. You continue to walk forward confidently, brushing past his frozen figure. You see your friends waiting for you on the other side of the lawn, and you look over your shoulder at Jaemin one last time, taking a deep breath and steeling yourself.
âAnd you know what? I hope to fucking god it hurts you as much as you hurt me.â
The world continues to spin, you keep moving forward, and he remains rooted in his spot, unable to look away from you. There are so many Barbies and Kens out there, so many more Na Jaemins who will come into your life and sweep you off your feet, and youâll make them feel special and more than a pretty face, he belatedly realizes, heâs disposable and so easily replaceable, but thereâs only ever going to be one you.Â
As he watches you walk away, Jaemin thinks he is starting to understand.
EPILOGUE.
Life likes to play cruel jokes, and the senior year gives you the most hilarious one of all in the form of your final capstone project. Last you heard about Jaemin, he had switched his major to pre med (which was ironic to you since that field would require him to care about other people, which he clearly proved to be incapable of). However, your university decided to implement a cross collaboration between the various schools, and itâs just your luck that you find yourself paired up with Jaemin. Giving him a tight smile as you take a seat across from him in the library room he reserved, you take out your laptop.
Jaemin had asked earlier if you wanted to request a new assigned partner, but you highly doubt any professor would switch up a pairing on account of one person being guilty of being the greatest asshole to ever exist (Plus, youâll come across many guys like him in your field of work, so you might as well start building up your tolerance now).
It is the final time you will meet up with him before the big presentation, and the two of you work together in silence, only breaking it to discuss the project topic. It is neither comfortable nor uncomfortable, settled somewhere in betweenâkind of like a purgatory for relationships. Youâve stopped thinking about him a while ago already, but seeing someone who once was a part of your life always brings back memories, whether wanted or not.
âI met someone.â
Jaemin breaks the ice, unable to hold it back any longer. He feels like heâs going to explode if he doesn't get this off of his chest. There is a slight pause in your writing before you resume, but he knows you are listening.
âI met her after⌠after ourâŚâ He trails off. He doesnât know what to call itâwhat the two of you had. An almost relationship. â⌠After us.â
You continue to write, taking note of several points to be discussed based on your slide. He puts down his pen, clasping his hands together as he fiddles with one of the rings wrapped around his fingers.
âI made her blueberry pancakes.â
You sharply inhale for a brief millisecond before you jot down another bullet point. One, two, three, four, five bullet points until you can breathe normally again. Youâre twenty two years old, but you suddenly feel like youâre eighteen again. You sometimes loathed your younger self, but because of her, you learned so many things (Forgiveness is one of them).
âI donât know what else to do, except keep making her pancakes.â Jaemin sits there idly for a few moments, entirely unaware of your inner turmoil, before he laughs derisively, âSheâs in love with my best friend. She never told me, but I can just tell.â
Thereâs another pause from him. Staring down at his notebook, he swallows hard, the lump in his throat never fully going away. His voice cracks as he whispers out his question:
âDoes it ever stop hurting?â
Your pen stops moving across the paper, dropping to the side. Thereâs a black scribble from where it fell. You still continue to look at the index card, focusing on the college ruled lines until they become a mosaic blur of blue, black, and white.
âEventually.â
Your tone is impassive, and his head snaps up at your reply. You pick up the pen again. You donât look at him, but you know heâs staring at you, an unrecognizable expression in his eyes.
Perhaps, it would have been different if you had met the present day him back then instead. Perhaps, it wouldâve worked out. Maybe he would have made another girl fall in love with him, broke her heart, and come out unscathed. Or maybe he would still be the same as his past self if he hadnât met you. Itâs the butterfly effect; you donât know what would have happened, but you donât care. Not anymore.
By now, you have mourned him for longer than you have loved him.
âY/N, you were never hard to love. I was bad at loving. Iâm sorry for hurting you.â
And this time, you know he truly means itâthat Jaemin truly understands. It is good that he has learned and tried to become a better person. You just wish it didnât have to come at the expense of you.
Your first love teaches you what love isnât.
The threads holding the pieces of your heart together these past three years have always been so fragile. Just one tug at the heart strings, and everything unravels so easily, like grains of sand slipping through your fingers. Youâve nearly forgotten what heartbreak feels like, the old wounds opening up for a long forgotten friend that you had prayed you would never meet again.
You discover that it hurts even more the second time around.
âI wish I fell in love with you back then.â
His tone is forlorn, a silent resolution wrapped in happenstance. You continue to write down more notes for your part of the presentation, the soft scritches of your pen against paper almost masking your quiet response, and Jaemin nearly misses it.
âSo did I.â
#nct imagines#nct scenarios#nct x reader#jaemin scenarios#jaemin imagines#nct fluff#nct angst#jaemin fluff#jaemin angst#jaemin x reader#nct dream scenarios#nct dream imagines#nct fanfic#nct fic#jaemin fic#jaemin#na jaemin#nct dream#nct#luvpuffcore collab
666 notes
¡
View notes
Text
One More? Please? - G.S.
Synopsis. A kiss always solves everything! But when a kiss turns into something moreâŚwell, itâs only a desperate attempt to unseal yourselves from this damned prison realm, right? Right?
Pairing. Gojo Satoru x Reader
Content. MDNI, fem! reader, unprotected, coworkers to lovers, being stuck in that damn box, oral (female), mutual mĂĄsturbation, spitting, fĂĄce-sĂtting, mĂĄting press, Satoru is down bad for you, chĂłking, overstim, multiple rounds, crĂŠampie, pet names (sweetheart), swearing.
Word count. 4.4k
A/N. Happy belated two months to this blog! Concept inspired by this post by @kingkonoha.
âMaybe we should kiss and see if the box opens?â
âThatâs the dumbest fucking thing to ever come out of your mouth.â
âHey- it works in the movies! True loveâs kiss and all-â
You heave out a heavy sigh that makes even the skeleton at your shoulder shake its head in pity. Goddamn, if these curses werenât going to kill him then you will.Â
âI take it back. Thatâs the dumbest fucking thing to ever come out of your mouth.â
Satoru hooks a thumb over his blindfold to gaze at you with mock seriousness. Oh, how the mighty have fallen - and how you were teetering dangerously close to a stroke with each dramatic bat of his long lashes.
âCâmonnn~â he whines, with the flair of someone that was not sealed in an inescapable prison, âDonât tell me that in all these years youâve never once been at least a little tempted to kiss me, sweetheart.âÂ
âIâd rather kiss that dusty skull.â Shooting him a pointed look that makes even the skulls at your feet recoil. It would almost be hilarious if it wasnât for the fact that you were trapped. In the prison realm. With Gojo Satoru of all people. Possibly forever.
Shit, is this karma for all those times you ditched Satoru with Nanami instead of dealing with him yourself?
Now, Satoru might be going about it with the subtlety of a sledgehammer, but just a few minutes ago when his life flashed before his very eyes at the mere sight of Suguru - or at least, the monster wearing his body - heâd expected some of his favorite memories to be the ones with you in it.Â
You - his lilâ coworker - in all your gorgeous, smart-mouthed glory. And maybe if he was lucky, he even expected a couple glimpses of you in his future. Preferably with a giant rock on your finger.
But thatâs a story for another time, what he certainly did not expect was for your stupidly heroic (and quite beautiful) ass to jump right in the middle of the prison realmâs ensnarement.Â
Although, honestly, right now he doesnât think heâd want to be locked up in here with anyone but you - and that withering glare you send him.Â
Undeterred, Satoru has the audacity to throw his head back and laugh. Laugh. A sound youâve come to realize over the years, as innocent as it sounds, does not bode well for you or your sanity.Â
A sanity thatâs been slowly dwindling since your first day of meeting Satoru. Back then, a brash, cocky new teacher that waltzed into the halls of Jujutsu Tech in those pretentious sunglasses like he owned the place.Â
Well, not that he was any different right now. Lounging over some disgruntled skeletons, you half-expected him to pull out a deck chair and start sunbathing amidst the bones. Your begrudging coworker - and occasional bane of your existence - seemed right at home.Â
You, however, were decidedly not having the time of your life.Â
âI swear, youâre enjoying this, arenât you?â you grumble, wincing at the bones prodding you from almost every angle.Â
âCan you blame me?â he hums, now fully tugging down his blindfold to hang around his neck, âItâs not every day I get to spend quality time with my favorite person in the world.â
You scoff, strangely self-conscious as those striking blue sweep your figure from head to toe. âLucky me. Well why donât you spend this quality time helping me figure out how the hell we can get out of here.â
âI already told y-â
âAnything but that.â
With a sulky huff, Satoru peers down at you, âThen we just wait till someone gets us out of here. Iâm sure Megumi-chan is just tearing his emo hair out trying to unseal this thing.â
â...â
âYouâre absolutely correct, Yuji then. OrâŚâ he tilts his head towards a sad pile of bones, âWe end up like our little friend over there. Though Iâd make a far better looking skeleton-â
You donât hear the rest of Satoruâs rant over the small noise of concern that falls from your lips. Something hot and prickly pooling in your stomach at the fact that yes you really were stuck in the prison realm with Gojo Satoru. Possibly forever. And no this wasnât some strange dream like when you and Shoko accidentally raided the wrong brownie box in the kitchen.
Shit.Â
And perhaps it showed on your face, because youâre jolted out of your reverie by warm fingers intertwining with yours. Grounding. Satoruâs eyes now searching yours with an intensity that made you squirm uncomfortably.Â
âHey, weâll figure this out, okay?â he mutters softly. âRemember that time we accidentally set the training ground on fire?â leaning in closer now, âOr that mission we got chased by that cursed vending machine?â
You roll your eyes, a reluctant smile tugging at the corners of your lips despite yourself. âYeah, and then you nearly got us killed trying to order a sweet tea. â
Satoru chuckles, squeezing your hand reassuringly. âSee? It worked out, didnât it? It always does, sweetheart.âÂ
And if your heart does a strange little lurch, well, then you just blame it on the femur jabbing into your side.Â
All is quiet in your little hell. That is, until.
âHey, SatoruâŚdoes kissing really work in the movies?âÂ
You barely catch the way Satoruâs breath hitches ever-so-slightly as he leans in closer. eyes sparkling with mischief. And oh you knew that look - one that was usually accompanied by a lecture by Yaga, one that sent shivers down your spine. He grins, âWell, thereâs only one way to find out, hm?â
Embarrassment and amusement bubbles inside you, tumbling out in the form of a barely-audible, âA peck. One.â
âAwww. Eight?ââ
âNo.â
âFive?â
âSatoru.â
Minty breath fanning your face, âOkay okay, one peck and a kiss to your forehead. Câmon, itâs a bargain~â
Pinching your nose, you sigh out a weary, âThis is so stupid. Fine, but if it doesnât work then Iâm strangling you.â
And itâs all that is said before his lips are on yours. Â
Soft. Satoruâs lips were so soft. And he tasted so unfairly of caramel apples and sweet, sweet mischief. Just like him. Feather-light and fleeting - yet the kiss burns into your brain with an intensity that you strangely didnât mind.
Itâs over before you know it. The cold air hits your lips as Satoruâs words ring in your ears, a disappointed little, âAw, that didnât work.â
Barely even risking a glance at the still very sealed realm, your body reacts before your mind - the expensive cotton of his uniform collar soft against your fingers as you pull Satoru towards you with a sense of urgency you canât quite explain.
And then youâre kissing him. And heâs kissing you because shit this is all that Satoruâs been dreaming about since he turned 23 and suddenly realized that oh you were frighteningly everything that he ever wanted.Â
âS-Satoru,â you whisper, breathless against his lips.Â
âShhhh, my girl. One more. Didnât work.âÂ
His lips are searing on yours. Urgent and greedy, because fuck if it took getting trapped in the prison realm to finally kiss you then God knows when heâll be able to again.Â
Which is why he breathes you in like he doesnât have enough time, and probably never will - even in this godforsaken box where time never passes.Â
âShit. O-one more.â
Drinking in your sweet gasps as he intertwines his tongue with yours, tasting how sinfully delicious you were. Satoruâs hands wander the expanse of your body, cupping your head to kiss you deeper, snaking down to squeeze your ass - and everything in between.Â
Pulling away ever-so-slightly with a playful bite to your bottom lip, he leaves a trail of hot, open-mouthed kisses down your neck. The disappointed whine that leaves your pretty mouth makes all the blood in Satoruâs body rush to his cock.Â
âSweetheart.â he grunts into the crook of your neck, lips ghosting over your racing pulse. âYâthink I kissed the wrong lips?â
Oh?Â
Satoruâs words send a jolt of electricity running down your spine - all the way down to your heated cunt. âW-what?â you managed to choke out, cheeks flaring as he raises his eyes to meet yours and-
Oh.
Oh, shit. If the curses werenât going to kill you then Satoru sure might.Â
Youâre snapped out of your thoughts by Satoru carefully jostling the two of you so that heâs lying on his back, your body manhandled to straddle his pretty face.Â
âSatoru, when you mean âwrong lipsâ...here?â you trail off, still reeling from him and the abrupt change in position and him.Â
âExactly what I mean,â he chuckles, the sound rumbling through his chest and vibrating beneath your dripping cunt. âNow, spread âem wider fâme. Let me taste you- Need it sâbad.â
Body moving as if on autopilot, your knees part wider to let him greedily take in the sight of your soaked panties. Beads of slick seeping through the thin fabric each time his hot breath meets your cunt.Â
But not for long - the cool air hits you before you realize whatâs happening. Because Satoru is ripping your flimsy panties off with one hand. Throwing it behind to God-knows-where with the urgency of a madman.Â
âShit, so wet fâme already.â he groans, mouth watering at the obscene sight of you clenching around nothing. âSâgorgeous. You really are perfect everywhere, huh?â he mutters through lazy, languid kisses along your thighs. Tongue darting out just so to leisurely trace circles along the heated skin.Â
Strong arms wrap around your thighs, the stretch nothing with the two long fingers spreading your swollen folds apart. Your face burns from just how adoring Satoru looks below you.
You buck into his touch, âHngh- Please. Wanâ your mouth on me.â
And perhaps the great Gojo Satoru decided to be merciful for once in his life, because without another word, heâs surging forward. Tongue flicking out to tease your sloppy entrance, pooling your juices before tipping his head back, back, back to let it slide down his throat so sinfully.
Shit, Satoru could just cum in his pants right now, of course you taste heavenly. Better than he couldâve ever imagined on any lonely night.Â
You shudder as he flattens his tongue across your folds, sliding teasingly between them, grazing your swollen clit just barely at an unhurried rhythm that almost has Satoru forgetting where he was. But quite frankly, he couldnât give less of a fuck about it either.
âThis what you wanted, sweetheart?â he hums around your clit, the vibrations making you squeal. Sucking gently, tongue rolling harshly against your bundle of nerves, over and over- âCause itâs what Iâve been wanting for years.â
The words ring in your ears almost as much as the lewd squelches below. Years?
âF-fuck- feels hngh- What do you mean y-years, Satoru?âÂ
Oh, Satoru thinks he could pass out just at the way you whine out his name so prettily. Eyes rolling to the back of his head, a hand hastily snaking down to unbuckle his pants. âMhmm~ Couldnât go a day without sparring with you where I didnât think of bending you over and tasting you right there yâknow.â
Your eyes snap down to meet Satoruâs hazy, half-lidded ones. Something dark and feral shining within them. And right now, thighs wrapped around his head, you don��t think heâs ever looked happier. White locks splayed out, a fucked-out expression on his face as his tongue bullies past your folds, you could feel the slight smile curling his lips against you.Â
Itâs overwhelming - both his confession and the way Satoru was making out with your cunt like a man starved.
Nose-deep in your pussy, tongue alternating between its abuse on your throbbing clit and dipping in and out of your sloppy hole at a maddening pace. Mouth only speeding up ruthlessly at the way you convulse and grind involuntarily on top of him.
God, Satoru was going insane at the way your walls were sucking him up so good, clamping down with each push of his tongue.Â
âShit- made jusâ fâme. You like that, donât you?â he growls against your cunt, voice hoarse with desire. âLike fucking my face with your pussy?â
âOh! Ngh, yes Satoru- L-love it-â
A bruising grip on your hips, encouraging you to rock against his face. Harder. Tongue more desperate. He couldnât get enough. Meeting your every grind, tongue lapping at your cunt so obscenely.Â
Breaths ragged and hot against your cunt, drinking you in with the desperation of a man that wouldnât mind giving up air for your essence. And it was Satoru - of course he wouldnât mind.
Especially with the large hand snaking up your thigh, going from drawing reassuring patterns at your hips to rubbing tight, little circles on your pulsing clit. Hasty, and urgent - like he had no time to waste. âThaâs right, my girl. Give it up for me,â
Every cell in your body is on fire, every nerve ending singing with pleasure at the way Satoru plays your body like an instrument.Â
âMâclose, Satoru- Hah- sâclose.â you moan breathlessly, a hand tangling in his soft strands. Using it as leverage to ride Satoruâs pretty face just the way you like it.
But you didnât have to - because Satoru seems to already know exactly what to do. Exactly how to quirk his tongue just right to brush against all your most sensitive spots. Exactly how to match the rhythm of his abuse on your clit to the way he was tonguefucking you into delirium. Exactly how to look at you with such a hungry expression that devours you almost as much as his mouth.Â
âCum fâme, sweetheart.â
Satoru didnât even have to ask. Because youâre cumming with a strangled gasp of his name. White-hot pleasure coursing through you like lightning, body trembling as you cum all over Satoruâs pretty face.Â
Hands moving your limp, boneless hips across his face, forcing you to ride out peak after peak on his red lips.
As the blood roaring in your ears bates, and you blink back your vision, the first thing you see are those familiar blue eyes gazing up at you. Holding you steady, lips brushing gentle kisses along your inner thighs.Â
Oh, how beautiful he was like this.
âS-Sâtoru?â you mewl, still sensitive from your orgasm as Satoru shifts underneath you to sit you prettily in his lap.
âMhm?â he nuzzles your neck.
âOne more. It didnât work.â
Oh, if you knew the only way to shut up Gojo Satoru was to say something like this then you wouldâve done it a lot sooner.Â
But Satoruâs stunned silence doesnât last for long, because he grins, low and sultry, âYouâre right. It didnât work.â
The metallic clinking of a belt echoes in the stuffy chamber as Satoru hastily pushes down his pants. Cock springing free to hit his lower abs, âWhat a shame.â
You blink at the sheer size of him - he was going to split you in two. It was unfair, really. Water is wet. Gojo Satoru has a big dick.Â
But oh was he pretty - so pretty. Prominent veins glistening in the dim lighting, fat tip flushed your favorite shade of delicate pink, leaking furiously in between your thighs.
Gulping, you reach out to wrap your hand around his achingly hard cock. So warm and heavy in your hands. âY-yeah, what a shame.â
Both of you watch - entranced - at the way he twitches in your grasp at the mere sound of your voice. A maddening little bump! bump! bump! against your palm as you begin pumping him slowly - so agonizingly slow.Â
âOh- Feel sâgood, sweetheart.â Satoru hisses lowly as you swipe at the precum beading at this head. Thumbing teasingly under his sensitive slit, tracing delicately along his veins.Â
And by God does it do something to you to see the great Gojo Satoru falling apart for you, hair tousled, lips kiss-bitten, and eyes looking at you like he wanted to positively eat you alive. It made your cunt throb so desperately, slick forming a dark wet patch on his trousers.Â
Not one to be left behind, his long fingers deftly snake down to your dripping cunt. Not wasting any time before bullying his fingertips past your swollen folds, curling expertly to press down against that one spot that has your fist faltering on his cock. Hard.Â
Pretty little moans left your lips at the way Satoru so easily matches your pace. Thrusting knuckle-deep into your pussy in and out - hitting that spot over and over.
âShit, Toru- sâdeep inside me. Iâm- hngh-â
Satoru was in heaven, really. You were so warm and wet around both his fingers and his throbbing cock.Â
Only two thoughts running through his mind right now - 1. He was right, your hands were softer and more sinfully delicious around his swollen cock. And 2. The hardest battle heâs ever fought was probably right now - at your mercy, trying not to spill all over your hands because heâd be damned if he finally scored the girl and came in two seconds.
Shit, he thinks fingers almost erratic now, he needs you to cum. Right now.Â
As if sensing his urgency, your moves become more frantic, Satoruâs brows furrowing at the way you increase your pace. His hips twitch, as if trying to thrust into your fist. matching your pace as you start stroking him harder, faster.Â
Ah, but alas, the great Gojo Satoruâs reputation precedes him.Â
âOh, fuck- Mâgonna-â And soon enough, youâre seeing stars behind your eyes - or maybe those were tears - as you cum. Hard.Â
Body moving before your mind, youâre clenching around Satoruâs fingers, grinding down so ferally as you edge him closer and closer. âCâmon, Toru. One more, right?â you whisper brokenly, lips ghosting his ear.
Breath coming in short, strained gasps of what sounded like your name now, âOh- fuck ngh- so close.â he warns, voice hoarse. âIf you keep doing that, I wonât be responsible for what happens next.â
You smirk, raising a brow, âIs that a threat, Satoru?â
Willing his fucked-out eyes open, they bore into yours as he utters, âNo, ah- itâs a p-promise.â
Without warning, Satoru clasps your wrists, forcing you to stop pumping him. The disappointed mewl threatening to spill from your lips is cut off just as your back hits the ground.
Slam!
You think you could almost get whiplash from how swiftly Satoru had you caged and splayed out so shamefully beneath him.Â
You whine, âBut you didnât even get to-â
âFuck, not now. Gotta feel you or else mâgonna cum so embarrassingly all over your fist.â He rests his throbbing erection laid out so enticingly across your stomach, leaking hot precum onto your skin. And that makes you shut up, eyes mapping where it ended and realizing that yeah, you mightâve faced more mercy with the curses outside of this box. âBesides. One more, right?â
And before you can respond, Satoruâs spitting on you once. Twice. Thrice.
You flinch as the wads of saliva hit your dripping cunt, mixing with your slick so obscenely as Satoru smears it across your swollen folds. Your mouth drops into a soft oh! of disbelief as he promptly pops his thumb into his mouth, groaning at the taste.Â
âShit.â Satoru hisses lowly, âOne more might just not be enough.â
Not wasting a moment longer, heâs bullying his throbbing cock into your snug cunt. Head thrown back as your plush walls desperately try to accommodate his size.
âOh. Oh shit hah- shouldâve been locked up here ngh- sooner.â he groans, words straight from his cock. âFeel sâheavenly around m-me.â Because God Satoru thinks he wouldnât even mind staying here for the rest of his life if it meant he got to have you like this.
You moan at the positively delicious stretch of your pussy, plush walls unable to decide between pushing him out and milking the soul out of him. âHah- Toru sâtoo big. I canât-âÂ
âYou will.â he grits out, teeth clenched and brows furrowed as he focuses on letting you adjust. Pressing inch by fucking inch. Eyes rolling to the back of his head as he fights that feral part of himself that just wants to plunge into your pretty pussy till his tip kisses your cervix, and youâre drunk on nothing but his cock.
But he didnât have to - because youâre immediately wrapping your legs around his toned waist, pulling Satoru to you recklessly until his heavy balls smack your ass. Tufts of snowy white hair - already so wet with your slick and his precum - finally meeting your cunt.
âAh! Shit, sâfull Toru.â you keen, body bowing into his.
Thereâs not even a hair's breadth between your bodies now as Satoru chuckles darkly. âYou little minx. Thought you couldnât handle me, but you really wanted to be split apart on my cock, huh?â
You feel almost shy under his gaze as you mumble out a quiet little, âWell you did say one more.â
Ah, Satoru thinks deliriously, if you arenât Mrs. Gojo by the time you two get out of this then thereâs seriously something wrong with him.Â
But he doesnât tell you that. Instead with a satisfied smirk, he claims your lips in a searing kiss, sucking your tongue so lewdly as he did with your cunt. Parting for only a second before pressing his lips to yours again. And again. And again, as if it hurt to part.
âMhm. Always wanted to do this, sweetheart.â he hums against your pretty lips. âFuck ever since you hah- walked in on that first day.âÂ
Kissing you sweetly with a tenderness that doesnât translate to his hips as pulls back, back, back. All the way till his angry, hard tip was just grazing your sloppy entrance. âOne more.â
Body moving before his mind, his hips start fucking into your dripping cunt recklessly. Satoru doesnât fuck you with the finesse he imagined he would all these years, rough, harsh thrusts fueled by pure need and all the desperation from these last few years.
In one, fluid movement, the burn of the stretch hits you before the realization that Satoru has thrown your legs over his sculpted shoulders.Â
âAh- So good, Toru. Oh my god- hah-â you mewl at the change in angle. His pulsing dick expertly hitting that one spot inside you which has your words slurring together, body arching off the floor to press so impossibly close against him.Â
And, well, Satoru isnât any better - because heâs slamming his cock into you mindlessly. Hitting that spot over and over.Â
With one hand, he caresses your stomach. Whispering out a ragged, âFeel me inside? Feel me rightâŚâ Pressing his palm down hard, âHere.â
The other forces you to look up at him, drinking in your whines of âYes yes yes, can feel you s-so deep hngh- inside me, Toru.âÂ
Youâre so cockdrunk and full of Satoru that you barely notice the hands groping their way down your body. Catching harshly on your swollen clit, starting to draw, quick, frenzied circles that match the cadence of his hips smacking into yours.Â
âLook at me.â he murmurs raspily, âOpen your mouth.â
And you can do nothing but take it, tongue lolling out so lewdly for the warm stream of spit that hits it. Once. Twice.Â
You look up at him with teary eyes, as you take it all -Â anything and everything he was giving. And it makes Satoru bow his head with a fucked-out groan, cock twitching so animalistically as it keeps plunging inside you roughly. Deft fingers on your clit becoming more desperate.
Harder. Faster. Balls squeezing so painfully. Like a lamb to slaughter, he was going to eat you up - and you were going to let thim.
You squeal at the overstimulation, hips bucking up for more more more-
âGod, sweetheart, you donât know what you do to me.â he moans, voice strained with desire and the euphoria of getting everything heâs wanted for so long. It was driving him insane. âNow câmon. One more. Give me one more like my good girl.â
âHngh- yes- Toru!â
You donât even know what âone moreâ means anymore - all you do know is that youâre cumming and cumming all around Satoruâs unforgiving cock. Walls fluttering so snugly, your body convulses as you cream around his cock. Nails dragging down the expanse of his sculpted back, Satoruâs name leaving your bruised lips and into the heady air like a prayer every time his tip kisses your cervix. His new favorite melody.
And that seems to be what makes him snap as well - because with a final, sloppy thrust, heâs painting your walls such a sinful white. Pumping thick, hot ropes of his cum into your quivering cunt.Â
âShit- yeah, my girl. Take it. Take it all fâme.â Satoru shudders above you, head thrown back, chest heaving as he fucks you through your high. Movements nothing more than shallow, mindless little thrusts to get you both off so animalistically.Â
It was so fucking filthy - and exactly what you needed so badly. He was exactly what you needed so badly.Â
Now, Satoru only had to take one look as you use him so obscenely for your pleasure - eyes dazed, drool trickling down the corner of your mouth - before he thinks he might just cum again. And again. And again until he physically couldnât anymore.
But firstâŚ
Pulling out of your heavenly pussy with a lewd pop! His long fingers delicately collects the mixture of slick and cum now gushing out of you obscenely.Â
Aw, what a waste, Satoru muses as it pools below you sinfully. If it was up to him he wouldnât waste a single drop from your pretty cunt.Â
But no matter.Â
Abruptly, Satoru bullies two fingers into your mouth - forcing you to taste yourself, to taste him. Pressing right at the back of your tongue in a way that has you choking and gagging around him, teary eyes just begging up at him. Perfect - you were so perfect for him.Â
Kissing your forehead with a tenderness that doesnât match his actions, he hums, faux innocence lacing his words, âWhat a shame, the box didnât open yet.â
And oh does he love the excitement lighting up your exhausted eyes. Pretty thighs twitching underneath him as a slow, fucked-out little smile curls your lips.Â
âOne more? Please?â
A/N. Plagiarism not authorized.
#gojo x reader#gojo smut#gojo x you#jjk x reader#jjk smut#jjk x you#gojo satoru x reader#gojo satoru smut#gojo satoru x you#jujutsu kaisen x reader#jujutsu kaisen smut#jujutsu kaisen x you#jjk#jjk fic#jujutsu kaisen#gojo satoru#tonywrites
13K notes
¡
View notes
Text
I mean?
Synopsis: On a press tour with your co-star Sebastian Stan, the interviewer asks you a question about another film he did and the answer surprises him.
Pairing: Sebastian Stan x Actress!Y/N
Word Count: IDK I'm too sleep deprived to count.
A/N: Bro I am on a resurgence. Might just fuck around and continue writing more fanfics or whatever.
Itâs another busy day promoting your new movie with Sebastian, The Road Trip. It's a funny romcom about two best friends going on a long trip to see another friend who your character is dating. Interestingly enough, the guy who plays him is Chris Evans. The interviews are currently being done in pairs, and you're with Sebastian.
You've always been candid, speaking your mind without feeling shy. Deep down, you're a bit of a pessimist, accepting things as they are. When you first heard from your agent that you were cast in The Road Trip alongside Sebastian Stan and Chris Evans, you laughed hysterically. The idea that you, an unconventional beauty, were chosen to be on screen with those two seemed surreal. You never really think about dating co-stars, which helps with acting in general. The media is impressed with how chill you are around A-list actors, and even though it hasnât fully sunk in yet, the industry has started promoting you to that list.
The interview has been going on for about 15 minutes when another journalist joins, mostly asking about the experience of working with the cast.
âItâs my first romcom, can you believe it?â you say.
âFirst?!â Sebastian stares in mock disbelief.
âI know, right?!â You feign surprise.
The interviewer continues, âHow does it feel to do something lighter and a bit comedic for once?â
âYou mean, a movie where no one dies?â Sebastian covers his mouth at your response.
âI mean essentially,â the interviewer laughs. âWait, no one dies?!â They nudge you playfully.
âI mean, Iâm not sure, no spoilers,â you say, breaking the fourth wall and looking into the camera. Sebastian cackles. âItâs definitely refreshing. It feels like going to school for some reason. Like I donât want to miss a class just because I might miss something wild happening.â
âWhat?â Sebastian glares. âWhat school did you go to?â
âI mean, aside from the learning stuffâŚâ You grimace. âItâs fun, honestly. Iâd love to do more romcoms. Itâs very down-to-earth and just resonates with you so much. I donât wanna get too cheesy, but Iâm such a hopeless romanticâthis is my jam.â
âSebastian, howâs your experience working with Chris again, this time outside of the Marvel universe?â
âWait, this isnât in the Marvel Universe?!â you butt in. Sebastian again, fakes a loud gasp. You two laugh. This interview feels like itâs going nowhere.
âItâs totally fun, as Y/N mentionedâit really is like going to class. But most of my scenes are with Y/N, so sheâs like the lab partner Iâve never had. Chris was always texting us, checking which location weâre going to be at, making sure weâre scheduled on the same day. Itâs fun when weâre both on set.â
You nod in agreement. âYeah, weâve got a good rhythm going. Itâs like having a little family on set. Plus, Chris is always the one who brings snacks, so thatâs a bonus.â
Sebastian laughs. âOh, absolutely. Chris and his endless supply of trail mix.â
The interviewer chuckles. âSounds like you all have a great dynamic. Was there a favorite scene you both enjoyed filming together?â
You think for a moment. âI really loved the scene where weâre stuck in the car during that rainstorm. It was so chaotic, but we had a blast improvising and just playing off each other.â
Sebastian nods. âYeah, that was a good one. The rain machine was going full blast, and we were just trying not to crack up the entire time.â
The interviewer smiles. âIt sounds like it was a lot of fun. And the chemistry definitely shows on screen. Speaking of different roles, Y/N, Sebastianâs been in the movie Fresh where he plays a sociopathic killer who preys on lonely women pretending to be a genuine guy.â
âI donât like where this is going,â you say, laughing, as Sebastian shakes his head.
âWould you, like Noa, fall prey to Steveâs antics?â This question gets a louder laugh from Sebastian as your face shows pure shock. You hold him back with your hand and say,
âIâve thought about this, to be honest,â you start, looking at Sebastian as he raises his eyebrows, impressed.
âOh, you have?â
You laugh and continue, patting his thigh and looking back at the interviewer. âMe and my friend talked about it a while back. And itâs frightening because I wouldâve probably ended up on a chopping block.â
âNoooo!â Sebastian shouts, âI was rooting for you.â
âNo! But, like, you are incredibly good-looking and charismatic. It would be hard not to give my number at the grocery aisle.â
He tilts his head at your response. âSurely not good enough to get yourself killed?!â
âYouâd be surprised how far Iâd even go,â you say, as the interviewer laughs with you both. âOh god, I need to call my therapist,â you add, ending the topic with the three of you gagging.
âMight just have to talk to mine too, after hearing that.â
You can already feel TikTok saving this clip and turning it into a meme.
You notice, after you call Sebastian good-looking, heâs been eyeing you sideways and biting his lip. As if heâs suddenly gone bashful. You canât help but feel a boost in your ego. Could it be that Stan is shy? You make it a point to tease him for the remainder of the interview.
âWhatâs something funny or unexpected that happened on set?â
âOh, there were so many moments,â you start. âOne time, we were filming this really serious scene, and out of nowhere, a bird flew into the set and landed right on Sebastianâs shoulder.â
Sebastian laughs. âYeah, I had no idea what to do. I just froze, and then Y/N started making bird noises to try and get it to fly away.â
You laugh, nodding. âIt took a good ten minutes to get back into character after that. Everyone was cracking up.â
The interviewer grins. âThat sounds hilarious. Itâs great to hear that you all had such a good time. Speaking of moments on set, were there any funny or awkward moments while filming the more romantic or intimate scenes?â
Sebastian raises an eyebrow, smirking. âOh, plenty. Like the time we were shooting that kiss scene in the rain, and Y/N kept slipping on the wet pavement.â
You roll your eyes playfully. âHey, it was slippery! You were the one who canât stop laughing during takes.â
Sebastian laughs. âTrue, true. But come on, we both know it was because you were so nervous about kissing me.â You notice him biting back.
You gasp in mock offense. âExcuse me, I was not nervous! I was just...distracted by how ridiculously good-looking you are. Itâs hard to concentrate when you have that face right in front of you.â He smiles uncontrollably again, feeling defeated by your nonchalance. He wonders, how are you so good at this?
The interviewer laughs, clearly enjoying the banter. âSo, who do you think had the hardest time keeping a straight face during those scenes?â
You both point at each other simultaneously, then laugh.
Sebastian leans back, shaking his head. âDefinitely Y/N. There was this one scene where we were supposed to be having this deep, romantic conversation, and she just couldnât stop giggling.â
You nudge him playfully. âWell, you werenât helping with all your ad-libs! You kept whispering things like, âIs that your stomach growling or are you just happy to see me?ââ
Sebastian laughs. âHey, I was trying to lighten the mood! And letâs not forget the scene where we had to stare into each otherâs eyes for what felt like an eternity. I swear, Y/N, you blink more than anyone I know.â
You smirk. âOnly because I was trying to avoid getting lost in those baby blues of yours.â At this point, Sebastian was laughing hard, but feeling nervous at your jokes. He secretly wished it were all real, his ears were red and hot. Heâs already thinking of how to approach you after the interview and get himself out of the friend zone which he didnât even thought heâd be in, having found a new interest in you.Â
The interviewer looks between the two of you, amused. âIt sounds like you both had a lot of fun with it. Do you think all that chemistry will translate to the screen?â
Sebastian nods. âOh, definitely. I think our off-screen dynamic really helped make the on-screen relationship feel more genuine. Plus, Y/N here is an amazing actress. She made it easy.â
You smile, feeling a bit bashful. âWell, Sebastianâs not too bad himself. Itâs hard not to enjoy working with someone whoâs so talented and, letâs be honest, ridiculously attractive.âÂ
Here she goes again .Sebastian grins. âRight back at you. But letâs be real, weâre both just incredibly good-looking people trying to make a movie here.â The internet is gonna have a field day.
The interviewer laughs. âSounds like a tough job! Any last funny or romantic moments youâd like to share?â
You think for a moment. âThere was this one scene where we had to dance together. Neither of us are professional dancers, so there were a lot of missteps and toe-stepping. But it ended up being one of the sweetest scenes because it felt so real and unpolished.â
Sebastian nods. âYeah, that was a great scene. It was supposed to be this perfectly choreographed dance, but it turned into us just goofing around and having fun. I think it really captured the essence of our characters' relationship.â
The interviewer smiles, clearly delighted by your stories. âWell, thank you both for sharing these wonderful moments. Itâs been a pleasure talking with you.â
As you and Sebastian leave the interview room, you head towards the lobby where a few other cast members are mingling. The energy is still high from the fun and laughter of the interview. Sebastian nudges you playfully as you walk.
âHey, remember in the interview when you called me incredibly good-looking and charismatic?â he teases, a mischievous glint in his eye.
You roll your eyes, grinning. âOh, come on. Donât let it go to your head, Stan.â
He chuckles. âToo late. Iâm pretty sure Iâm going to bring that up every chance I get now.â
âYou would,â you laugh, shaking your head. â Itâs not like I was lying.â
Sebastian stops walking, turning to face you. âWell, thank you. And for the record, youâre pretty incredible yourself. Both on screen and off.â
You feel a warm blush creeping up your cheeks, putting a palm to your chest as if to continue the gag. âThanks, Seb. That means a lot.â
He smiles, his eyes softening. âNo, really, itâs been really great working with you. I think we make a pretty good team.â
âI think so too,â you agree, feeling a flutter in your stomach, you realize heâs actually serious now. Thereâs a moment of silence as you both just look at each other, the playful teasing from earlier now replaced with something more tender.
Sebastian breaks the silence first. âSo, what do you say we celebrate wrapping up the promotion tour? Maybe dinner tonight?â
You raise an eyebrow, teasingly. âIs this your way of asking me out, Stan?â
He grins, a little sheepishly. âMaybe it is. What do you think?â
You pretend to think about it for a moment, then nod. âI think it sounds like a great idea.â
âPerfect,â he says, looking genuinely pleased. âIâll pick you up at eight?â
âEight it is."
Check my other stuff out too? | M A S T E R L I S T
Feedback, likes and reblogs are appreciated!!!
HMU WITH AN ASK IF U WANNA GET TAGGED
Permanent taglist!!! @gracielou0518 / @memory-of-a-goldfish / @thatbitchsaidhi / @xxashy999xx / @queenlouisa2001 / @shliic / @speggehi / @blackdaisybitch / @tuliptx / @m-a-t-91 / @milkshakeslou-blog / @fireboltrose7559 / @justmesadgirl / @makloveswritingofficial-blog / @cocacola-cocaine / @impalatobakerstreet / @laochbaineann / @justakpopfan4 / @kiramotherofsnails / @yknott81 / @heartssick / @thisismysecrethappyplace / @oldwhalien / @padackles2010 / @lolabean1998 / @ayee-style
#bucky barnes#bucky barnes x reader#sebastian stan#sebastian stan x reader#marvel#sebastian stan fanfic#actress!reader#bucky barnes imagine#bucky x reader
1K notes
¡
View notes
Note
Thoughts on stalker x stalker??
â đŚđđ¤đ đ˛đ¨đŽ đŚđ˘đ§đ | đŹ.đŁđ˛
âš PAIRING: stalker ex bf ! jake x stalker ex gf ! reader
âš SUMMARY: You and Jake, exes torn apart, developed a mutual obsession with each other overtime, the lingering romance coming to light with a simple flash of his cameraâŚ
âš WARNINGS: BIG DICK JAKE who records a lil sextape of him fingering you because he's a helpless titty fixated perv, unprotected sex (cowgirl), some crying, a brief handjob and fingering session, kinda angsty
âš WORD COUNT: 3.5k
âDo you really see better with those glasses on?â
Jake's chocolate brown eyes peeked at you through his specs, a gentle hum rumbling from his throat before answering.
âNo. I mostly wear them for the art student aesthetic Iâm going for⌠now don't smile, pretty.â
Snap.
You let the small smile on your face relax at his instructions. âAnd the other reason?â You pressed, watching as he angled the lens a little higher over you this time.
âHm, dunno... maybe because cute girls always ask about them?â
You hated it whenever he talked about other girlsâ
Snap.
Another click of his camera sounded throughout the quiet studio, itâs white flashes lighting up the dim room.
âSo you like the attention then?â You teased, watching as his facial expression remained nonchalant.
Focused.
âYour attention? Yes,â he admitted, narrowing his eyes behind the camera. âMight be one of my favorite things, actuallyâŚâ
Snap.
Good answer Jakey, you thought to yourself, trying your best to keep a neutral facial expression before him.
âOne of your favorites just like old cameras, apparently...â you went on⌠âHow come you never use the new one I bought you for your birthday last year?â
âBecause,â Jake answered while lining his eyes up with the camera lens, âthis one is much easier for me to carry around... I like that itâs portable...â
Why would he need a camera on the go, you asked yourself silently⌠even though, the reality was that Jake had actually dropped the other camera while following you one nightâ
Snap.
âJeez, how many more shots do you need, Peter Parker?â
âYou'll know when I'm finished,â the dark eyed boy replied with a foreign rasp to his tone, index finger gently squeezing into the camera button as he continued. âNow stick your tongue out for me.â
âI'm sorry?â
Snap.
His unusual sentence really caught you off guard this time, a feeling of chills washing over you as he took his lower lip into his teeth.
âBeautiful,â he said almost breathlessly, âjust try following my directions next time though, yeah?â
âJake, I need a break...â You sighed, changing your position on the couch as his vision remained glued behind the camera.
âIn a minute, ____âŚâ
Snap.
He used your first name on purpose because you used his, and he knew you were the type of girl who didnât like that very much.
âI said thatâs enough, alright?â
You slightly raised your voice at him, his demeanor remaining just as calm as before once a prolonged sigh escaped his throat.
âI suppose five minutes of wasted time wouldnât hurt,â he said sarcastically, placing his red camera on the stool beside him before extending a hand, helping you off the couch.
âThanks,â you replied half-heartedly, grabbing the large white sheet from the couch arm and wrapping it around your naked body.
âI could never get tired of this honestly,â Jake confessed, watching you intently as you poured yourself a cup of water from the nearby cooler.
âTired of what?â You asked in between your first sip, his eyes being all over you except your face as you spoke.
âLooking at you,â was all he said for you to roll your eyes at his words, making him chuckle at your reaction.
âIâm serious, yâknow that?â
âMhm⌠I can tell,â you smirked with a nod, taking the last sip of your water before making your way back over to plop on the couch. âHow about you go over your pictures⌠youâll never know if we caught the perfect one already if you donât checkâŚâ
He didnât verbally respond to your suggestion, only nodding in agreement as he reached for the camera, clicking through its film.
To no oneâs surprise, Jake, who doubled as your pervy ex-boyfriend and personal neighborhood stalker, felt himself getting hot all over again just from looking at the pictures of you displayed on the grainy screen.
Today's excuse to photograph you? He needed a nude model for his chiaroscuro themed visual project at the fancy art university he attended.
You knew Jake wouldâve a hard time finding any other female (or male) to willingly get naked for him, so you obliged⌠under the small condition that he wouldnât try to fuck you afterwards.
Simply put, your infatuation with him always made it easier to agree to whatever stupid favors he needed you to doâ
âGod,â he groaned under his breath, taking a seat as an attempt to hide the boner slowly growing behind his pants.
âDamn, are they really that bad?â You asked with worried brows, misinterpreting his reaction.
âN-no, not at all,â he corrected, eyes still glued to the camera screen.
âOh... well⌠okay then,â you sighed with relief, or maybe it was a yawn?
The studio AC was set to such a low temperature that you couldn't help but feel a little sleepy... especially with how mundane this whole model process was getting to be.
âCan I see the pictures?â You asked, making Jake's eyes widen slightly at your request. He knew it'd be suspicious to say no so he instead gave in, reluctantly handing you the camera.
Clicking the left arrow on the circular directional button, the gallery scrolled, picture after picture, with each slide shocking you with how good they came out.
âLovely, aren't you?â Jake nearly whispered from behind you as he leaned over the couch, his hands pulling your hair out of the tussled bun he previously styled it in for the first part of the photoshoot.
For the next series of shots, he planned to go for a more natural look, taking your hair down to let it hang as the scent of your shampoo ignited him all over again.
Jake couldnât stop himself from grinding his hard-on against the back of the couch, eager for any sort of friction that would ease the tension building up inside him.
You felt the teeth of the comb meet your scalp as he continued to comb, the simple act somehow making it even harder for him to control himself.
âYou're really talented at this,â you said, just before your eyes glazed over the series of pictures following the one's he'd just taken of you.
Some were from recent trips you took to the supermarket, events you don't fully remember, and even a few scandalous shots of you through your apartment window, changing out of your work clothesâ
âThanks, but I prefer giving credit to the actual person I'm shooting,â he added, looking over your shoulder as you turned the camera off, just before he got a chance to see what you were looking at.
Though, from the almost immediate shift in the studio's aura, Jake had developed a pretty good inkling in his chest as to what you might've seen.
Your throat tensed up, chest expanding slightly with each exhale as a smile grew on Jake's face.
âJust let me know if I'm being too rough, alright?â He started, sectioning out your bangs as his hand slid around your neck, gently cradling your chin upward.
âJake,â you choked out weakly, a shaky moan slipping past your lips as the comb got caught in a particular knot in your hair, ât-take your time, please...â
You stuttered, hoping in your heart that he wouldn't make a big deal about it.
In truth, you often watched Jake from afar yourself, not being able to get over your obsession with him, even months after you two first broke upâŚ
Your eyes had a way of chasing stolen momentsâthe curve of his lips as he sipped coffee on his way to class, or the way his personal style slowly changed from denim coats and Timberland's to leather jackets and black boots.
You saw it all, seeking after it as often as you could⌠using it as a means to coax your own lonely desire for him.
Still, you couldn't quite shake how strange it was to see his gallery filled with images of you from every angle and emotion, even though it eventually delighted you to know that he wasn't as interested in other people as he let onâ
âI'm in no rush, ____,â he said plainly, trying to redirect the energy in the room, âjust relax for me... I'm not trying to hurt you...â
He chose his words wisely, releasing his hold from around your neck before making his way over to the wall where he dimmed the lights even more.
âI know, Jake,â you nearly whispered, wind flowing from the slightly opened windows as your voice flew with its gustâŚ
âBut how long have you been watching me?â
His wrists froze at your question, a mix of relief, guilt, and fear rising within every part of his body.
You turned your gaze towards him, eyes locking to reveal a mirror reflecting your similarly twisted desires, the tension screaming with ambivalenceâŚ
âSince we broke up...â He confessed, eerily loud footsteps sending shivers down your spine as he paced against the wooden floor, walking towards you, âdoes that bother you, love?â
You stammered at first, gentle grasp clinging to the white sheet around you. âIt doesn't, Jake... not at all,â you finally mustered, watching as he licked his lips because God, he was such an anxious perv for you...
The way you looked before him in this moment, both fear and recognition present in your features as your body remained still as stone, every natural highlight of your skin looking even more gorgeous beneath the dim lights.
This entire moment was all too much for him⌠You were too much for himâŚ
Slowly creeping towards you, his intense energy did nothing but make your arms sprout with tiny bumps all over.
âGood,â was all he said at first, trying to digest your body language while freeing himself from his jacket, âbut I'm guessing there's something you might wanna come clean about, too, hm?â
âI⌠yes,â you admitted, somehow regaining your initial confidence, âsince you wanna hear me say it so badly... I haven't exactly been able to get over you, either...â
He smirked at your honesty, âHow bad has it gotten? The withdrawal, I mean... d'you ever think about me when you touch yourself?â
âCute, but no...,â you scoffed, âI prefer hands-free fantasizing instead... less mess for me to clean up alone,â you smiled teasingly, tracing the arch of his jawline with your index finger.
It almost felt foreign when you did that just then...
You hadn't touched him like that in months... and even though the act was ordinary, it made you feel something intenseâ
âI need to take a few more shots of you like this,â he said randomly, reaching for his camera but not sitting on the opposite couch this time.
He stayed right in front of you, joining you on the couch and slightly caging you beneath his frame.
âTrying a new angle I see... these gonna be for your project orââ
âI'm gonna keep these for myself,â he interrupted, snaking his free hand beneath the sheet and lightly caressing the flesh of your thigh before kneading it, dangerously close to your core. âJust make sure you follow my instructions like I asked...â
You nodded at his words, letting your lower body relax as he gently guided your legs open, the sheet falling from over you boobs and exposing them to the air as he grazed your pussy lips with his fingers.
Jake nearly drooled at the sight of your hard nipples, clicking with his tongue to make you look back at the camera. âStart by squeezing your tits together for me,â he started in a low voice, âwanna see how well theyâd suffocate my dickâŚâ
The poor guy was still very much hard right now, and it didn't help him one bit with how wet you felt against his fingers, his skilled touch circling your clit as a feathery moan left your lips.
âCâmon pretty, do as I sayâŚâ Jake cooed, pointing the camera to you as you did just that, arching your back over the sofa arm while squeezing your tits together, his fingers quickening against your sensitive bud as he kept recording.
You're not sure what came over you just then, but you were starting to feel more than willing to do whatever Jake asked of you, especially when his fingers worked on teasing your initial tightness.
His digits curved against your g-spot, the pressure he applied only escalating as his stiff cock started leaking in his pants.
This entire moment felt strangely nostalgic, reminding you of the many times Jake would stand over while making you cream with just his fingersâ
âTell me when you're close, baby⌠beg for me to let you come,â he huffed, voice sounding somewhat labored as he intently watched your chest heave up and down, biting his lower lip to stop himself from kissing you.
Because as badly as he wanted to taste you, he had to capture your bliss on camera first, for the nights that memories become too vague... for the nights when fantasies don't compare to the real deal...
Your whole body was a mix of hot and cold, given the temperature of the room and the sexual energy meddling between your excited bodies.
âJ-JakeâŚâ you stuttered with a whine, clinging to the couch as your face flushed a ruddy hue, walls desperately clenching around his fingers, âplease...l-let me come for youâŚâ
The poor boy didn't know what to do with himself given how wet you were, his puppy-dog eyes looking almost in awe now that the realization had hit him:
He finally got you where he wanted you⌠and from your perspective, the likewiseâŚ
âYou can let go now baby,â is all Jake manages to say before you're coming undone, the knot in you abdomen unraveling throughout every limb of your body as pure pleasure coursed through your starved out veins.
Jake kept the camera on your body the entire time, too, his digits only slowing down slightly to help you ride out your high.
He hadn't even fully slipped from your hole yet before a feeling of emptiness washed over you, lust-ridden eyes following Jakeâs every move as his veiny hand retreated from your core.
He caught on to it, too... the way your eyes panned in on him like your own built in set of camera lenses... capturing every movement to store in your favorite mental file.
âFuck,â Jake groaned around his own fingers suddenly, tasting the milky slick he gathered from your hole, âbeen missing the taste of you so bad, angel...â
âThen kiss me,â you whispered heavily, a clear sheen of Jake's saliva mixed with your sweet release painting the cupid's bow of his pouty lips.
He didn't hesitate to take heed to your words either, setting the camera down with haste before hovering back over you on the couch, not even guiding your face as he kissed your lips, humming into the contact.
The feeling of Jake's sloppy textured tongue against yours sent shivers down your spine, his hot breath doing nothing but heat up the warmth already present between your legs.
His heart pounded against his ribs as the kiss continued, his glasses eventually fogging up from how intense the contact was, compelling you to push him away for a seconds to remove his glasses, your own heart fluttering at his flushed demeanor.
âI need to touch you... r-right now,â you choked out breathlessly, not even bothering to cover your naked body now that the sheet was slipping to the floor.
It was a bit awkward at first, you'll admit, being completely naked while Jake was fully clothed. You grew tired of undressing him with your eyes and knew you had to do something about the issue throbbing behind his pants.
Before Jake could even respond, you were already pushing him back against the other side of the couch, his head plopping on the sofa arm with a gentle thud, fluffy brown locks framing his face.
The shadow of a smirk meddled over his handsome features as you eagerly yet patiently worked on unzipping his pants, the thick mound from his clothed hardness making your head spin.
There was really no point in taking things slow with him in this moment because its not like you two haven't already fucked each other before... only difference now was that it had been a while, so the nerves had built upâ
âIt's so red,â you remarked with a whisper, just having shimmed Jake's pants down enough for you to get his cock out, âdoes it hurt?â
âI'll let you know once you start touching it,â he let out with a relaxed breath, eyes once again focusing on the way you sat before him with your tits out on full display.
You took his comment as some sort of green light, gently taking his length in your grasp and pumping it in long, drawn out strokes.
His thighs were already trembling, hips grinding up into your first to gain a bit more friction.
âFuck, stop teasing, ____,â he groaned with half-lidded eyes, wrapping his hand around yours to manually control the pace.
You let out a laugh at his neediness, swatting his hand away so you could take over again, âThis is all apart of the foreplay, Jake... you know I'll be riding your cock properly before the night's out, anyways...â
Deep down, you were having just a little too much fun toying around with Jake right now, but given the sexually frustrated furrow of his eyebrows, you decided to be nice and just let him have you already.
Still pumping his shaft in your hand, you sat up on your knees to straddle him, lining up his tip with your entrance before letting your weight sink onto him, struggling to adjust to his size given how long its been since you took him.
A quiet curse fell from Jake's lips as he watched you wiggle past his mushroom tip, his veiny hands reaching forward to help you completely reach his pelvis.
You let out a shaky whimper at the sudden feeling of fullness, covering your mouth with the back of your hand to stop yourself from making any more pained sounds.
âThere you go, pretty... nice and easy...â Jake cooed while still gripping the flesh of your hips, mostly because if he didn't, he would've started thrusting into you, âdo you wanna stop?â
âN-no,â you practically blurted out, thighs still feeling tense despite how badly you wanted this with him, âI want you to make me cum again, Jakey... I can take it...â
Your words were like magic to his ears, his strong hand guiding your body against his as he left a tender kiss to your cheek before holding you in place, his dick moving in and out of you at a steady pace that escalated in a matter of seconds.
To be honest, you were shocked by Jake's adrenaline, your body already shaking beneath his arms as he held onto you tighter, grunting with each time your desperate walls clenched around him.
His balls bounced to the rhythm of his powerful thrusts, the sound of skin slapping against skin making you shut your eyes tightly in pleasure, whining frantically at the mix of sensations.
Your eyes started to sprout with tears, damping Jake's shoulder as he fucked against your g-spot, making it nearly impossible for you to hold in your delighted screams.
Pouring out a string of whiny moans, your body subconsciously moved with his hips, Jake catching on to your reactions rather quickly as he whispered a sultry âYou like that, baby?â against your neck, your head nodding lazily as you looked into each other's eyes, right before your lips crashed into his.Â
âI missed this so fucking badly, Jake... 'missed being this close to you,â you let out weakly, one of his thumbs going to wipe the tear of moisture sliding down your face as he kept rutting into you.
âI know, angel,â he panted, kissing you on the center of your lips before pulling back, his tip reaching the furthest its ever been inside your pussy as you rocked your hips against his, wobbly pleas of pleasure slipping past both your lips before you felt yourselves reach your peaks.
âAww, f-f... shit,â you whined, Jake's hips still pivoting against you despite how strong the orgasm was, your thighs trembling as you felt your walls tighten around him.
âThat's it, baby,â Jake cooed through heavy breaths, reeling out more of your pretty moans as he rode out your high for the last time, holding you close to him, âlet it all out, angel...â
You let your legs relax, just as Jake sat himself up straight, delicate lips kissing along your jawline as he whispered against your skin, âNow you belong to me againâŚâ
And there it was, two twisted souls basking in the very web of obsession the sewed together, a lost love blossoming yet again from a matter of stolen glances and a series of clandestine photographs bringing you back together again.
You internally yawned at the feeling of Jake's lips against you, his possessive words only making your heart sing as you reached down for the sheet, draping it over both your spent bodies...
âI've always been yours, Jake,â you smiled sincerely, ruffling the hair atop his head before falling back into his embrace, letting yourselves snuggle into the plush cushion of the couch, âeven when you left me first...â
âš Author's Note: This story is a work of fiction and does not intend to romanticize the harmfully obsessive behaviors described between the two characters. Real-life stalking is not okay my guys, so please, donât be a sasaeng and instead seek healthy relationships !
âš Perm Taglist ( đ¨đŠđđ§ ) : @squoxle @wonbinisbabygurl @ashgonedash @yourmomscuntis2tighy @addictedtohobi @ot7sevenlvr
#đđĄđĽđ¨đâđŹ đđŹđ¤đŹ đ#enhypen#enhypen smut#jake smut#jaeyun smut#enhypen hard hours#enhypen hard thoughts#enhypen jake#jake x reader#enhypen ff#jay smut#sunghoon smut#heeseung smut#enhypen x reader#enha imagines#enhypen headcanons#enha scenarios#smut#enha ff#enhypen scenarios#enhypen fluff#enhypen imagines#enhypen fanfiction#jake fanfic#sim jaeyun#enhypen jake smut#jake x yn#jake enhypen smut#enha x reader
2K notes
¡
View notes